Selected quad for the lemma: religion_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
religion_n king_n prince_n queen_n 3,203 5 6.8163 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54580 The happy future state of England, or, A discourse by way of a letter to the late Earl of Anglesey vindicating him from the reflections of an affidavit published by the House of Commons, ao. 1680, by occasion whereof observations are made concerning infamous witnesses : the said discourse likewise contains various political remarks and calculations referring to many parts of Christendom, with observations of the number of the people of England, and of its growth in populousness and trade, the vanity of the late fears and jealousies being shewn, the author doth on the grounds of nature predict the happy future state of the realm : at the end of the discourse there is a casuistical discussion of the obligation to the king, his heirs and successors, wherein many of the moral offices of absolution and unconditional loyalty are asserted : before the discourse is a large preface, giving an account of the whole work, with an index of the principal matters : also, The obligation resulting from the Oath of supremacy to assist and defend the preheminence or prerogative of the dispensative power belonging to the king ... Pett, Peter, Sir, 1630-1699. 1688 (1688) Wing P1883; ESTC R35105 603,568 476

There are 54 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

harry_v the_o 8ths_n time_n so_o it_o may_v perhaps_o as_o just_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v in_o debt_n to_o the_o crown_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n since_o queen_n elizabeth_n who_o as_o i_o have_v be_v inform_v from_o some_o well_o verse_v in_o our_o exchequer_n record_v alienate_v more_o of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o crown_n then_o any_o english_a prince_n ever_o do_v and_o that_o in_o order_n to_o she_o raise_v those_o great_a sum_n before_o mention_v which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o secure_v the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o rivet_a it_o in_o fast_o to_o our_o law_n and_o government_n and_o i_o be_o the_o more_o apt_a to_o credit_v such_o my_o information_n because_o i_o see_v not_o by_o what_o other_o way_n she_o can_v raise_v those_o vast_a sum_n but_o by_o such_o alienation_n of_o the_o crown_n land_n her_o ordinary_a expense_n probable_o come_v near_o such_o her_o receipt_n which_o one_o may_v partly_o guess_v by_o what_o sir_n robert_n cotton_n in_o his_o abstract_n of_o the_o record_n of_o the_o tower_n touch_v the_o king_n revenue_n affirm_v exit_fw-la computo_fw-la dom._n burleigh_n the_o saurar_n that_o anno_fw-la 12_o her_o revenue_n beside_o the_o ward_n and_o duchy_n of_o lancaster_n be_v 188197_o l._n 4_o s._n and_o the_o payment_n and_o assignmet_n be_v 110612_o l._n 13_o s._n of_o which_o the_o household_n be_v 30000_o l._n privy_a purse_n 2000_o l._n admiralty_n 30000_o l._n and_o sir_n robert_n cotton_n in_o that_o book_n mention_n that_o she_o do_v pawn_v her_o jewel_n in_o the_o tower_n and_o often_o mortgage_v her_o land_n which_o no_o doubt_n she_o be_v constrain_v to_o do_v for_o the_o great_a end_n aforesaid_a her_o ordinary_a revenue_n and_o extraordinary_a supply_n of_o subsidy_n not_o be_v adequate_a to_o the_o great_a sum_n that_o her_o measure_n of_o state_n and_o religion_n cause_v she_o to_o expend_v and_o to_o how_o low_a a_o ebb_n the_o crown_n land_n be_v fall_v in_o the_o late_a king_n time_n from_o what_o they_o be_v in_o the_o 12_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n and_o when_o they_o be_v perhaps_o about_o 200,000_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la appear_v in_o a_o book_n of_o mr._n christopher_n verion_n a_o exchequer_n man_n dedicate_v to_o sir_n john_n culpeper_n under_o treasurer_n of_o his_o majesty_n exchequer_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o king_n land_n now_o in_o charge_n before_o his_o majesty_n auditor_n amount_v in_o the_o whole_a to_o 100,000l_o per_fw-la annum_fw-la and_o consist_v then_o for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o fee-farm_n and_o certain_a rent_n i_o have_v before_o mention_v that_o she_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v here_o semper_fw-la eadem_fw-la &_o as_o in_o the_o metropolis_n of_o holland_n the_o foundation_n of_o a_o house_n ordinary_o cost_v as_o much_o as_o the_o superstructure_n thus_o expenceful_a to_o the_o crown_n do_v the_o foundation_n of_o protestancy_n by_o she_o prove_v and_o she_o need_v not_o the_o precaution_n in_o these_o word_n of_o st._n luke_n for_o which_o of_o you_o intend_v to_o build_v a_o tower_n sit_v not_o down_o first_o and_o count_v the_o cost_n whether_o he_o have_v sufficient_a to_o finish_v it_o lest_o happy_o after_o he_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o finish_v it_o all_o that_o behold_v it_o begin_v to_o mock_v he_o say_v this_o man_n begin_v to_o build_v and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o finish_v she_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o english_a gospel_n so_o deep_a in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n that_o god_n be_v thank_v the_o romanist_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o mock_v it_o further_o than_o by_o call_v it_o a_o parliament-religion_n and_o by_o my_o consent_n let_v they_o that_o way_n still_o mock_v on_o and_o i_o shall_v mock_v at_o they_o who_o think_v that_o any_o religion_n but_o protestancy_n here_o will_v ever_o have_v a_o parliamentary_a sanction_n and_o if_o popery_n have_v not_o be_v a_o parliamentary_a religion_n here_o in_o the_o marian_n day_n her_o reign_n have_v not_o as_o i_o may_v say_v be_v infamous_a by_o the_o occasion_n of_o any_o noble_a army_n of_o martyr_n nor_o the_o eclipse_n of_o justice_n and_o mercy_n and_o the_o english_a good_a nature_n in_o her_o vile_a quinquennium_fw-la be_v make_v a_o epoch_n of_o horror_n in_o the_o english_a story_n as_o great_a eclipse_n of_o old_a in_o chronology_n like_o notch_n in_o the_o line_n of_o time_n for_o man_n memory_n to_o fasten_v on_o serve_v as_o date_n of_o epoche_n to_o measure_v it_o by_o and_o set_v aside_o some_o just_a ground_n of_o fear_n of_o popery_n be_v here_o permit_v by_o heaven_n to_o be_v a_o epidemical_a opinion_n of_o religion_n as_o a_o just_a punishment_n of_o such_o defection_n from_o morality_n i_o think_v the_o fear_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v shipwreck_v on_o it_o and_o sustain_v thereby_o such_o persecution_n as_o be_v in_o bohemia_n will_v be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v mock_v as_o shakespear_n shipwreck_n in_o bohemia_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o writ_n de_fw-fr haretico_fw-la comburendo_fw-la grillade_v any_o more_o christian_n be_v as_o ridiculous_a as_o lithgow_v mention_v in_o his_o travel_n that_o in_o a_o hot_a country_n he_o see_v goose_n roast_v in_o and_o by_o the_o sun._n but_o my_o lord_n raillery_n apart_o the_o protestant_a religion_n that_o before_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n be_v only_o like_o a_o picture_n hang_v on_o the_o wall_n and_o easy_a to_o be_v remove_v without_o fatal_a prejudice_n to_o the_o kingdom_n have_v since_o be_v so_o incorporate_v into_o our_o law_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o our_o politic_n that_o like_o the_o old_a fresco_n paint_v appear_v on_o wall_n and_o there_o wrought_v deep_o in_o it_o can_v be_v remove_v but_o with_o the_o wall_n itself_o and_o whatever_o popish_a bishop_n or_o judge_n any_o prince_n of_o that_o persuasion_n may_v possible_o hereafter_o appoint_v they_o must_v till_o some_o of_o our_o act_n of_o parliament_n can_v be_v repeal_v which_o declare_v popery_n to_o be_v against_o god_n law_n give_v judgement_n that_o it_o be_v so_o according_o as_o it_o be_v rational_o resolve_v in_o vaughan_n report_n in_o the_o case_n of_o thomas_n hill_n vers_fw-la thomas_n good_a where_o it_o be_v occasional_o say_v that_o if_o a_o marriage_n be_v declare_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n to_o be_v against_o god_n law_n we_o must_v admit_v it_o to_o be_v so_o for_o by_o a_o law_n that_o be_v by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n it_o be_v so_o declare_v there_o be_v nothing_o i_o be_o more_o ashamed_a of_o in_o many_o protestant_n who_o pass_n for_o first-rate_n one_o and_o carry_v not_o only_o swell_v sail_n of_o profession_n of_o it_o but_o flag_n as_o demagogue_n then_o to_o see_v they_o as_o i_o say_v value_v themselves_o on_o their_o excessive_a fear_n of_o papist_n and_o popery_n i_o will_v wish_v that_o such_o intimidated_a protestant_n if_o real_o they_o suffer_v that_o passion_n and_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o fire_n of_o those_o faggot_n that_o they_o be_v more_o distant_a in_o nature_n from_o then_o from_o the_o heat_n of_o mount_n aetna_n and_o talk_v after_o the_o rate_n of_o the_o martyr_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o cranmer_n that_o they_o must_v prepare_v to_o hold_v out_o to_o the_o fire_n inclusive_a will_v not_o by_o their_o pitiful_a ill_a bode_a fear_n stain_v the_o noble_a prophecy_n of_o some_o english_a martyr_n when_o the_o fire_n be_v kindle_v about_o they_o at_o the_o stake_n the_o act_n and_o monument_n will_v tell_v they_o how_o at_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o ridley_n and_o latimer_n that_o when_o a_o faggot_n be_v kindle_v with_o fire_n and_o lay_v down_o at_o ridleys_n foot_n latimer_n speak_v to_o he_o in_o these_o word_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n mr._n ridley_n and_o play_v the_o man_n we_o shall_v this_o day_n light_v such_o a_o candle_n in_o england_n as_o i_o trust_v shall_v never_o be_v put_v out_o but_o what_o be_v somewhat_o more_o extraordinary_a and_o which_o i_o remember_v not_o to_o have_v hear_v any_o one_o observe_v out_o of_o the_o act_n and_o monument_n be_v in_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o trial_n of_o roger_n holland_n a_o merchant-taylor_n of_o london_n how_o bishop_n bonner_n hear_v he_o say_v after_o the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n be_v read_v god_n have_v hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n which_o have_v be_v pour_v forth_o with_o tear_n for_o his_o afflict_a saint_n who_o you_o daily_o persecute_v but_o this_o i_o dare_v be_v bold_a in_o god_n to_o speak_v which_o by_o his_o spirit_n i_o be_o move_v to_o say_v that_o god_n will_v shorten_v your_o hand_n of_o cruelty_n etc._n etc._n for_o after_o this_o day_n in_o this_o place_n shall_v there_o not_o be_v any_o by_o you_o put_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o fire_n and_o faggot_n
and_o not_o any_o religionary_a regeneration_n and_o that_o the_o accession_n of_o the_o crown_n purge_v all_o obstruction_n and_o that_o that_o prince_n do_v by_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n design_n only_o to_o twist_v the_o band_n of_o our_o natural_a allegiance_n the_o strong_a a_o allegiance_n tie_v not_o to_o prince_n faith_n of_o the_o cross_n but_o to_o their_o crown_n appear_v throughout_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n he_o likewise_o in_o his_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a monarch_n p._n 9_o do_v with_o some_o warmth_n of_o word_n reflect_v on_o the_o malice_n of_o some_o who_o impudent_o affirm_v that_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v devise_v for_o deceive_v and_o entrap_a of_o papist_n in_o point_n of_o conscience_n and_o say_v that_o though_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o at_o the_o first_o frame_v of_o the_o oath_n make_v it_o to_o contain_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v i_o which_o i_o cause_v they_o to_o reform_v only_o make_v it_o to_o conclude_v that_o no_o excommunication_n of_o the_o pope_n can_v warrant_v my_o subject_n to_o practice_v against_o my_o person_n or_o state_n etc._n etc._n so_o careful_a be_v i_o that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v contain_v in_o this_o oath_n except_o the_o profession_n of_o natural_a allegiance_n and_o civil_a and_o temporal_a obedience_n with_o a_o promise_n to_o resist_v to_o all_o contrary_a uncivil_a violence_n from_o thence_o it_o appear_v that_o what_o look_v like_o the_o religionary_a part_n of_o popery_n namely_o the_o pope_n exercise_v a_o spiritual_a power_n against_o he_o or_o the_o notion_n as_o aquinas_n deliver_v it_o that_o there_o be_v potestas_fw-la in_o summo_fw-la pontifice_fw-la puniendi_fw-la omnes_fw-la mortales_fw-la ratione_fw-la delicti_fw-la he_o intend_v not_o to_o whet_v the_o sharpness_n of_o the_o oath_n against_o but_o only_o against_o the_o irreligionary_a part_n of_o popery_n beforementioned_a and_o as_o to_o which_o he_o may_v rational_o depend_v on_o the_o zeal_n of_o any_o heir_n or_o successor_n though_o roman_a catholic_n concur_v with_o his_o therein_o he_o have_v in_o the_o forego_n page_n mention_v how_o that_o parliament_n that_o be_v to_o have_v be_v blow_v up_o make_v some_o new_a law_n against_o papist_n say_v so_o far_o have_v my_o heart_n and_o government_n be_v from_o any_o bitterness_n as_o almost_o never_a one_o of_o those_o sharp_a addition_n to_o the_o former_a law_n have_v ever_o yet_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n the_o execution_n of_o some_o law_n of_o pecuniary_a mulct_n on_o papist_n who_o in_o that_o conjuncture_n believe_v the_o irreligionary_a part_n of_o the_o papal_a power_n may_v seem_v to_o carry_v such_o a_o face_n of_o justice_n with_o it_o as_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o custom-house_n do_v pursuant_n to_o the_o 13_o and_o 14_o of_o harry_n the_o 8_o c._n 4._o whereby_o any_o english_a man_n or_o bear_v subject_n of_o england_n who_o shall_v swear_v obeisance_n or_o live_v as_o subject_n to_o any_o foreign_a prince_n shall_v pay_v alien_n custom_n but_o it_o be_v a_o madness_n to_o think_v of_o any_o prince_n abdicate_v his_o temporal_a power_n and_o swear_v temporal_a obeisance_n to_o any_o one_o and_o no_o man_n but_o he_o who_o have_v laesa_fw-la principia_fw-la can_v suppose_v that_o king_n james_n who_o avow_v in_o his_o premonition_n that_o no_o man_n in_o his_o time_n or_o the_o late_a queen_n ever_o die_v for_o his_o religion_n nor_o yet_o any_o priest_n after_o their_o take_a order_n beyond_o sea_n without_o some_o other_o guilt_n in_o they_o than_o their_o bare_a come_v home_o and_o who_o p._n 16._o of_o his_o apology_n avow_v and_o maintain_v to_o his_o own_o knowledge_n that_o queen_n elizabeth_n never_o punish_v any_o papist_n for_o religion_n but_o that_o their_o punishment_n be_v ever_o extort_a out_o of_o her_o hand_n against_o her_o will_n by_o their_o own_o mis-behaviour_n can_v ever_o intend_v that_o by_o the_o withdraw_n of_o allegiance_n from_o any_o of_o his_o heir_n in_o the_o course_n of_o their_o lineal_a succession_n on_o the_o pretence_n of_o any_o of_o their_o religionary_a notion_n or_o other_o pretence_n or_o ground_n whatsoever_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o solutio_fw-la continui_fw-la or_o political_a death_n inflict_v on_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n by_o the_o preserve_n of_o which_o the_o life_n of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o england_n can_v only_o be_v preserve_v he_o in_o his_o premonition_n and_o apology_n discharge_v the_o moral_a office_n of_o honour_v all_o man_n with_o relation_n to_o papist_n his_o subject_n and_o judge_v some_o of_o they_o to_o be_v of_o quiet_a disposition_n and_o good_a subject_n and_o in_o p._n 3_o 4._o 46_o 47_o 48._o of_o his_o apology_n he_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o many_o of_o his_o popish_a subject_n who_o retain_v in_o their_o heart_n the_o print_n of_o their_o nature_n l_o duty_n to_o their_o sovereign_n and_o those_o who_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o that_o fanatical_a zeal_n the_o powder-traytor_n be_v and_o use_v the_o expression_n of_o quiet_o mind_v papist_n and_o papist_n though_o peradventure_o zealous_a in_o their_o religion_n yet_o otherwise_o civil_o honest_a and_o good_a subject_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o his_o mother_n although_o she_o continue_v in_o that_o religion_n wherein_o she_o be_v nourish_v yet_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v superstitious_a or_o jesuited_a therein_o that_o at_o his_o baptism_n though_o he_o be_v baptize_v by_o a_o popish_a archbishop_n she_o send_v he_o word_n to_o forbear_v to_o use_v the_o spittle_n in_o his_o baptism_n which_o be_v obey_v and_o in_o his_o premonition_n speak_v to_o roman_n catholic_n prince_n and_o wish_v they_o to_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o ground_n their_o faith_n upon_o their_o own_o certain_a knowledge_n and_o not_o on_o the_o report_n of_o other_o since_o every_o man_n must_v be_v safe_a by_o his_o own_o faith_n but_o leave_v this_o to_o god_n his_o merciful_a providence_n in_o his_o due_a time_n he_o further_o wish_v they_o to_o imitate_v their_o noble_a predecessor_n who_o in_o the_o day_n of_o great_a blindness_n do_v divers_a time_n courageous_o oppose_v themselves_o to_o the_o encroach_a ambition_n of_o pope_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o some_o of_o their_o kingdom_n have_v in_o all_o age_n maintain_v and_o without_o interruption_n enjoy_v their_o liberty_n against_o the_o most_o ambitious_a pope_n etc._n etc._n and_o say_v that_o some_o of_o those_o prince_n have_v constant_o defend_v and_o maintain_v their_o lawful_a freedom_n to_o their_o immortal_a honour_n and_o conclude_v his_o premonition_n with_o earnest_a prayer_n to_o the_o almighty_a for_o their_o prosperity_n and_o that_o after_o their_o happy_a temporal_a reign_n on_o earth_n they_o may_v live_v and_o reign_v in_o heaven_n with_o he_o forever_o this_o learned_a king_n do_v sufficient_o thereby_o proclaim_v himself_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o papal_a tenet_n of_o sound_v dominion_n in_o grace_n as_o to_o those_o foreign_a popish_a prince_n and_o can_v not_o therefore_o but_o more_o abhor_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o in_o the_o case_n of_o his_o hereditary_a successor_n and_o he_o have_v judge_v that_o those_o foreign_a prince_n who_o own_v the_o religionary_a tenet_n of_o popery_n do_v yet_o constant_o defend_v and_o maintain_v their_o lawful_a freedom_n from_o all_o papal_a usurpation_n to_o their_o immortal_a honour_n and_o with_o so_o devout_a a_o charity_n pray_v for_o their_o happy_a temporal_a reign_n on_o earth_n and_o that_o they_o may_v live_v and_o reign_v in_o heaven_n afterward_o can_v not_o but_o suppose_v that_o any_o of_o his_o heir_n who_o may_v be_v of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n communion_n will_v yet_o disow_v any_o tenet_n of_o popery_n that_o be_v irreligionary_a and_o will_v exterminate_v all_o papal_a usurpation_n and_o that_o they_o may_v here_o expect_v a_o happy_a reign_n on_o earth_n and_o a_o happy_a in_o heaven_n hereafter_o leave_v it_o to_o god_n to_o open_v their_o eye_n as_o aforesaid_a in_o matter_n religionary_a and_o to_o render_v they_o fafe_a by_o their_o own_o faith._n king_n james_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n do_v incidenter_v prop_v up_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o in_o p._n 49_o 50_o 51._o do_v insert_v 14_o contrary_a conclusion_n to_o all_o the_o point_n and_o article_n of_o which_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n consist_v to_o denote_v the_o absurdity_n of_o the_o oppose_a that_o oath_n and_o which_o conclusion_n though_o many_o clerical_a and_o lay-papists_a among_o his_o subject_n may_v maintain_v yet_o he_o may_v well_o think_v it_o moral_o impossible_a for_o a_o roman_n catholic_n prince_n here_o to_o do_v so_o and_o he_o give_v a_o very_a good_a reason_n for_o the_o induce_v any_o one_o so_o to_o judge_v of_o his_o measure_n viz._n that_o those_o conclusion_n be_v never_o conclude_v and_o define_v by_o any_o complete_a general_n council_n
to_o such_o a_o high_a prospect_n of_o thought_n from_o whence_o they_o may_v at_o once_o have_v a_o view_n of_o the_o past_a and_o present_a state_n of_o popery_n here_o and_o abroad_o in_o former_a age_n and_o likewise_o of_o its_o probable_a future_a one_o a_o sight_n that_o may_v better_o entertain_v curiosity_n than_o what_o the_o traveller_n speak_v of_o when_o from_o a_o high_a mountain_n in_o the_o isthmus_n of_o america_n he_o can_v view_v both_o the_o great_a north_n and_o south_n sea_n not_o to_o have_v render_v himself_o a_o acceptable_a persuader_n by_o his_o discourse_n carry_v with_o it_o self-evidence_n that_o he_o be_v no_o papist_n have_v be_v a_o vain_a attempt_n and_o again_o for_o any_o one_o who_o will_v persuade_v the_o generality_n of_o popish_a or_o protestant_n recusant_n that_o it_o be_v not_o their_o interest_n by_o any_o artifices_fw-la to_o endeavour_n to_o make_v so_o great_a a_o figure_n in_o the_o internal_a part_n of_o the_o government_n as_o they_o have_v in_o some_o former_a conjuncture_n without_o his_o discourse_n carry_v likewise_o self-evidence_n that_o his_o advice_n be_v that_o of_o a_o friend_n to_o their_o person_n as_o far_o as_o the_o public_a security_n will_v admit_v have_v be_v a_o attempt_n as_o insignificant_a as_o the_o former_a i_o have_v in_o this_o discourse_n often_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o distinction_n of_o the_o tenet_n of_o popery_n and_o presbytery_n viz._n such_o of_o they_o that_o proper_o be_v denominable_a by_o religion_n and_o such_o that_o be_v not_o presume_v in_o my_o private_a judgement_n to_o differ_v from_o the_o measure_n take_v by_o the_o government_n in_o king_n james_n his_o time_n when_o the_o print_a prayer_n for_o the_o anniversary_n of_o the_o gun_n powder_n treason_n represent_v papist_n religion_n to_o be_v rebellion_n and_o i_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o principle_n denominable_a by_o religion_n have_v rank_v transubstantiation_n purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o other_o and_o have_v judge_v none_o of_o their_o principle_n irreligionary_a but_o such_o as_o the_o late_a learned_a earl_n of_o clarendon_n in_o his_o incomparable_a defence_n of_o dr._n still_v fleet_a attribute_n to_o popery_n as_o injurious_a to_o prince_n and_o their_o subject_n and_o what_o king_n james_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o both_o house_n hint_v as_o such_o according_a to_o what_o be_v cite_v by_o i_o p._n 172_o viz._n as_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a but_o many_o honest_a man_n seduce_v with_o some_o error_n in_o popery_n may_v yet_o remain_v good_a and_o faithful_a subject_n so_o on_o the_o other_o hand●none_o that_o know_v and_o believe_v the_o ground_n and_o school-conclusion_n of_o their_o doctrine_n can_v ever_o prove_v good_a christian_n or_o faithful_a subject_n and_o such_o as_o be_v apparent_o contrary_a to_o the_o light_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o discourse_n otherwise_o than_o en_fw-fr passant_a that_o impugn_v or_o confute_v the_o old_a religionary_a point_n controvert_v former_o between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o all_o the_o passage_n throughout_o refer_v to_o those_o old_a point_n may_v i_o believe_v be_v comprise_v together_o in_o about_o a_o page_n and_o if_o i_o be_v as_o in_o a_o dictionary_n to_o express_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n popery_n and_o irreligionary_a so_o often_o use_v in_o this_o discourse_n i_o will_v say_v that_o general_o by_o popery_n or_o as_o the_o writer_n in_o latin_a call_v it_o papismus_fw-la i_o mean_v the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o impose_v creed_n and_o doctrine_n and_o rule_n of_o divine_a worship_n on_o man_n and_o his_o jurisdiction_n interlope_v in_o that_o of_o prince_n and_o their_o law_n and_o the_o do_v this_o by_o the_o charter_n of_o ius_n divinum_fw-la and_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n pretend_a vicar_n and_o by_o the_o term_n of_o irreligionary_a of_o often_o by_o i_o apply_v to_o principle_n i_o sometime_o mean_v such_o as_o be_v bare_o not_o religionary_a that_o be_v to_o say_v principle_n that_o be_v not_o in_o truth_n and_o in_o the_o nature_n thing_n part_n of_o religion_n whatever_o any_o sanction_n of_o the_o papacy_n or_o a_o presbytery_n may_v term_v they_o and_o which_o do_v not_o religare_fw-la or_o bind_v the_o soul_n to_o god_n by_o moral_a obligation_n nor_o by_o any_o band_n of_o loyalty_n to_o our_o prince_n or_o charity_n to_o our_o neighbour_n but_o do_v only_o tie_v man_n to_o a_o party_n and_o to_o the_o own_n with_o they_o several_a point_n of_o speculation_n and_o no_o more_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v in_o order_n to_o our_o improvement_n in_o moral_a office_n that_o the_o divine_a law_n natural_a or_o positive_a enjoin_v or_o conduce_v to_o the_o same_o than_o be_v the_o hypothesis_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a philosophy_n but_o i_o most_o common_o apply_v the_o word_n irr●ligionary_a to_o principle_n that_o be_v reverâ_fw-la contrary_a to_o religion_n and_o justice_n and_o morality_n and_o such_o as_o i_o will_v therefore_o dis-robe_n of_o the_o name_n of_o religion_n and_o under_o this_o term_n of_o irreligionary_a not_o only_o all_o the_o antimonarchical_a principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o presbyterian_o be_v proper_o to_o be_v reckon_v but_o those_o principle_n of_o the_o papacy_n that_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o roman_a catholic_n ancestor_n as_o i_o say_v be_v so_o injurious_a to_o our_o prince_n and_o their_o subject_n and_o which_o be_v by_o they_o as_o usurpation_n on_o the_o crown_n oppose_v and_o defy_v and_o especial_o by_o those_o of_o they_o who_o be_v in_o their_o temper_n most_o magnanimous_a and_o in_o this_o case_n the_o papal_a principle_n that_o favour_v those_o usurpation_n on_o the_o right_n of_o our_o prince_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v both_o non-religionary_a or_o thing_n beside_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o likewise_o irreligionary_a or_o contrary_a to_o religion_n as_o be_v unjust_a the_o religio_fw-la officii_fw-la as_o tully_n call_v the_o conscience_n one_o have_v to_o do_v his_o duty_n do_v bind_v those_o prince_n of_o the_o pope_n religion_n to_o impugn_v his_o arbitrary_a usurpation_n on_o their_o realm_n and_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o mean_a cottager_n of_o england_n the_o pope_n excommunication_n be_v never_o allow_v good_a in_o westminister-hall_n under_o our_o roman_a catholic_n king_n the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o very_a reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n be_v likely_a to_o have_v divert_v our_o english_a world_n with_o the_o sight_n of_o as_o remarkable_a a_o prize_n play_v between_o the_o two_o sword_n i_o mean_v the_o pope_n spiritual_a and_o her_o temporal_a one_o as_o be_v ever_o play_v on_o its_o stage_n and_o when_o cardinal_n pool_n her_o kinsman_n who_o have_v reconcile_v our_o nation_n to_o rome_n be_v so_o far_o lose_v in_o the_o pope_n good_a grace_n as_o that_o his_o legantine_n power_n be_v abrogate_a by_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o affront_n to_o pool_n give_v to_o peito_n a_o poor_a friar_n but_o who_o red_a hat_n by_o queen_n mary_n opposition_n can_v get_v no_o further_o than_o calais_n and_o she_o be_v so_o regardless_o of_o the_o pope_n curse_n in_o the_o case_n that_o his_o bull_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o new_a legate_n be_v not_o permit_v to_o arrive_v here_o and_o the_o design_a legate_n be_v enforce_v to_o go_v up_o and_o down_o the_o street_n of_o london_n like_o a_o beg_a friar_n without_o a_o red_a hat._n and_o more_o need_v not_o be_v here_o say_v to_o express_v the_o principle_n that_o usurp_v on_o monarch_n to_o be_v irreligionary_a when_o i_o have_v in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o discourse_n once_o or_o twice_o mention_v the_o term_n of_o apostate_n for_o some_o turn_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o do_v there_o speak_v cum_fw-la vulgo_fw-la and_o likewise_o according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o our_o court_n christian_n which_o proceed_v against_o some_o pervert_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n impute_v to_o they_o the_o crime_n of_o apostasy_n but_o have_v observe_v in_o the_o progress_n of_o this_o discourse_n that_o that_o term_n be_v seditious_o use_v by_o the_o disciple_n of_o julian_n i_o have_v reprehend_v the_o further_a call_v any_o man_n apostate_n for_o the_o alteration_n of_o their_o judgement_n in_o some_o controvertible_a point_n of_o say_v between_o papist_n and_o protestant_n and_o that_o may_v without_o absurdity_n be_v call_v tenet_n of_o religion_n as_o to_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o extermination_n of_o popery_n and_o likewise_o of_o presbytery_n use_v in_o this_o discourse_n sometime_o and_o with_o allusion_n to_o the_o trite_a term_n of_o the_o papacy_n viz._n exterminium_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la i_o have_v there_o in_o p._n 283_o sufficient_o express_v my_o abhorrence_n of_o the_o extermination_n of_o person_n and_o as_o be_v there_o say_v do_v only_o refer_v to_o the_o extermination_n of_o thing_n
let_v man_n see_v how_o the_o pastorage_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n treat_v they_o like_o gentleman_n and_o may_v serve_v to_o awaken_v their_o compassion_n for_o their_o delude_a countryman_n who_o they_o see_v frighten_v by_o their_o teacher_n into_o a_o fancy_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o a_o ceremony_n and_o yet_o embolden_v by_o they_o into_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o a_o covenant_n without_o the_o king_n consent_n and_o from_o which_o person_n we_o shall_v perhaps_o quick_o receive_v alarm_n of_o persecution_n if_o the_o government_n shall_v impose_v any_o covenant_n or_o test_n on_o they_o in_o order_n to_o loyalty_n though_o never_o so_o necessary_a for_o the_o public_a peace_n but_o the_o world_n be_v weary_a of_o the_o umbrage_n sedition_n have_v find_v among_o denomination_n of_o church_n and_o of_o judge_v of_o tree_n by_o their_o shadow_n or_o otherwise_o than_o by_o their_o fruit_n that_o be_v by_o their_o principle_n and_o for_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o present_a state_n of_o england_n after_o we_o have_v by_o many_o religion-trader_n be_v trouble_v with_o almost_o as_o many_o mark_n of_o true_a and_o false_a church_n as_o there_o be_v of_o merchant_n good_n nature_n seem_v to_o have_v direct_v the_o people_n to_o agree_v in_o this_o indelible_a character_n and_o mark_n of_o a_o false_a church_n namely_o one_o who_o principle_n be_v disloyal_a the_o genius_n of_o england_n be_v so_o bend_v upon_o loyalty_n in_o this_o conjuncture_n that_o a_o disloyal_a principle_n do_v jar_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o ordinary_a think_v man_n like_o a_o false_a string_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o critical_a lutenist_n and_o the_o which_o he_o know_v that_o art_n or_o nature_n can_v never_o tune_v and_o upon_o any_o church_n value_v themselves_o on_o the_o intrinsic_n worth_n or_o the_o weight_n of_o their_o principle_n as_o most_o opposite_a to_o falsehood_n man_n general_o now_o take_v into_o their_o hand_n the_o touchstone_n and_o the_o scale_n of_o loyalty_n and_o do_v present_o suspect_v any_o church_n that_o refuse_v to_o bring_v its_o principle_n to_o be_v touch_v and_o weigh_v and_o they_o will_v not_o now_o allow_v the_o reputation_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n to_o any_o body_n of_o man_n who_o principle_n relate_v to_o loyalty_n shall_v not_o first_o be_v make_v visible_a nor_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o think_v by_o the_o impartial_a than_o that_o man_n consciousness_n of_o somewhat_o of_o the_o turpitude_n of_o some_o of_o their_o principle_n restrain_v they_o from_o bring_v they_o to_o appear_v in_o public_a view_n and_o according_a as_o cicero_n in_o his_o the_o fin_n bon_fw-fr &_o mal_fw-fr answer_v epicurus_n who_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o publish_v his_o opinion_n lest_o the_o people_n may_v perhaps_o take_v offence_n at_o it_o viz._n aut_fw-la tu_fw-la eadem_fw-la ista_fw-la dic_fw-la in_o judicio_fw-la aut_fw-la si_fw-la coronam_fw-la time_n dic_fw-la in_o senatu_fw-la nunquam_fw-la facies_fw-la cur_n nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la turpis_fw-la est_fw-la oratio_fw-la i_o who_o thus_o urge_v the_o reasonableness_n and_o necessity_n of_o man_n being_n confessor_n of_o their_o principle_n of_o loyalty_n have_v frank_o expose_v one_o of_o my_o own_o in_o p._n 131._o and_o which_o i_o say_v there_o that_o i_o account_v the_o great_a fundamental_a one_o for_o the_o quiet_a of_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o of_o a_o man_n be_v own_o conscience_n viz._n that_o no_o man_n be_v warrant_v by_o any_o intention_n of_o advance_v religion_n to_o invade_v the_o right_n of_o the_o sovereign_a power_n that_o be_v inherent_a in_o prince_n by_o the_o municipal_a law_n of_o their_o country_n and_o i_o have_v mention_v the_o same_o in_o p._n 136._o as_o own_a by_o the_o nonconforming_a divine_n in_o king_n james_n his_o time_n though_o i_o believe_v as_o firm_o as_o any_o man_n that_o the_o christian_a religion_n do_v plain_o forbid_v the_o resistance_n of_o authority_n and_o that_o his_o majesty_n royal_a power_n be_v immediate_o from_o god_n and_o no_o way_n depend_v on_o any_o previous_a election_n or_o approbation_n of_o the_o people_n yet_o since_o the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v sufficient_o teach_v both_o that_o doctrine_n and_o likewise_o that_o human_a law_n in_o the_o point_n of_o their_o allegiance_n do_v bind_v the_o conscience_n and_o since_o other_o man_n who_o err_v in_o principle_n of_o loyalty_n may_v soon_o be_v bring_v to_o see_v the_o absurdity_n of_o their_o error_n by_o the_o know_a law_n of_o the_o land_n than_o by_o argumentation_n from_o scripture_n which_o may_v admit_v of_o controversy_n and_o since_o his_o majesty_n have_v be_v please_v to_o expect_v the_o measure_n of_o our_o obedience_n from_o the_o law_n and_o that_o our_o english_a clergy_n while_n in_o the_o late_a conjuncture_n they_o have_v so_o universal_o preach_v up_o loyalty_n have_v so_o religious_o accord_v with_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o law_n and_o have_v therein_o as_o i_o may_v say_v show_v themselves_o apostolical_a pastor_n and_o since_o the_o person_n who_o complaint_n of_o the_o danger_n of_o popery_n be_v most_o loud_o do_v join_v therewith_o their_o exclamation_n against_o arbitrary_a or_o illegal_a power_n and_o seem_v to_o join_v issue_n in_o the_o point_n that_o they_o be_v willing_a that_o the_o power_n that_o be_v by_o law_n inherent_a in_o the_o crown_n shall_v be_v preserve_v to_o it_o i_o think_v it_o most_o useful_a in_o the_o present_a conjuncture_n to_o assert_v the_o principle_n in_o these_o term_n i_o have_v do_v and_o i_o the_o rather_o choose_v to_o do_v it_o because_o i_o think_v that_o the_o security_n of_o the_o crown_n be_v by_o some_o law_n well_o provide_v for_o who_o obligation_n admit_v of_o no_o doubt_n i_o mean_v those_o whereby_o man_n have_v be_v oblige_v to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n but_o moreover_o as_o i_o consider_v it_o to_o be_v one_o great_a valuable_a right_a inherent_a by_o law_n in_o our_o prince_n to_o secure_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o succession_n in_o their_o line_n so_o i_o likewise_o judge_v the_o legal_a right_n of_o prince_n to_o succeed_v according_a to_o proximity_n of_o blood_n to_o be_v unalterable_a and_o therefore_o have_v my_o eye_n on_o the_o prevention_n of_o further_a scandal_n to_o protestancy_n from_o the_o exclusion_n i_o introduce_v that_o principle_n so_o word_v as_o aforesaid_a that_o by_o dilate_v thereon_o as_o i_o have_v do_v i_o may_v bring_v the_o reader_n the_o better_o prepare_v to_o my_o casuistical_a discussion_n of_o the_o oath_n the_o reader_n will_v find_v at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o discourse_n the_o casuistical_a discussion_n of_o the_o obligation_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n result_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n by_o i_o promise_v in_o p._n 214_o and_o the_o occasion_n of_o my_o writing_n which_o be_v likewise_o there_o mention_v it_o be_v whole_o write_v in_o the_o time_n that_o the_o question_n of_o the_o succession_n make_v the_o great_a noise_n among_o we_o and_o be_v then_o by_o i_o communicate_v to_o several_a of_o my_o friend_n in_o term_n as_o herewith_o print_v without_o any_o thing_n since_o add_v or_o diminish_v and_o both_o it_o and_o the_o discourse_n which_o contain_v so_o many_o thing_n natural_o previous_a to_o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o question_n will_v have_v be_v long_o since_o publish_v but_o partly_o for_o the_o various_a accident_n of_o business_n and_o sickness_n that_o necessary_o interrupt_v i_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o latter_a and_o though_o perhaps_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o former_a in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o session_n of_o our_o late_a parliament_n may_v have_v be_v more_o significant_a than_o after_o the_o volley_n of_o loyal_a address_n shoot_v of_o manifest_v the_o general_a just_a zeal_n against_o the_o exclusion_n of_o which_o address_n i_o yet_o observe_v none_o to_o mention_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o obligation_n to_o allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o the_o subsequent_a birth_n of_o fate_n have_v not_o restrain_v the_o possibility_n of_o its_o usefulness_n in_o future_a time_n and_o though_o heaven_n may_v be_v propitious_a to_o our_o land_n in_o the_o blessing_n it_o according_a to_o the_o loyal_a style_n of_o the_o address_n namely_o in_o his_o majesty_n line_n continue_v on_o the_o english_a throne_n as_o long_o as_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n endure_v yet_o many_o and_o many_o may_v be_v the_o conjuncture_n when_o a_o suppose_a heterodox_n prince_n shine_v like_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n of_o the_o english_a state_n and_o regular_o move_v in_o the_o line_n of_o the_o law_n and_o his_o own_o religion_n may_v attract_v the_o dull_a vapour_n of_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n again_o as_o another_o glorious_a prince_n have_v do_v and_o
author_n opinion_n that_o they_o can_v never_o recover_v the_o wound_n give_v they_o by_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o les_fw-fr provinciales_fw-la etc._n etc._n ib._n and_o that_o much_o less_o those_o give_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n say_a decree_n p._n 50_o 51._o observation_n on_o that_o notion_n of_o moasieur_n descartes_n and_o mr._n hobbs_n that_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v equal_o dispense_v and_o on_o the_o natural_a effect_n of_o that_o notion_n p._n 58._o the_o author_n remark_n some_o shamm_n and_o calumny_n use_v by_o some_o protestant_n and_o their_o contend_v with_o papist_n therein_o p._n 59_o a_o antidote_n mention_v for_o papist_n and_o protestant_n to_o carry_v about_o with_o they_o in_o this_o pestilential_a time_n of_o shamm_n ib._n a_o vile_a shame_n or_o calumny_n use_v against_o papist_n as_o if_o they_o intend_v to_o burn_v the_o town_n of_o stafford_n and_o other_o great_a town_n be_v refer_v to_o in_o one_o of_o janeway_n print_a intelligence_n p._n 60._o animadversion_n on_o parson_n his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n p._n 60_o 61._o it_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n observe_v that_o harry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n after_o he_o turn_v papist_n continue_v kind_a and_o just_a to_o his_o protestant_a subject_n notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n endeavour_n to_o the_o contrary_a p._n 62._o the_o author_n grand_a assertion_n viz._n that_o whatever_o alteration_n time_n can_v cause_v yet_o human_o speak_v while_o the_o english_a nation_n remain_v entire_a and_o defend_v from_o foreign_a conquest_n the_o protestant_a religion_n can_v never_o be_v exterminate_v out_o of_o this_o kingdom_n p._n 64._o mr._n hooker_n propliecy_n of_o the_o hazard_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o england_n be_v a_o ill_a state_n after_o the_o year_n 1677_o p._n 65._o the_o defection_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n from_o the_o time_n of_o david_n punish_v by_o a_o succession_n of_o 10_o ill_a king_n p._n 66._o the_o word_n in_o hosea_n i_o give_v thou_o a_o king_n in_o my_o anger_n false_o make_v by_o antimonarchical_a scribbler_n to_o refer_v to_o saul_n ib._n dr._n stillingfleet_n sermon_n cite_v about_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o what_o the_o fermentation_n among_o we_o may_v end_v in_o ib._n dr._n sprat_n opinion_n cite_v that_o whatever_o vicissitude_n shall_v happen_v about_o religion_n in_o our_o time_n will_v neither_o be_v to_o the_o advantage_n of_o implicit_a faith_n or_o enthusiasm_n p._n 67._o historical_a observation_n relate_v to_o the_o papacy_n from_o p._n 67_o to_o p._n 77._o the_o papal_a power_n former_o pernicious_a to_o the_o external_a polity_n and_o grandeur_n of_o england_n p._n 77_o 78._o queen_n elizabeth_z say_v by_o townsend_n to_o have_v spend_v a_o million_o of_o money_n in_o her_o war_n with_o spain_n and_o lay_v out_o 100000_o l._n to_o support_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o 150000_o l._n in_o defence_n of_o the_o low_a country_n and_o to_o have_v discharge_v a_o debt_n of_o 4_o million_o she_o find_v the_o crown_n indebt_v in_o ib._n how_o by_o her_o alliance_n she_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o vast_a ensue_a trade_n of_o england_n who_o overbalance_n bring_v in_o afterward_o so_o much_o silver_n to_o be_v coin_v in_o the_o tower_n of_o london_n p._n 78._o the_o sum_v coin_v there_o from_o the_o 41_o sy_n year_n of_o her_o reign_n to_o may_v 1657_o ib._n england_n alone_o till_o the_o peace_n of_o munster_n in_o the_o year_n 1648_o enjoy_v almost_o the_o whole_a manufacture_n and_o best_a part_n of_o the_o trade_n of_o europe_n by_o virtue_n of_o her_o alliance_n ib._n the_o same_o month_n of_o january_n in_o the_o year_n 48_o produce_v the_o sign_v of_o that_o peace_n and_o the_o martyrdom_n of_o the_o best_a of_o king_n and_o the_o fatal_a diminution_n of_o our_o trade_n ib._n queen_n elizabeth_n have_v what_o praemium_fw-la of_o tax_n from_o parliament_n she_o please_v ib._n king_n james_n tell_v the_o parliament_n anno_fw-la 1620_o that_o she_o have_v one_o year_n with_o another_o 100,000_o l._n in_o subsidy_n and_o that_o he_o have_v in_o all_o his_o time_n but_o 4_o subsidy_n and_o 6_o fifteenth_n and_o that_o his_o parliament_n have_v not_o give_v he_o any_o thing_n for_o 8_o or_o 9_o year_n ib._n in_o harry_n the_o 3_o d_n time_n the_o pope_n revenue_n in_o england_n be_v great_a than_o the_o king_n and_o in_o 3_o year_n time_n the_o pope_n extort_a more_o money_n from_o england_n than_o be_v leave_v remain_v in_o it_o ib._n in_o edward_n the_o 3_o d_n time_n the_o tax_n pa●d_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n amount_v to_o five_o time_n as_o much_o as_o the_o people_n pay_v to_o the_o king_n p._n 79._o by_o a_o balance_n of_o trade_n then_o in_o the_o exchequer_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o overplus_n of_o the_o export_n above_o the_o import_v amount_v to_o 255214_o l._n 13_o s._n 8d_n ib._n wolsey_n revenue_n general_o hold_v equal_a to_o harry_v the_o 8_o th_n ib._n why_o the_o pope_n never_o send_v emissary_n to_o denmark_n and_o sweden_n and_o some_o other_o northern_a country_n for_o money_n and_o why_o probable_o in_o no_o course_n of_o time_n that_o can_v happen_v he_o will_v send_v any_o to_o england_n on_o that_o errand_n ib._n and_o p._n 80._o in_o the_o 4_o the_o year_n of_o richard_n the_o 2_o d_o the_o clergy_n confess_v they_o have_v a_o 3_o d_o part_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o then_o consent_v to_o pay_v a_o 3_o d_o of_o the_o tax_n ib._n bishop_n sanderson_n mention_n the_o monastic_a revenue_n to_o be_v half_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o kingdom_n ib._n the_o not_o provide_v for_o the_o augmentation_n of_o the_o poor_a living_n in_o england_n observe_v to_o be_v a_o scandal_n to_o the_o reformation_n p._n 81._o of_o 8000_o and_o odd_a parish_n church_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n but_o 600_o be_v observe_v to_o afford_v a_o competent_a maintenance_n to_o a_o minister_n and_o four_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o live_n than_o not_o worth_a above_o 10_o l._n a_o year_n in_o the_o king_n book_n ib._n during_o the_o late_a usurpation_n the_o impropriate_a tithe_n save_v the_o other_o ib._n a_o million_o of_o pound_n sterling_n common_o observe_v to_o accrue_v to_o the_o pope_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la from_o indulgency_n p._n 87._o a_o account_n of_o the_o compact_a between_o some_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a presbyterian_a divine_n and_o the_o long_a parliament_n by_o which_o the_o parliament_n be_v oblige_v to_o settle_v on_o the_o ministry_n all_o the_o church_n land_n and_o those_o divine_n engage_v to_o promote_v the_o parliament_n cause_v and_o of_o the_o result_n thereof_o p._n 88_o observation_n on_o the_o calculation_n of_o the_o monastic_a revenue_n make_v in_o the_o year_n 1527_o by_o mr._n simon_n fish_n in_o his_o book_n call_v the_o supplication_n of_o beggar_n and_o which_o calculation_n be_v much_o value_v by_o harry_n the_o 8_o the_o p._n 90_o 91._o not_o only_o none_o of_o our_o monkish_a historian_n but_o even_o of_o our_o polish_a and_o ingenious_a one_o make_v any_o estimate_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o time_n they_o write_v of_o ib._n a_o calculation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o religious_a person_n or_o regulars_n in_o england_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o dissolution_n of_o monastery_n p._n 92._o a_o calculation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o secular_o as_o well_o as_o regulars_n that_o then_o live_v in_o celibacy_n ib._n the_o author_n calculation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o levite_n and_o of_o their_o quota_fw-la of_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o land_n p._n 93._o a_o calculation_n of_o the_o ebb_n of_o the_o coinage_n of_o england_n from_o may_n 1657_o to_o november_n 1675_o p._n 102._o a_o particular_a account_n of_o cromwell_n the_o usurper_n depress_v the_o trade_n of_o the_o european_a world_n p._n 103._o the_o king_n of_o spain_n impose_v pension_n on_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n to_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o value_n p._n 104._o the_o proportion_n of_o papist_n and_o non-papists_a by_o the_o bishop_n survey_v in_o the_o year_n 1676_o be_v 150_o non-papists_a for_o one_o papist_n ib._n the_o people_n in_o the_o province_n of_o holland_n reckon_v to_o be_v 2_o million_o 4_o hundred_o thousand_o ib._n the_o people_n in_o flanders_n in_o the_o year_n 1622_o reckon_v to_o be_v 700,000_o p._n 105._o amsterdam_n in_o the_o year_n 1650_o reckon_v to_o have_v in_o it_o 300000_o soul_n ib._n a_o account_n of_o what_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o holland_n in_o the_o year_n 1664_o do_v over_o and_o above_o the_o custom_n and_o other_o demesne_n of_o the_o earl_n and_o state_n of_o holland_n pay_v towards_o the_o public_a charge_n namely_o to_o the_o state_n of_o holland_n to_o the_o admiralty_n of_o the_o maze_n to_o the_o admiralty_n of_o
part_n of_o its_o patrimony_n queen_n elizabeth_n alienate_v to_o secure_v the_o protestant_a religion_n ib._n the_o fear_n of_o popery_n further_o censure_v p._n 198._o ridly_n and_o latimer_n prophesy_v at_o the_o stake_n that_o protestancy_n will_v never_o be_v extinguish_v in_o england_n p._n 198._o roger_n holland_n prophesy_v at_o the_o stake_n at_o smithfield_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o last_o that_o shall_v there_o suffer_v martyrdom_n ib._n observation_n on_o the_o natural_a prophesy_v of_o die_a man_n and_o its_o effect_n p._n 199._o the_o vanity_n of_o man_n trouble_v the_o world_n by_o supposition_n ib._n and_o p._n 200._o it_o be_v a_o degree_n of_o madness_n to_o trouble_v it_o by_o put_v wanton_a impossible_a case_n p._n 200._o the_o author_n without_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o prophecy_n and_o only_o by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n presage_v that_o the_o excessive_a fear_n of_o popery_n as_o we●l_v as_o its_o danger_n will_v here_o be_v exterminate_v ib._n the_o justice_n of_o the_o claim_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o first_o to_o the_o title_n of_o martyr_n assert_v p._n 201_o 202_o 203._o the_o author_n judge_v that_o some_o vile_a nominal_a protestant_n by_o the_o publication_n of_o many_o seditious_a pamphlet_n have_v give_v the_o government_n a_o just_a alarm_n of_o their_o design_n against_o it_o p._n 203._o of_o papist_n and_o protestant_n be_v antagonist_n in_o shamm_n p._n 204._o mr._n nye_n cite_v for_o represent_v the_o dissenter_n act_v by_o the_o jesuit_n in_o think_v it_o unlawful_a to_o hear_v the_o sermon_n of_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 204._o false_a witness_n among_o the_o jew_n allow_v against_o false_a prophet_n p._n 205._o the_o earl_n of_o anglesy_n courage_n and_o justice_n assert_v in_o the_o profess_v in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n his_o disbelief_n of_o such_o a_o irish_a plot_n as_o be_v swear_v by_o the_o witness_n though_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o reality_n of_o such_o a_o plot_n have_v obtain_v the_o vote_n of_o every_o one_o else_o in_o both_o house_n ib._n above_o 2000_o irish_a papist_n in_o the_o barony_n of_o enishoan_n demean_v themselves_o civil_o to_o the_o english_a during_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o rebellion_n ib._n several_a eminent_a ingenious_a papist_n in_o england_n and_o foreign_a part_n celebrate_v for_o their_o avow_a candour_n to_o protestant_n p._n 206_o 207_o 208_o etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr ossat_n acquaint_v the_o pope_n that_o if_o his_o holiness_n be_v king_n of_o france_n he_o will_v show_v the_o same_o kindness_n to_o the_o huguenot_n that_o harry_n the_o four_o do_v p._n 208._o cromwell_n be_v necessitate_v to_o keep_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n divide_v be_v likewise_o necessitate_v to_o keep_v up_o all_o religion_n according_a to_o the_o politic_n of_o julian_n p._n 211._o of_o the_o papist_n call_v king_n james_n julian_n ib._n the_o author_n inveigh_v against_o the_o calumny_n of_o any_o protestant_n who_o call_n any_o one_o apostate_n for_o the_o alteration_n of_o his_o judgement_n in_o some_o controvertible_a point_n of_o faith_n between_o papist_n and_o protestant_n ib._n the_o author_n reason_n why_o it_o be_v foolish_a to_o fear_v that_o any_o rightful_a prince_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n persuasion_n that_o can_v come_v here_o will_v follow_v the_o politic_n of_o julian_n ib._n it_o be_v show_v that_o any_o protestant_a usurper_n here_o must_v act_v à_fw-fr la_fw-fr julian_n ib._n the_o usurper_n cromwell_n show_v to_o be_v a_o fautor_n of_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n by_o the_o attestation_n of_o mr._n prynn_n and_o the_o lord_n hollis_n p._n 212_o 213._o the_o danger_n of_o popery_n that_o will_v have_v ensue_v lambert_n usurpation_n p._n 213_o 214._o how_o true_a soever_o any_o usurper_n religion_n be_v he_o must_v be_v false_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n p._n 214._o observe_v that_o the_o king_n long_a parliament_n by_o the_o act_n for_o the_o test_n do_v enjoin_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n to_o be_v take_v ib._n those_o oath_n lay_v on_o the_o taker_n a_o obligation_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n without_o any_o distinction_n of_o the_o religion_n true_a or_o pretend_a of_o such_o heir_n and_o successor_n ib._n mr._n prynn_n book_n call_v concordia_n discor_n print_v anno_fw-la 1659._o to_o prove_v the_o obligation_n by_o those_o o●hs_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n commend_v ib._n the_o author_n mention_n the_o reason_n that_o induce_v he_o to_o write_v casuistical_o concern_v such_o obligation_n and_o promise_v to_o send_v that_o his_o write_n to_o his_o lordship_n ib._n the_o author_n judge_v that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v severe_a to_o any_o papist_n before_o he_o have_v a_o moral_a certainty_n of_o such_o papist_n have_v imbibe_v any_o of_o the_o principle_n imputable_a to_o p●pery_n that_o be_v unmoral_a or_o inhuman_a ib._n the_o author_n observe_v that_o few_o or_o no_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v late_o think_v fit_a by_o their_o pen_n to_o assert_v the_o inheritable_a right_n of_o prince_n without_o respect_n to_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n they_o may_v hold_v p._n 215._o the_o author_n think_v that_o for_o a_o protestant_n at_o this_o time_n to_o write_v for_o the_o divest_v any_o roman_a catholic_n prince_n of_o his_o property_n and_o right_n of_o succession_n when_o few_o or_o no_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n either_o do_v or_o dare_v for_o fear_v of_o offend_v the_o pope_n employ_v their_o pen_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o such_o his_o property_n and_o right_n without_o respect_n to_o to_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n he_o may_v hold_v be_v like_o draw_v against_o a_o naked_a man_n ib._n de_fw-fr ossat_n affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o whole_a court_n of_o rome_n hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o deprive_v a_o prince_n of_o any_o country_n to_o preserve_v it_o from_o heresy_n ib._n a_o animadversion_n on_o a_o late_a pamphlet_n concern_v the_o succession_n ib._n reflection_n on_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o proceed_n in_o the_o exclusion_n bill_n ib._n and_o p._n 216._o the_o author_n give_v a_o explanatory_a account_n of_o the_o tempus_fw-la acceptabile_fw-la he_o in_o p._n 25_o mention_n p._n 216._o his_o majesty_n constant_a contend_v for_o the_o protestant_a faith_n celebrate_v and_o likewise_o his_o justice_n in_o preserve_v the_o property_n of_o the_o succession_n in_o the_o legal_a course_n by_o all_o his_o message_n to_o the_o parliament_n p._n 217._o the_o unhappy_a state_n of_o that_o prince_n who_o shall_v for_o fear_n of_o the_o populace_n do_v any_o act_n of_o the_o justice_n whereof_o he_o doubt_v and_o much_o more_o of_o the_o injustice_n whereof_o he_o be_v full_o convince_v p._n 217._o at_o large_a the_o caution_n to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n apply_v to_o such_o a_o prince_n viz._n hold_v fast_o that_o which_o thou_o have_v that_o no_o man_n take_v away_o thy_o crown_n ib._n at_o large_a it_o be_v not_o only_a popery_n but_o atheism_n in_o masquerade_n to_o do_v a_o unjust_a act_n to_o support_v religion_n p._n 218._o king_n james_n disavow_v the_o act_n of_o his_o son-in_a law_n accept_v the_o title_n of_o king_n of_o bohemia_n ib._n a_o observation_n that_o in_o the_o common-prayer_n in_o king_n charles_n the_o 1_o st_n time_n relate_v to_o the_o royal_a family_n the_o prayer_n run_v for_o frederick_n prince_n palat●ine_a elector_n of_o the_o rhine_n and_o the_o lady_n elizabeth_n his_o wife_n ib._n the_o author_n observe_v that_o in_o the_o assembly_n directory_n the_o lady_n elizabeth_n be_v style_v queen_n of_o bohemia_n p._n 219._o a_o account_n of_o the_o government_n avow_v sense_n in_o king_n james_n time_n that_o any_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o england_n ought_v not_o by_o become_v roman_n catholic_n to_o be_v prejudice_v in_o their_o right_n of_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n ib._n the_o same_o sense_n of_o the_o government_n in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o 1_o sy_n ib._n the_o parliament_n during_o the_o civil_a war_n project_v not_o any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o right_n of_o succession_n on_o the_o account_n of_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n p._n 220._o mention_v of_o somewhat_o more_o to_o confirm_v the_o claim_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o 1_o sy_n to_o the_o title_n of_o martyr_n beside_o his_o adhesion_n to_o episcopacy_n and_o its_o revenue_n ib._n a_o account_n of_o the_o protestation_n of_o the_o nonconform_a minister_n in_o the_o year_n 1605_o relate_v to_o the_o king_n supremacy_n wherein_o they_o assert_v the_o royal_a authority_n inseparable_o fix_v to_o the_o true_a line_n whatever_o religion_n any_o prince_n thereof_o may_v profess_v p._n 221._o the_o author_n pe●stringeth_v the_o protestant_n will_v be_v his_o and_o new_a statist_n of_o the_o age_n that_o will_v for_o religionary_a tenet_n bar_v any_o of_o the_o
religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v natural_o pierce_v through_o the_o side_n and_o root_n of_o protestant_a recusancy_n ib._n the_o number_n of_o the_o non_fw-fr conformist_n be_v daily_o decay_v ib._n there_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1593._o judge_v to_o be_v in_o england_n 20000_o brownist_n ib._n the_o gross_a of_o the_o number_n of_o nonconformist_n always_o consist_v chief_o of_o artisan_n and_o retail-trader_n in_o corporation_n p._n 281._o they_o be_v very_o numerous_a there_o before_o the_o king_n restoration_n ib._n a_o new_a way_n by_o which_o their_o number_n and_o potency_n may_v easy_o there_o be_v diminish_v ib._n the_o author_n judge_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o old_a law_n against_o protestant_a recusant_n to_o be_v necessary_a p._n 282._o the_o lord_n keeper_n puckering_n speech_n of_o the_o ill_a behaviour_n of_o the_o puritan_n in_o 88_o refer_v to_o ib._n the_o prudence_n and_o justice_n of_o the_o king_n measure_n assert_v as_o to_o the_o not_o repeal_n the_o statute_n against_o protestant_a recusant_n ib._n the_o peace_n of_o munster_n observe_v to_o have_v remove_v the_o popular_a fear_n abroad_o in_o case_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o lawful_a prince_n differ_v in_o judgement_n from_o the_o religion_n establish_v p._n 283._o the_o author_n of_o the_o catholic_n apology_n with_o a_o reply_n cite_v for_o there_o not_o be_v one_o priest_n one_o mass_n one_o conversion_n more_o in_o england_n in_o the_o year_n after_o the_o declaration_n of_o indulgence_n then_o in_o any_o year_n of_o trouble_n p._n 284._o the_o author_n mention_v the_o soft_a and_o gentle_a disposition_n of_o bellarmine_n p._n 284._o the_o author_n reflect_v on_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n with_o sharpness_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n of_o inquisition_n have_v do_v ib._n the_o author_n disow_v all_o acerbity_n and_o rancour_n relate_v to_o the_o usage_n of_o any_o papist_n ib._n he_o observe_v that_o the_o put_v roman_a catholic_n priest_n here_o to_o death_n do_v propagate_v their_o religion_n ib._n the_o author_n observe_v that_o a_o english_a priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v do_v he_o the_o honour_n to_o adopt_v as_o his_o own_o many_o passage_n of_o the_o author_n long_o since_o print_v that_o be_v dissuasive_a of_o the_o use_n of_o force_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n p._n 284._o observe_v that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o every_o man_n to_o be_v guide_v by_o his_o private_a judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v hardly_o possible_a to_o acquit_v our_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n ib._n the_o author_n not_o incline_v to_o be_v severe_a to_o any_o papist_n for_o be_v in_o any_o tenet_n that_o may_v proper_o be_v call_v religion_n guide_v by_o his_o private_a judgement_n to_o receive_v the_o guidance_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ib._n the_o custom_n of_o author_n of_o large_a discourse_n publish_v together_o with_o they_o a_o review_n ib._n he_o promise_v to_o the_o earl_n of_o anglesy_n a_o review_n of_o this_o discourse_n p._n 285._o the_o author_n will_v in_o a_o short_a review_n explain_v some_o passage_n on_o occasion_n and_o add_v other_o ib._n if_o he_o doubt_v of_o any_o thing_n or_o shall_v alter_v his_o opinion_n of_o any_o thing_n therein_o he_o will_v in_o the_o review_n acquaint_v his_o lordship_n why_o he_o do_v so_o ib._n the_o author_n think_v that_o as_o none_o but_o coward_n be_v cruel_a so_o none_o but_o dunce_n be_v positive_a ib._n c2_n r_o dieu·et·mon·droit_fw-fr honi·soit·qvi·mal·y·pense_v devon_n jan._n 27._o 1680._o my_o lord_n as_o to_o the_o candour_n of_o the_o english_a nation_n that_o be_v former_o so_o very_o extraordinary_a and_o the_o whiteness_n and_o sweetness_n of_o the_o temper_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n that_o do_v add_v to_o the_o represent_v it_o a_o land_n flow_v with_o milk_n and_o honey_n and_o to_o the_o make_v it_o like_o the_o galaxy_n to_o have_v one_o brightness_n from_o thousand_o of_o fix_a star_n place_v so_o high_a by_o nature_n that_o they_o can_v not_o suffer_v the_o least_o eclipse_n by_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n we_o may_v well_o since_o the_o publish_v of_o the_o horrid_a affidavit_fw-la of_o the_o infamous_a person_n and_o so_o many_o value_v themselves_o as_o the_o best_a of_o man_n upon_o their_o believe_v what_o be_v swear_v by_o the_o worst_a lament_v the_o temporary_a decay_n of_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o english_a good_a nature_n and_o they_o who_o know_v your_o lordship_n and_o consequent_o know_v you_o to_o be_v a_o steadfast_a approver_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v reason_n more_o particular_o to_o be_v sensible_a of_o what_o concern_v you_o in_o that_o calumnious_a affidavit_fw-la because_o the_o wretch_n presume_v therein_o to_o fasten_v on_o your_o lordship_n the_o sanbenito_n of_o a_o court_n of_o rome_n papist_n and_o to_o represent_v you_o as_o a_o favourer_n of_o popery_n or_o the_o papal_a usurpation_n that_o be_v in_o harry_n the_o 8th_n time_n hence_o exterminate_v and_o as_o a_o endeavorer_n to_o stifle_v the_o evidence_n about_o the_o plot_n notify_v by_o the_o government_n for_o the_o recall_v that_o kind_n of_o popery_n although_o i_o know_v no_o christian_n more_o tender_o incline_v then_o your_o lordship_n to_o show_v all_o christian_a indulgence_n to_o the_o person_n of_o popish_a and_o protestant_n recusant_n and_o have_v sometime_o observe_v your_o lordship_n while_o you_o be_v wish_v that_o none_o of_o the_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o tridentine_a creed_n be_v by_o any_o believe_v yet_o out_o of_o tenderness_n to_o the_o person_n of_o devout_a and_o loyal_a papist_n with_o great_a reason_n to_o wish_v likewise_o that_o no_o odium_n may_v come_v to_o such_o from_o the_o name_n of_o popery_n for_o their_o profession_n of_o such_o tenet_n as_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o greek_a and_o other_o church_n who_o yearly_o curse_v the_o pope_n and_o be_v so_o curse_v by_o he_o yet_o none_o need_v doubt_v but_o that_o your_o lordship_n will_v as_o much_o as_o any_o man_n account_v it_o the_o opus_fw-la diei_fw-la by_o all_o due_a mean_n to_o oppose_v all_o plot_a design_n whatsoever_o to_o retrieve_v the_o papal_a power_n of_o usurp_a over_o the_o crown_n or_o conscience_n my_o lord_n there_o be_v some_o among_o we_o who_o will_v usurp_v on_o and_o appropriate_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n and_o thing_n of_o protestancy_n and_o will_v be_v think_v the_o only_a true_a protestant_n and_o will_v be_v monopolist_n of_o all_o the_o heat_n and_o light_n against_o popery_n but_o as_o i_o shall_v make_v bold_a to_o come_v in_o for_o my_o share_n with_o they_o so_o i_o shall_v yet_o acquaint_v your_o lordship_n that_o if_o i_o may_v in_o any_o part_n of_o this_o letter_n to_o you_o seem_v with_o any_o excess_n of_o passion_n to_o reflect_v on_o popery_n i_o shall_v before_o i_o take_v leave_n of_o you_o afford_v you_o such_o a_o patriotly_n and_o gentlemanly_a reason_n of_o my_o warmth_n against_o it_o as_o i_o think_v have_v not_o by_o other_o be_v give_v nor_o particular_o by_o some_o pedantic_a anti-papists_a who_o render_v their_o conversation_n nauseous_a by_o their_o eternal_a talk_n of_o nothing_o but_o popery_n and_o while_o they_o be_v neglectful_a of_o all_o the_o due_a mean_n to_o prevent_v its_o growth_n these_o thing_n be_v therefore_o premise_v i_o shall_v in_o despite_n of_o the_o affidavit_fw-la say_v that_o i_o will_v be_v the_o last_o man_n in_o england_n who_o shall_v believe_v that_o my_o lord_n privy_a seal_n can_v be_v such_o a_o court_n of_o rome-papist_n i_o think_v it_o be_v st._n augustine_n who_o meaning_n well_o in_o a_o pang_n of_o zeal_n cry_v out_o on_o one_o occasion_n credo_fw-la quia_fw-la impossibile_fw-it est_fw-la but_o i_o shall_v both_o as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o depose_n or_o impose_v doctrine_n and_o of_o your_o lordship_n believe_v it_o ground_n my_o disbelief_n on_o the_o impossibility_n of_o either_o when_o i_o hear_v man_n say_v they_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o exert_n of_o a_o miraculous_a power_n divine_a that_o the_o globe_n of_o the_o earth_n hang_v in_o the_o air_n without_o fall_v i_o interrupt_v not_o their_o thought_n of_o devotion_n but_o know_v that_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v balance_v by_o its_o own_o weight_n can_v fall_v but_o it_o must_v fall_v into_o heaven_n coelum_fw-la undique_fw-la sursum_fw-la and_o shall_v any_o one_o tell_v i_o of_o your_o lordship_n fall_v into_o any_o gross_a erroneous_a doctrinal_a opinion_n i_o who_o have_v long_o observe_v the_o constant_a tendency_n of_o your_o understanding_n towards_o the_o centre_n of_o truth_n can_v apprehend_v any_o danger_n of_o your_o fall_n from_o it_o so_o likewise_o when_o i_o hear_v man_n impute_v it_o
of_o cattle_n by_o pasture_n hinder_v that_o increase_n of_o man_n that_o the_o advancement_n of_o tillage_n will_v have_v produce_v and_o the_o furnish_n the_o crown_n with_o more_o subsidy_n man_n and_o soldiers_z but_o this_o supineness_n of_o our_o king_n be_v not_o only_o cause_v by_o superstition_n and_o a_o vitiate_a fancy_n in_o religion_n a_o idol_n to_o which_o philip_n the_o second_o sacrifice_v his_o son_n and_o therefore_o may_v be_v well_o suppose_v prevalent_a with_o other_o to_o wish_v the_o generation_n of_o their_o child_n or_o subject_n restrain_v but_o our_o king_n be_v not_o then_o stimulate_v by_o necessity_n to_o promote_v the_o populousness_n of_o their_o realm_n for_o that_o their_o riches_n and_o strength_n depend_v on_o comparison_n the_o same_o religious_a order_n do_v by_o celibate_n and_o depopulation_n equal_o obstruct_v the_o wealth_n and_o power_n of_o the_o neighbour_a kingdom_n as_o well_o as_o this_o and_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o be_v not_o our_o over-match_n but_o the_o course_n of_o increase_a generation_n have_v operate_v so_o far_o as_o to_o awaken_v the_o world_n and_o man_n for_o not_o have_v so_o much_o elbow-room_n as_o they_o have_v jostle_v one_o another_o by_o the_o violence_n of_o war_n the_o politic_n of_o statute_n against_o depopulation_n be_v force_v and_o reinforce_v on_o this_o realm_n and_o like_o as_o man_n so_o too_o will_v such_o statute_n beget_v one_o another_o as_o i_o may_v say_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n nor_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o kingdom_n ever_o likely_a again_o to_o be_v real_o emasculate_v by_o such_o as_o pretend_v to_o make_v themselves_o eunuch_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n sake_n and_o honour_v not_o the_o founder_n of_o christianity_n of_o who_o since_o he_o for_o the_o good_a of_o mankind_n make_v his_o first_o disciple_n fisher_n of_o man_n it_o may_v seem_v unworthy_a that_o he_o shall_v intend_v the_o hurt_n of_o state_n and_o kingdom_n by_o make_v the_o follow_a doctor_n of_o his_o church_n pastor_n of_o sheep_n sir_n thomas_n moor_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o utopia_n do_v with_o a_o sharpness_n worthy_a his_o excellent_a wit_n tell_v we_o that_o certain_a abbot_n holy_a man_n god_n wot_v not_o profit_v but_o much_o damnify_v the_o common_a wealth_n leave_v no_o ground_n for_o tillage_n they_o enclose_v all_o in_o pasture_n they_o throw_v down_o house_n they_o pull_v down_o town_n and_o leave_v nothing_o stand_v but_o only_o the_o church_n to_o make_v of_o it_o a_o sheep-house_n and_o afterward_o say_v that_o one_o shepherd_n be_v enough_o to_o eat_v up_o that_o ground_n with_o cattle_n to_o the_o occupy_v whereof_o about_o husbandry_n many_o hand_n be_v requisite_a and_o he_o in_o that_o book_n call_v the_o friar_n errones_fw-la maximos_fw-la and_o desire_v they_o may_v be_v treat_v like_o vagabond_n and_o sturdy_a beggar_n and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n contrive_v a_o model_n of_o the_o priesthood_n so_o as_o not_o to_o make_v it_o such_o a_o nuisance_n to_o the_o civil_a government_n as_o the_o papal_a one_o be_v according_o as_o have_v be_v before_o discourse_v for_o one_o of_o his_o fundamental_o there_o be_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v very_o few_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v choose_v by_o the_o people_n like_o other_o magistrate_n and_o with_o secret_a voice_n and_o enjoin_v to_o his_o priest_n marriage_n and_o make_v they_o to_o be_v promote_v to_o no_o power_n but_o only_o to_o honour_v sir_n thomas_n more_o it_o seem_v be_v far_o then_o from_o write_v at_o the_o pope_n foot_n the_o character_n that_o be_v afterward_o give_v to_o bellarmine_n style_n and_o there_o be_v as_o little_a occasion_n for_o a_o peace-maker_n interposal_n between_o he_o and_o fish_n as_o be_v between_o two_o wrangle_a lawyer_n at_o a_o bar._n but_o the_o matter_n be_v well_o mend_v with_o our_o english_a world_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o supplication_n of_o beggar_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o healthy_a and_o robu_v plebs_fw-la of_o our_o nation_n that_o till_o the_o earth_n and_o plough_n the_o sea_n and_o who_o by_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o money_n current_n come_v to_o their_o hand_n have_v fortify_v their_o vital_a spirit_n with_o good_a diet_n there_o be_v finis_fw-la litium_fw-la and_o a_o end_n of_o such_o lamentation_n as_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o supplication_n to_o the_o king_n in_o part_n before_o refer_v mention_n viz._n most_o lamentable_o complain_v of_o their_o woeful_a misery_n to_o your_o highness_n your_o poor_a daily_a beadsman_n the_o wretched_a hideous_a monster_n on_o who_o scarce_o for_o horror_n any_o eye_n dare_v look_v the_o foul_a unhappy_a sort_n of_o leper_n and_o other_o sore_a people_n needy_a impotent_a blind_a lame_a and_o sick_a etc._n etc._n how_o that_o their_o number_n be_v daily_o so_o sore_o increase_v that_o all_o the_o alm_n of_o all_o the_o well_o dispose_v people_n of_o this_o your_o realm_n be_v not_o half_a enough_o to_o sustain_v they_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o their_o indigence_n be_v extreme_a when_o they_o be_v to_o glean_v not_o only_o after_o the_o reap_v of_o the_o monk_n but_o after_o the_o ecclesiastic_a beggar_n the_o fratres_n mendicantes_fw-la or_o as_o they_o be_v then_o call_v manducantes_fw-la have_v be_v satiate_v in_o diebus_fw-la illis_fw-la and_o when_o holy_a church_n almost_o engross_v not_o only_o the_o wealth_n but_o the_o beg_n in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o he_o who_o now_o look_v on_o our_o english_a infantry_n when_o they_o turn_v their_o ploughshare_n into_o sword_n will_v see_v nothing_o of_o the_o horror_n of_o starveling_n in_o their_o face_n and_o the_o writ_n de_fw-fr leproso_fw-la amovendo_fw-la be_v in_o effect_n obsolete_a in_o nature_n as_o that_o too_o de_fw-mi haeretico_fw-la comburendo_fw-la be_v abrogate_a and_o within_o the_o term_n of_o about_o twenty_o year_n that_o the_o observator_fw-la of_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n refer_v his_o calculation_n to_o he_o mention_n but_o six_o of_o 229150_o die_v of_o the_o leprosy_n what_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n in_o france_n may_v contain_v about_o death_n by_o the_o leprosy_n happen_v there_o in_o late_a year_n i_o know_v not_o but_o do_v suppose_v that_o the_o general_a scourge_n appear_v in_o the_o skin_n of_o the_o pesantry_n there_o condemn_v to_o sell_v their_o birthright_n of_o nature_n for_o no_o pottage_n and_o to_o eat_v little_a of_o the_o corn_n they_o sow_v and_o to_o drink_v as_o little_a of_o the_o vine_n they_o plant_v and_o to_o taste_v little_a of_o flesh_n save_o what_o they_o have_v in_o alm_n from_o the_o basket_n of_o the_o abbey_n and_o who_o be_v diet_v only_o for_o vassalage_n may_v be_v a_o indication_n of_o the_o leprosy_n have_v still_o its_o former_a effect_n among_o they_o but_o our_o english_a husbandman_n be_v both_o better_a feed_v and_o teach_v and_o the_o poor_a people_n here_o have_v so_o much_o of_o brown_a bread_n and_o the_o gospel_n that_o by_o the_o calculation_n on_o our_o bill_n of_o mortality_n it_o appear_v that_o for_o so_o many_o year_n pass_v but_o one_o of_o four_o thousand_o be_v starve_v it_o be_v therefore_o i_o think_v by_o instinct_n of_o nature_n that_o our_o yeomanry_n in_o the_o country_n though_o not_o addict_v to_o mind_n niceness_n of_o controversy_n in_o religion_n nor_o to_o be_v dealer_n in_o the_o protestant_a faith_n by_o retail_n be_v great_a wholesale_n trader_n in_o it_o and_o will_v as_o soon_o suffer_v their_o plough_n to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n as_o their_o bible_n from_o under_o their_o arm_n and_o they_o have_v be_v general_o observe_v since_o the_o plot_n and_o some_o year_n before_o to_o manifest_v in_o common_a discourse_n their_o robu_v abhorrence_n of_o popery_n as_o suppose_v that_o under_o that_o religion_n they_o can_v neither_o save_v their_o soul_n nor_o their_o bacon_n doleman_n alias_o parson_n in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n speak_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n here_o make_v it_o very_o considerable_a in_o that_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o country_n people_n that_o live_v out_o of_o city_n and_o great_a town_n in_o which_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o english_a force_n be_v wont_a to_o consist_v be_v much_o affect_v ordinary_o to_o their_o religion_n mean_v the_o popish_a religion_n by_o reason_n the_o preacher_n of_o the_o contrary_a religion_n be_v not_o so_o frequent_a with_o they_o as_o in_o town_n etc._n etc._n but_o be_v he_o now_o alive_a he_o will_v find_v the_o scene_n of_o thing_n change_v in_o our_o country_n church_n since_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n in_o who_o reign_n a_o book_n be_v print_v anno_fw-la 1585._o call_v a_o lamentable_a complaint_n of_o the_o commonalty_n by_o way_n of_o supplication_n to_o the_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n for_o a_o learned_a ministry_n he_o will_v find_v
revenue_n of_o the_o demolish_a monastery_n be_v as_o my_o lord_n herbert_n in_o his_o harry_n the_o 8_o the_o make_v it_o 1_o hundred_o 61_o thousand_o pound_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la and_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n about_o triple_a to_o that_o sum_n viz._n about_o 450000_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la and_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n between_o triple_a and_o quadruple_a to_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n viz._n one_o million_o 6_o hundred_o thousand_o pound_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la but_o careful_a calculator_n in_o these_o time_n have_v compute_v the_o same_o to_o be_v about_o 8_o million_o per_fw-la annum_fw-la which_o be_v quintuple_a to_o the_o say_v 1_o million_o 6_o hundred_o thousand_o pound_n above_o mention_v and_o as_o to_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o trade_n and_o traffic_n of_o england_n encrease_v since_o the_o reformation_n little_o more_o need_v be_v add_v to_o what_o i_o have_v before_o discourse_v then_o that_o the_o custom_n which_o when_o queen_n elizabeth_n come_v to_o the_o crown_n make_v but_o 36000_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la be_v since_o 1660_o farm_a at_o 4_o hundred_o thousand_o pound_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la and_o have_v since_o that_o time_n make_v about_o double_a that_o sum._n and_o because_o she_o foresee_v that_o that_o branch_n of_o the_o revenue_n will_v both_o support_v the_o crown_n and_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o kingdom_n i_o mean_v its_o ship_n and_o seaman_n she_o wise_o provide_v for_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o custom_n and_o navigation_n in_o her_o own_o and_o future_a time_n by_o the_o plant_v of_o virginia_n and_o be_v the_o foundress_n of_o our_o trade_n in_o the_o american_n plantation_n that_o be_v at_o this_o day_n so_o beneficial_a to_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o where_o no_o foreigner_n can_v trade_n without_o his_o majesty_n leave_n and_o therefore_o the_o freight_n both_o outward_o and_o homeward_o be_v restrain_v to_o our_o own_o ship_n and_o where_o the_o scene_n of_o intercourse_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o genius_n of_o so_o many_o of_o our_o protestant_a trader_n of_o england_n and_o not_o trouble_v they_o with_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o religion_n or_o with_o the_o study_n of_o the_o language_n of_o popish_a country_n and_o as_o in_o any_o great_a important_a undertake_n the_o first_o projector_n or_o undertaker_n do_v usual_o but_o lie_v the_o foundation_n of_o gain_n for_o the_o next_o comer_n thus_o too_o do_v providence_n order_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o spanish_a acquest_n of_o america_n which_o be_v so_o fatal_a to_o the_o diminution_n of_o the_o strength_n of_o spain_n and_o fortunate_a to_o the_o increase_n of_o that_o of_o england_n and_o it_o be_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n that_o she_o be_v so_o prosperous_a in_o her_o mighty_a attempt_n of_o advance_v trade_n and_o navigation_n it_o be_v notorious_a how_o by_o make_v her_o realm_n and_o asylum_n to_o foreign_a oppress_a protestant_n she_o enrich_v it_o with_o the_o manufacture_n they_o introduce_v in_o her_o great_a town_n and_o city_n and_o where_o the_o value_n of_o house-rent_n be_v by_o that_o mean_v raise_v the_o manufacturer_n be_v enforce_v to_o work_v hard_a and_o the_o increase_n of_o their_o corporal_a hard_a labour_n do_v tend_v to_o the_o increase_n of_o their_o generation_n and_o populacy_n as_o it_o do_v among_o the_o israelite_n in_o egypt_n and_o it_o have_v a_o great_a tend_v to_o that_o effect_n in_o regard_n that_o our_o people_n in_o their_o town_n be_v their_o own_o taskmaster_n and_o can_v console_n themselves_o with_o the_o thought_n not_o of_o go_v but_o be_v go_v out_o of_o egypt_n and_o they_o be_v render_v the_o more_o industrious_a by_o the_o know_a that_o they_o be_v secure_a from_o have_v the_o fruit_n of_o their_o labour_n sweep_v away_o from_o themselves_o and_o their_o child_n by_o arbitrary_a confessor_n and_o priest_n a_o thing_n that_o be_v practise_v by_o those_o who_o former_o make_v england_n in_o effect_n but_o a_o province_n to_o rome_n and_o when_o more_o money_n be_v export_v hence_o by_o appeal_n and_o application_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n then_o be_v here_o import_v from_o ireland_n and_o when_o as_o in_o turkey_n man_n be_v dicourage_v from_o enrich_v themselves_o through_o industry_n and_o improvement_n by_o the_o grand_a signior_n be_v the_o general_a heir_n our_o forefather_n too_o be_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o much_o here_o in_o the_o same_o capacity_n in_o fine_a the_o value_n of_o the_o benefice_n of_o the_o divine_n in_o those_o great_a town_n be_v partly_o increase_v by_o the_o grow_a number_n of_o the_o people_n and_o their_o riches_n and_o partly_o by_o their_o liberal_a contribution_n do_v invite_v thither_o such_o man_n of_o learning_n to_o the_o pastorage_n of_o soul_n as_o do_v by_o their_o fame_n invite_v more_o inhabitant_n and_o do_v keep_v up_o those_o town_n by_o the_o cement_n of_o religion_n in_o such_o a_o state_n that_o they_o be_v seminary_n of_o knowledge_n to_o the_o adjacent_a country_n and_o even_a magazine_n of_o war_n for_o the_o prince_n occasion_n as_o well_o as_o storehouse_n of_o manufacture_n to_o be_v export_v and_o for_o this_o purpose_n archbishop_n grindal_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o queen_n elizabeth_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1580_o print_v in_o fuller_n church_n history_n speak_v of_o able_a minister_n be_v place_v in_o all_o parish_n and_o of_o the_o benefit_n thereof_o redound_v to_o prince_n by_o their_o subject_n obedience_n to_o they_o sai_z no_o prince_n ever_o have_v more_o lively_a experience_n hereof_o than_o your_o majesty_n have_v have_v in_o your_o time_n and_o may_v have_v daily_o and_o if_o your_o majesty_n come_v to_o the_o city_n of_o london_n never_o so_o often_o what_o gratulation_n what_o joy_n what_o concourse_n of_o people_n be_v there_o to_o be_v see_v yea_o what_o acclamation_n and_o prayer_n to_o god_n for_o your_o long_a life_n and_o other_o manifest_a signification_n be_v there_o to_o be_v hear_v of_o inward_a and_o unfeigned_a love_n with_o most_o humble_a and_o hearty_a obedience_n whereof_o come_v this_o madam_n but_o of_o the_o continual_a preach_v of_o god_n word_n in_o that_o city_n whereby_o the_o people_n have_v be_v plentiful_o instruct_v in_o their_o duty_n towards_o god_n and_o your_o majesty_n on_o the_o contrary_a what_o breed_v the_o rebellion_n in_o the_o north_n be_v it_o not_o papistry_n and_o ignorance_n of_o god_n word_n through_o want_n of_o often_o preach_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o rebellion_n be_v not_o all_o man_n of_o all_o state_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n most_o ready_a to_o offer_v their_o life_n for_o your_o defence_n insomuch_o that_o one_o parish_n of_o yorkshire_n which_o by_o continual_a preach_v have_v be_v better_o instruct_v then_o the_o rest_n halifax_n i_o mean_v be_v ready_a to_o bring_v 3_o or_o 4000_o able_a man_n into_o the_o field_n to_o serve_v you_o against_o the_o say_a rebel_n etc._n etc._n as_o i_o before_o observe_v that_o the_o reformation_n bring_v we_o at_o the_o first_o step_n out_o of_o a_o blind_a chaos_n into_o a_o paradise_n of_o knowledge_n so_o i_o may_v add_v that_o at_o the_o next_o it_o conduct_v we_o to_o that_o blessing_n of_o paradise_n be_v fruitful_a and_o multiply_v and_o replenish_v the_o earth_n and_o subdue_v it_o and_o have_v dominion_n over_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea._n no_o soon_o have_v the_o reformation_n under_o that_o great_a queen_n clear_v the_o head_n of_o her_o subject_n but_o it_o enlarge_v their_o heart_n and_o substitute_v in_o man_n a_o new_a brave_a and_o generous_a spirit_n in_o lieu_n of_o that_o dull_a and_o formal_a and_o lethargic_a one_o that_o possess_v they_o under_o the_o captivity_n of_o their_o blind_a guide_n and_o they_o account_v their_o all_o and_o even_o the_o world_n too_o little_a for_o their_o prince_n and_o they_o make_v her_o exchequer_n as_o spacious_a as_o her_o kingdom_n and_o the_o english_a commerce_n as_o wide_a as_o the_o world._n navigation_n and_o navigator_n be_v her_o favourite_n and_o her_o great_a state_n man_n walsingham_n by_o her_o command_n animate_v frobisher_n to_o attempt_v the_o discovery_n of_o a_o near_a passage_n to_o cathay_n and_o china_n without_o go_v so_o far_o about_o as_o by_o the_o cape_n of_o good_a hope_n and_o he_o give_v not_o over_o that_o design_n till_o after_o three_o voyage_n and_o the_o death_n of_o walsingham_n and_o the_o success_n of_o her_o politic_n and_o of_o the_o reformation_n have_v in_o despite_n of_o all_o the_o power_n of_o rome_n and_o spain_n terminate_v in_o such_o a_o multiply_a of_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n as_o probable_o render_v they_o more_o numerous_a than_o the_o people_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n which_o heylin_n in_o his_o geography_n make_v to_o have_v only_o eight_o
of_o enemy_n a_o name_n that_o the_o impotent_a passion_n of_o subject_n make_v they_o so_o familiar_o vex_v one_o another_o with_o and_o thereby_o show_v they_o not_o such_o fit_a depositary_n of_o heaven_n artillery_n as_o sovereign_n be_v so_o be_v it_o extreme_o unbecoming_a the_o glorious_a height_n to_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o cross_n have_v exalt_v humane_a nature_n for_o man_n as_o i_o may_v say_v to_o descend_v from_o heaven_n to_o earth_n for_o dirt_n and_o to_o hell_n for_o firebrand_n to_o throw_v at_o one_o another_o and_o petulant_o to_o call_v those_o that_o be_v sometime_o alien_n and_o enemy_n in_o their_o mind_n etc._n etc._n always_o such_o after_o the_o divine_a reconciliation_n or_o even_o to_o manage_v the_o most_o lawful_a and_o just_a war_n sine_fw-la quadam_fw-la bene_fw-la volentiâ_fw-la as_o st._n austin_n word_n be_v or_o to_o think_v that_o they_o can_v just_o assume_v the_o great_a name_n first_o use_v at_o antioch_n and_o yet_o retain_v a_o constant_a and_o state_v enmity_n against_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o for_o according_a to_o the_o excellent_a say_n of_o tertullian_n christianus_n nullius_fw-la est_fw-la hostess_fw-la but_o the_o bosom_n of_o that_o wise_a princess_n be_v no_o rest_a place_n for_o anger_n and_o all_o the_o pope_n thunder_n can_v not_o discompose_v she_o and_o as_o in_o all_o game_n they_o who_o in_o their_o play_n retain_v a_o constant_a equabillity_n of_o mind_n be_v general_o most_o successful_a so_o be_v she_o in_o the_o great_a political_a game_n she_o play_v by_o be_v semper_fw-la eadem_fw-la and_o the_o papal_a excommunication_n seem_v to_o she_o as_o despicable_a as_o the_o curse_n of_o lose_v gamester_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o by_o her_o prudent_a and_o just_a administration_n of_o the_o government_n of_o church_n and_o state_n she_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o english_a nation_n be_v semper_fw-la eadem_fw-la in_o the_o royal_a line_n and_o of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v so_o too_o and_o that_o no_o delendam_fw-la fore_fw-la can_v issue_v out_o against_o either_o human_o speak_v and_o that_o any_o popish_a successor_n that_o can_v come_v here_o will_v find_v it_o his_o interest_n to_o use_v the_o politic_n of_o queen_n mary_n as_o a_o sea_n mark_v to_o avoid_v and_o queen_n elizabeth_n as_o a_o land_n mark_n to_o go_v by_o and_o it_o be_v clear_a according_o as_o sir_n w._n p._n in_o his_o manuscript_n discourse_v call_v verbum_fw-la sapienti_fw-la demonstrate_v it_o cap._n 2._o of_o the_o value_n of_o the_o people_n that_o each_o head_n of_o mankind_n be_v as_o certain_o valuable_a as_o land_n that_o the_o many_o stranger_n who_o have_v transplant_v themselves_o hither_o need_v never_o fear_v that_o they_o will_v be_v so_o undervalue_v as_o in_o the_o marian_n day_n the_o family_n of_o french_a protestant_n that_o have_v late_o come_v here_o have_v fill_v 800._o of_o the_o empty_a new_o build_v house_n of_o london_n and_o have_v give_v we_o too_o a_o occasion_n of_o entertain_v angel_n in_o those_o untenanted_a house_n who_o ruinous_a appearance_n before_o make_v they_o seem_v to_o the_o vulgar_a such_o as_o they_o call_v haunt_v but_o from_o which_o no_o prince_n can_v ever_o think_v of_o exorcise_a the_o inhabitant_n without_o conjure_v away_o his_o own_o revenue_n of_o which_o about_o one_o moiety_n depend_v on_o that_o city_n and_o where_o the_o rent_n though_o fall_v as_o i_o say_v will_v yet_o have_v be_v much_o low_a but_o for_o the_o tenancy_n of_o these_o foreigner_n and_o the_o expectation_n of_o other_o there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a precedent_n in_o our_o english_a story_n and_o that_o be_v of_o a_o prince_n of_o the_o popish_a persuasion_n and_o yet_o one_o who_o be_v a_o sharp_a persecuter_n of_o the_o extravagance_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n and_o one_o who_o by_o the_o introduce_v of_o forreignor_n here_o to_o manufacture_n our_o wool_n save_v the_o life_n or_o be_v of_o the_o nation_n trade_n which_o his_o predecessor_n have_v leave_v in_o a_o gasp_v condition_n and_o one_o who_o by_o his_o patronise_a of_o wiclif_n sufficient_o show_v that_o if_o those_o foreigner_n have_v be_v wiclifist_n he_o will_v yet_o have_v be_v a_o fautor_n of_o those_o heretic_n and_o one_o who_o more_o disoblige_v the_o pope_n by_o seize_v on_o the_o land_n of_o the_o alien_a orthodox_n clerical_a idler_n than_o he_o can_v have_v do_v by_o the_o entertainment_n of_o many_o heterodox_n lie_v alien_a manufacturer_n it_o be_v needless_a to_o say_v that_o i_o here_o mean_v our_o great_a edward_n the_o three_o of_o who_o and_o of_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o prudence_n be_v as_o memorable_a as_o of_o any_o prince_n that_o ever_o sit_v on_o the_o english_a throne_n and_o i_o will_v never_o despair_v of_o any_o heroic_a prince_n here_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n persuasion_n with_o his_o sceptre_n uphold_v the_o trade_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o those_o two_o great_a name_n do_v and_o that_o too_o by_o the_o same_o method_n if_o ever_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o find_v it_o in_o the_o totter_a conditon_n that_o they_o do_v and_o it_o may_v be_v well_o suppose_v that_o the_o experience_n the_o kingdom_n have_v since_o gain_v under_o king_n james_n and_o the_o royal_a martyr_n and_o his_o present_a majesty_n of_o the_o public_a benefit_n that_o have_v arisen_a from_o the_o reception_n of_o foreign_a artist_n who_o have_v be_v heterodox_n in_o some_o ritual_a point_n about_o our_o religion_n will_v make_v their_o expulsion_n seem_v a_o solecism_n and_o every_o sagacious_a person_n will_v i_o believe_v accord_n with_o i_o that_o the_o spider_n have_v do_v much_o more_o good_a to_o humane_a kind_n by_o furnish_v it_o with_o the_o invention_n of_o weave_v than_o harm_n by_o any_o thing_n of_o poison_n i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o know_v from_o your_o lordship_n whether_o on_o your_o search_n among_o the_o record_n of_o state_n either_o in_o the_o exchequer_n or_o paper-office_n you_o can_v find_v footstep_n of_o any_o thing_n like_o those_o return_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n in_o london_n mention_v out_o of_o howel_n and_o cotton_n i_o be_o sure_a that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o number_n of_o our_o people_n ought_v by_o statesman_n to_o be_v account_v their_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o this_o conjuncture_n as_o the_o opus_fw-la diei_fw-la and_o to_o pass_v no_o long_o for_o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o those_o of_o they_o who_o take_v their_o measure_n either_o of_o the_o public_a strength_n or_o revenue_n without_o respect_n to_o this_o be_v but_o state-e●thusiasts_a and_o such_o who_o in_o their_o reckon_n do_v according_a to_o our_o common_a phrase_n reckon_v without_o their_o host_n and_o do_v not_o govern_v their_o politic_n by_o the_o arithmetic_n the_o scripture_n suggest_v in_o the_o question_n of_o what_o king_n go_v to_o make_v war_n against_o another_o king_n sit_v not_o down_o first_o and_o consult_v whether_o he_o be_v able_a with_o ten_o thousand_o to_o meet_v he_o that_o come_v against_o he_o with_o twenty_o thousand_o bodin_n in_o his_o de_fw-la republicâ_fw-la speak_v of_o the_o number_v of_o the_o people_n sai_z that_o the_o benefit_n that_o redound_v to_o the_o public_a thereby_o be_v infinite_a and_o that_o thereby_o prince_n and_o state_n know_v what_o soldier_n they_o may_v have_v and_o what_o number_n they_o may_v send_v abroad_o to_o collony_n i_o have_v be_v inform_v by_o a_o person_n belong_v to_o the_o custom-house_n that_o near_o 10000_o person_n have_v have_v their_o name_n enter_v as_o go_v out_o of_o the_o port_n of_o london_n and_o bristol_n for_o our_o plantation_n in_o a_o year_n time_n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o the_o number_n be_v great_a that_o then_o go_v away_o thither_o from_o other_o port_n and_o likewise_o of_o such_o that_o go_v from_o london_n and_o the_o out-port_n who_o name_n be_v not_o enter_v but_o i_o be_v not_o a_o little_a surprise_v of_o late_a when_o i_o read_v it_o in_o a_o book_n new_o print_v call_v the_o negro_n and_o indian_n advocate_n and_o dedicate_v to_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n where_o the_o author_n pag._n 171._o speak_v of_o the_o kidnappir_n trade_n or_o mystery_n say_v a_o trade_n that_o it_o be_v thought_n carry_v off_o and_o consume_v not_o so_o little_a as_o 10000_o out_o of_o this_o kingdom_n yearly_a which_o may_v have_v be_v a_o defence_n to_o their_o mother_n country_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v certain_o a_o sign_n that_o we_o be_v very_o rich_a in_o the_o number_n of_o our_o people_n when_o we_o can_v endure_v such_o a_o quantity_n of_o they_o to_o be_v yearly_o steal_v without_o the_o pursuit_n of_o a_o hue_n and_o cry._n yet_o in_o this_o point_n scotland_n be_v report_v to_o be_v somewhat_o more_o unhappy_a than_o england_n for_o those_o who_o
can_v not_o have_v be_v conduct_v so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v by_o any_o private_a person_n the_o book_n call_v popery_n absolute_o destructive_a to_o monarchy_n print_v in_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1673._o show_n the_o danger_n of_o ordinary_a magistrate_n intermeddle_v with_o the_o number_n of_o papist_n in_o particular_a parish_n by_o instance_a p._n 115._o how_o when_o the_o long_a parliament_n be_v first_o call_v justice_n howard_n be_v order_v to_o deliver_v up_o a_o catalogue_n of_o all_o recusant_n within_o the_o liberty_n of_o westminster_n to_o prevent_v which_o mr._n john_n james_n a_o zealous_a popist_n stab_v the_o justice_n in_o westminster-hall_n and_o sir_n george_n wharton_n in_o his_o gesta_fw-la britannorum_fw-la say_v anno_fw-la 1640._o november_n 21._o justice_n howard_n assault_v and_o stab_v in_o westminster-hall_n it_o seem_v that_o justice_n of_o peace_n as_o well_o as_o justice_n godfrey_n find_v what_o it_o be_v to_o anger_v st._n peter_n and_o so_o have_v that_o noble_a earl_n do_v i_o believe_v by_o some_o papist_n murder_v his_o reputation_n and_o sham_v the_o blood_n of_o godfrey_n on_o he_o in_o vallanous_a pamphlet_n of_o which_o i_o hear_v that_o 32000_o be_v disperse_v in_o one_o week_n and_o that_o it_o appear_v at_o a_o honourable_a committee_n that_o no_o inconsiderable_a quantity_n of_o they_o be_v disperse_v by_o cely_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o the_o time_n that_o be_v take_v for_o discover_v the_o number_n both_o of_o papist_n and_o other_o dissenter_n be_v most_o proper_a in_o regard_n that_o the_o declaration_n of_o indulgence_n visit_v they_o as_o with_o a_o sunshine_n after_o the_o rain_n invite_v they_o out_o of_o their_o recess_n to_o appear_v abroad_o visible_o and_o as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o another_o sense_n be_v to_o move_v out_o of_o their_o hole_n like_o worm_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o as_o if_o any_o man_n will_v give_v himself_o the_o trouble_n to_o essay_n the_o number_n of_o the_o worm_n that_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n the_o proper_a time_n for_o that_o his_o affect_a curiosity_n will_v be_v after_o the_o rain_n make_v the_o earth_n soft_a and_o the_o sun_n then_o warm_v it_o have_v invite_v those_o animal_n to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n the_o which_o lie_v within_o a_o few_o foot_n of_o the_o surface_n of_o it_o so_o for_o the_o above_o reason_n be_v the_o investigation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n most_o proper_o time_v i_o be_o therefore_o of_o opinion_n with_o the_o aforesaid_a dr._n that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v near_o the_o matter_n retain_v with_o truth_n and_o that_o their_o number_n be_v still_o wane_v and_o will_v be_v so_o more_o and_o more_o but_o in_o some_o accidental_a conjuncture_n of_o time_n a_o late_a author_n have_v publish_v it_o that_o in_o england_n in_o these_o twenty_o year_n last_o past_o 250_o family_n of_o the_o gentry_n and_o 12_o of_o the_o nobility_n have_v quit_v the_o profession_n of_o popery_n and_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v affirm_v as_o some_o considerate_a papist_n have_v do_v that_o the_o number_n here_o of_o secret_n papist_n and_o who_o go_v not_o to_o mass_n be_v as_o great_a as_o the_o number_n of_o the_o profess_a one_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n have_v be_v in_o this_o discourse_n represent_v so_o much_o great_a than_o it_o be_v in_o former_a estimate_n the_o number_n of_o secret_n papist_n cast_v into_o that_o of_o the_o know_a one_o will_n perhaps_o signify_v little_a more_o than_o the_o dust_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o nation_n their_o number_n that_o do_v somewhat_o increase_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o conjuncture_n of_o their_o petulant_a insolence_n that_o go_v before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o popish_a plot_n as_o the_o purple_n smallpox_n and_o other_o malignant_a disease_n forerun_v the_o plague_n do_v sensible_o and_o sudden_o decay_v by_o the_o change_n of_o the_o air_n that_o the_o loyal_a long_a parliament_n and_o its_o act_n of_o the_o test_n make_v just_a as_o the_o observator_fw-la of_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n have_v let_v we_o see_v that_o by_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o change_n and_o disposition_n in_o the_o air_n the_o plague_n do_v by_o sudden_a jump_v start_v back_o in_o a_o very_a few_o day_n time_n from_o vast_a number_n to_o very_o small_a one_o insomuch_o that_o present_o after_o the_o break_n out_o of_o the_o plot_n they_o take_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o detection_n of_o the_o paucity_n of_o their_o number_n that_o the_o earl_n of_o danby_n aforesaid_a prudence_n have_v make_v as_o thence_o to_o raise_v a_o argument_n ab_fw-la impossibili_fw-la that_o they_o shall_v design_v a_o plot_n to_o turn_v the_o tide_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o nation_n and_o thus_o as_o man_n once_o pass_v the_o value_v themselves_o on_o the_o charm_n and_o vigour_n of_o youth_n do_v it_o for_o the_o reverence_n of_o their_o old_a age_n and_o hope_v to_o be_v the_o better_o treat_v as_o guest_n in_o the_o world_n for_o the_o shortness_n of_o the_o time_n they_o be_v to_o stay_v in_o it_o they_o do_v resemble_o too_o look_n big_a upon_o the_o smallness_n of_o their_o num●e●s_n the_o author_n therefore_o of_o the_o compendium_n print_v anno_fw-la 1679_o tell_v we_o à_fw-fr propos_fw-fr p._n 85_o that_o there_o be_v not_o 50000_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n in_o england_n man_n woman_n and_o child_n and_o that_o agree_v well_o enough_o with_o the_o survey_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o of_o that_o religion_n in_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n of_o the_o age_n of_o communicant_n and_o admit_v the_o total_a of_o such_o to_o be_v double_v on_o the_o account_n of_o papist_n below_o the_o age_n of_o sixteen_o a_o account_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v admit_v the_o observator_fw-la on_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n have_v teach_v we_o as_o aforesaid_a that_o there_o be_v in_o nature_n about_o as_o many_o under_o the_o age_n of_o 16_o as_o above_o it_o and_o with_o the_o make_v the_o total_a of_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o province_n of_o york_n according_a to_o fuller_n equal_a to_o that_o in_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n throughout_o england_n will_v appear_v to_o be_v probable_o near_o what_o the_o author_n of_o the_o compendium_n have_v estimate_v that_o their_o number_n do_v considerable_o decrease_v after_o the_o fermentation_n in_o people_n mind_n relate_v to_o religion_n follow_v the_o declaration_n of_o indulgence_n and_o after_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o parliament_n to_o papist_n thereby_o occasion_v a_o convince_a argument_n may_v be_v have_v from_o the_o letter_n of_o mr._n coleman_n the_o which_o do_v confute_v several_a imp●tations_n of_o it_o in_o mr._n marvel_n growth_n of_o popery_n to_o the_o king_n minister_n better_a than_o any_o apology_n can_v have_v do_v and_o have_v enable_v fame_n to_o trumpet_v they_o forth_o to_o posterity_n as_o confessor_n who_o envy_n here_o whisper_v to_o be_v traditor_n and_o let_v the_o present_a age_n see_v that_o their_o allege_a close_v with_o popery_n be_v but_o in_o the_o way_n of_o contend_a wrestler_n and_o not_o of_o friendly_a embracer_n and_o no_o doubt_n then_o but_o the_o many_o dependent_n and_o follower_n those_o minister_n have_v and_o the_o candidate_n for_o their_o favour_n and_o expectant_n of_o office_n thereby_o be_v then_o enemy_n to_o all_o implicit_a faith_n but_o only_o for_o what_o they_o think_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o chief_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o le_fw-fr cheese_n of_o september_n 29_o 1675_o he_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n treasurer_n lord_n keeper_n and_o duke_n of_o lauderdale_n be_v become_v as_o fierce_a apostle_n and_o as_o zealous_a for_o protestant_a religion_n and_o against_o popery_n as_o ever_o my_o lord_n arlington_n be_v before_o they_o and_o in_o pursuance_n thereof_o persuade_v the_o king_n to_o issue_v out_o those_o severe_a order_n and_o proclamation_n against_o catholic_n which_o come_v out_o in_o february_n last_o by_o which_o they_o do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v to_o extirpate_v all_o catholic_n and_o catholic_n religion_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o he_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o internuntio_fw-la of_o the_o 5_o of_o february_n 1674_o 5_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o king_n have_v sign_v a_o proclamation_n last_o wednesday_n to_o banish_v all_o the_o priest_n native_n of_o this_o kingdom_n to_o forbid_v all_o subject_n to_o hear_v mass_n in_o the_o queen_n chapel_n and_o at_o the_o house_n of_o ambassador_n to_o bring_v home_o all_o the_o youth_n that_o be_v now_o out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o any_o popish_a college_n to_o prosecute_v all_o person_n as_o to_o their_o estate_n according_a to_o the_o law_n which_o be_v so_o insupportable_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o that_o be_v reach_v by_o they_o
some_o papist_n who_o name_n the_o age_n rise_v up_o to_o for_o their_o great_a advancement_n of_o real_a learning_n i_o mean_v peiresk_n descartes_n gassendus_fw-la mersennus_n have_v as_o much_o tenderness_n for_o any_o differ_v in_o judgement_n from_o they_o as_o protestant_n can_v have_v and_o that_o mighty_a hunter_n after_o knowledge_n peiresk_n be_v so_o far_o from_o eagerness_n in_o pursue_v the_o blood_n of_o heretic_n that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o judge_n for_o capital_a cause_n in_o france_n he_o will_v always_o come_v off_o the_o bench_n when_o sentence_n of_o death_n be_v to_o be_v give_v though_o against_o the_o most_o outrageous_a murderer_n and_o he_o always_o carry_v in_o his_o mind_n a_o charity_n large_a enough_o to_o embrace_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o maintain_v a_o constant_a correspondence_n with_o salmasius_n causabon_n and_o other_o protestant_n and_o do_v put_v grotius_n on_o the_o writing_n his_o de_fw-fr jure_fw-la belli_fw-la &_o pacis_fw-la that_o have_v teach_v more_o civility_n to_o nation_n than_o the_o modern_a papal_a christianity_n have_v do_v and_o who_o have_v there_o so_o perfect_o manumit_v secular_a magistrate_n from_o be_v oblige_v implicit_o to_o execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o ecclesiastic_a judge_n that_o he_o have_v there_o assert_v it_o l._n 2._o c._n 26._o 26._o 4._o quin_fw-la probabile_fw-la est_fw-la etiam_fw-la carnifici_fw-la qui_fw-la damnatum_fw-la occisurus_fw-la est_fw-la hoc_fw-la tenus_fw-la aut_fw-la quaestioni_fw-la &_o act_n inter_fw-la fuerit_fw-la aut_fw-la ex_fw-la rei_fw-la confession_n cognita_fw-la esse_fw-la debere_fw-la causae_fw-la merita_fw-la ut_fw-la satis_fw-la ei_fw-la constet_fw-la mortem_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la commeritam_fw-la idque_fw-la nonnullis_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la observatur_fw-la nec_fw-la aliud_fw-la spectat_fw-la lex_fw-la hebraea_n cum_fw-la ad_fw-la lapidandum_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la damnatus_fw-la est_fw-la testes_fw-la vult_fw-la prodire_fw-la populo_fw-la deut._n 17._o by_o the_o seven_o verse_n of_o that_o chapter_n the_o hand_n of_o the_o witness_n be_v to_o be_v first_o on_o he_o to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n which_o law_n no_o doubt_n have_v the_o effect_n of_o a_o caveat_n with_o man_n against_o their_o ambitus_fw-la of_o the_o stand_a office_n of_o witness_n by_o tack_v thereunto_o the_o stand_a office_n of_o executioner_n moreover_o both_o common_a observation_n and_o cursory_a look_v into_o book_n and_o indeed_o common_a sense_n will_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o papal_a principle_n do_v not_o oblige_v man_n at_o once_o to_o fence_v against_o heretic_n life_n and_o against_o impossibility_n nor_o to_o endanger_v themselves_o by_o fight_v with_o the_o windmill_n in_o heretic_n brain_n that_o great_a cardinal_n de_fw-fr ossat_n who_o i_o have_v so_o often_o here_o cite_v and_o who_o be_v so_o renown_v for_o his_o probity_n as_o well_o as_o comprehensive_a knowledge_n of_o matter_n of_o state_n do_v in_o the_o 86th_o letter_n that_o be_v to_o villeroy_n in_o the_o year_n 1597._o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o his_o discourse_n with_o the_o pope_n on_o the_o occasion_n of_o his_o holiness_n angry_o resent_v harry_n the_o 4th_n observe_v the_o edict_n of_o pacification_n and_o that_o de_fw-fr ossat_n thereupon_o say_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o peace_n of_o france_n that_o the_o edict_n shall_v be_v observe_v that_o for_o want_n of_o such_o a_o edict_n france_n have_v not_o be_v quiet_a for_o 35_o year_n that_o the_o date_n of_o the_o edict_n 1577._o show_v it_o be_v not_o the_o present_a king_n but_o the_o late_a king_n 12_o year_n before_o his_o death_n that_o make_v it_o that_o the_o late_a king_n and_o king_n charles_n his_o predecessor_n and_o brother_n do_v not_o make_v such_o edict_n of_o pacification_n with_o their_o good_a like_n and_o frank_o but_o be_v constrain_v to_o it_o by_o necessity_n even_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o the_o realm_n after_o have_v find_v that_o many_o war_n make_v by_o heretic_n serve_v for_o nothing_o but_o in_o many_o place_n to_o abolish_v the_o catholic_n religion_n and_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n justice_n and_o order_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o beside_o that_o necessity_n have_v no_o law_n in_o whatever_o subject_a and_o matter_n it_o be_v jesus_n christ_n have_v teach_v we_o in_o his_o gospel_n to_o tolerate_v the_o chaff_n in_o our_o field_n when_o there_o be_v danger_n of_o pluck_v up_o with_o it_o and_o spoil_v the_o good_a corn_n that_o other_o catholic_n prince_n use_v so_o to_o do_v who_o none_o speak_v ill_o of_o for_o it_o that_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n as_o great_a a_o zealot_n as_o he_o make_v himself_o for_o the_o catholic_a religion_n do_v tolerate_v heretic_n in_o their_o religion_n in_o the_o three_o valley_n of_o italy_n of_o which_o he_o be_v lord_n that_o the_o king_n of_o poland_n do_v as_o much_o not_o only_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sweden_n but_o of_o poland_n that_o all_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n and_o who_o be_v celebrate_v for_o be_v pillar_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v as_o much_o not_o only_o in_o the_o town_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o also_o in_o their_o own_o proper_a estate_n as_o in_o austria_n itself_o from_o whence_o they_o take_v their_o name_n in_o hungary_n bohemia_n moravia_n silesia_n lusatia_n stiria_n carinthia_n and_o croatia_n that_o charles_n the_o 5_o father_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n be_v he_o that_o teach_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o other_o prince_n to_o yield_v to_o such_o a_o necessity_n by_o make_v the_o interim_n that_o every_o one_o know_v even_o after_o his_o have_v conquer_a the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n that_o his_o son_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n at_o this_o day_n who_o be_v repute_v to_o be_v archi-catholic_a and_o to_o uphold_v the_o catholic_a religion_n as_o atlas_n do_v the_o heaven_n do_v yet_o tolerate_v in_o his_o kingdom_n of_o valencia_n and_o granada_n the_o moor_n with_o their_o mahumetanisme_n and_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o heretic_n of_o zealand_n and_o holland_n and_o other_o heretic_n in_o the_o low-countries_n the_o free_a exercise_n of_o their_o pretend_a religion_n if_o they_o will_v for_o the_o future_a acknowledge_v and_o obey_v he_o etc._n etc._n and_o conclude_v his_o discourse_n to_o the_o pope_n say_v that_o the_o king_n able_a counsellor_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o if_o his_o holiness_n see_v thing_n so_o near_o as_o the_o king_n do_v and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v to_o command_n france_n in_o the_o state_n the_o realm_n be_v at_o present_a his_o holiness_n will_v not_o in_o this_o point_n do_v less_o than_o the_o king_n do_v to_o all_o which_o do_v ossat_n say_v the_o pope_n make_v no_o reply_n and_o i_o think_v it_o may_v with_o parity_n of_o reason_n be_v affirm_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n himself_o be_v to_o command_n england_n in_o the_o state_n it_o be_v in_o at_o present_a he_o will_v be_v no_o hammer_n of_o heretic_n so_o as_o to_o knock_v any_o one_o of_o they_o on_o the_o head_n i_o know_v that_o after_o the_o date_n of_o that_o letter_n viz._n anno_fw-la 1597._o of_o de_fw-fr ossat_n last_o mention_v the_o various_a revolution_n in_o christendom_n make_v the_o scene_n of_o the_o toleration_n of_o heterodoxy_n in_o those_o country_n to_o be_v alter_v with_o a_o vengeance_n for_o six_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o de_fw-fr ossat_n viz._n in_o the_o year_n 1610._o king_n philip_n the_o 3d_o of_o spain_n make_v a_o edict_n for_o the_o exterminate_v the_o moor_n with_o their_o mahumetatisme_n out_o of_o his_o realm_n and_o which_o be_v execute_v with_o great_a cruelty_n and_o the_o union_n of_o vtrecht_n enter_v by_o the_o province_n in_o 1579_o and_o the_o blow_v give_v to_o the_o spanish_a monarchy_n by_o queen_n elizabeth_n in_o 1588._o and_o the_o patronage_n the_o unite_a province_n have_v from_o she_o and_o the_o kindness_n they_o find_v from_o harry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n make_v his_o conditional_a offer_n of_o favour_n to_o the_o dutch_a heretic_n not_o thankworthy_a but_o even_o at_o this_o very_a day_n though_o in_o the_o low-countries_n both_o of_o the_o unite_a and_o spanish_a province_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a reciprocal_a liberty_n for_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o state_n and_o for_o the_o protestant_n in_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o spaniard_n yet_o be_v the_o liberty_n not_o equal_a for_o in_o the_o unite_a province_n the_o state_n allow_v the_o papist_n a_o certain_a number_n of_o priest_n to_o officiate_v among_o they_o in_o sacris_fw-la which_o be_v do_v by_o a_o express_a concession_n but_o in_o the_o spanish_a dominion_n there_o be_v no_o such_o concession_n and_o the_o minister_n who_o there_o private_o officiate_v among_o protestant_n do_v it_o at_o their_o peril_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1599_o ferdinand_n of_o austria_n expel_v the_o lutheran_n out_o out_o of_o his_o province_n and_o in_o austria_n bohemia_n
the_o relief_n of_o his_o great_a auditory_a for_o those_o poor_a hugonot_n do_v characterise_v they_o as_o such_o of_o who_o none_o be_v ever_o suspect_v to_o have_v machinate_v any_o thing_n against_o their_o king_n person_n or_o government_n or_o to_o have_v attempt_v the_o burn_a of_o his_o metropolis_n i_o have_v grant_v that_o the_o puritan_n and_o the_o popish_a petitioner_n do_v both_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n james_n his_o reign_n offend_v contra_fw-la bonos_fw-es more_o be_v but_o if_o any_o shall_v ask_v i_o which_o sect_n be_v the_o more_o peccant_a by_o such_o incivility_n i_o will_v say_v that_o in_o one_o regard_v the_o puritan_n be_v so_o for_o that_o they_o be_v breed_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o better_a thing_n but_o that_o in_o another_o regard_n the_o papist_n most_o certain_o be_v so_o if_o thuanus_n may_v be_v believe_v who_o in_o the_o place_n i_o last_o cite_v out_o of_o he_o relate_v to_o the_o gunpowder_n plot_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o their_o petition_v be_v but_o a_o stalking-horse_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v a_o trojan_a horse_n to_o hide_v and_o enclose_v arm_v man_n further_o show_v that_o the_o jesuit_n in_o england_n employ_v one_o private_o into_o spain_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_n with_o letter_n of_o commendation_n to_o creswell_n the_o jesuite_n there_o reside_v to_o negotiate_v with_o the_o government_n there_o to_o send_v a_o army_n into_o england_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n elizabeth_n s_o reign_n and_o that_o afterward_o one_o wright_n be_v send_v into_o spain_n upon_o the_o same_o errand_n and_o that_o then_o likewise_o guy_n faux_n be_v by_o some_o of_o the_o jesuit_n send_v thither_o to_o creswel_o to_o hasten_v the_o design_n and_o that_o faux_n be_v instruct_v to_o take_v care_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v signify_v to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n that_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_o will_v be_v worse_o here_o under_o king_n james_n than_o it_o be_v under_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v effect_v that_o spinola_n shall_v then_o land_v a_o army_n in_o milford_n haven_n and_o then_o say_v the_o great_a historian_n they_o not_o be_v able_a to_o effect_v that_o proceed_v to_o the_o plot_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n the_o popish_a petitioner_n than_o do_v essay_n how_o they_o may_v flectere_fw-la superos_fw-la and_o acheronta_fw-la movere_fw-la at_o the_o same_o time_n but_o in_o truth_n as_o in_o whale-fishing_a it_o be_v customary_a for_o mariner_n apprehend_v danger_n to_o the_o vessel_n from_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o whale_n to_o throw_v out_o a_o empty_a barrel_n into_o the_o sea_n for_o the_o whale_n to_o toss_v about_o on_o the_o water_n and_o to_o receive_v some_o diversion_n from_o it_o that_o while_o he_o be_v so_o divert_v they_o may_v the_o more_o secure_o wound_v he_o with_o their_o dead-doing_a iron_n thus_o do_v the_o papist_n throw_v out_o their_o empty_a petition_n to_o that_o king_n only_o to_o divert_v and_o amuse_v he_o that_o they_o may_v surprise_v he_o with_o the_o ●ate_z they_o intend_v he_o yet_o now_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v put_v the_o interrogatory_n to_o i_o which_o person_n i_o have_v the_o least_o kindness_n for_o namely_o a_o nonconformist_a that_o favour_v the_o doctrine_n of_o resistance_n or_o a_o papist_n that_o believe_v the_o ground_n and_o school-conclusion_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n as_o king_n james_n before_o mention_a expression_n be_v and_o which_o whoever_o do_v he_o say_v can_v neither_o be_v a_o good_a christian_a or_o a_o faithful_a subject_n i_o shall_v by_o way_n of_o answer_n crave_v aid_n from_o a_o judgement_n give_v by_o philip_n of_o macedon_n who_o have_v hear_v the_o merit_n of_o a_o cause_n or_o complaint_n that_o happen_v between_o two_o lewd_a person_n give_v the_o decree_n that_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v present_o fly_v out_o of_o macedon_n and_o that_o the_o other_o shall_v run_v after_o he_o as_o fast_o as_o he_o can_v but_o against_o any_o seditious_a protestant_n i_o will_v wish_v more_o severity_n exercise_v than_o against_o such_o a_o papist_n for_o the_o former_a do_v not_o only_o rebel_v against_o his_o prince_n as_o the_o latter_a but_o do_v according_a to_o iob_n expression_n more_o rebel_n against_o the_o light_n and_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o simulata_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la and_o so_o according_a to_o the_o expression_n before_o mention_v out_o of_o the_o apocalypse_n reward_v she_o as_o she_o have_v reward_v you_o and_o double_a unto_o her_o double_a etc._n etc._n deserve_v to_o be_v double_o punish_v for_o his_o duplex_fw-la iniquitas_fw-la and_o shall_v magnify_v the_o justice_n of_o the_o king_n minister_n do_v to_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n and_o to_o themselves_o when_o in_o any_o conjuncture_n they_o shall_v find_v any_o call_a protestant_n turn_v god_n and_o the_o king_n grace_n into_o wantonness_n and_o religion_n into_o rebellion_n they_o shall_v level_v their_o most_o solicitous_a endeavour_n with_o all_o the_o sharpness_n of_o the_o law_n against_o such_o nominal_a protestant_n for_o then_o the_o salus_fw-la populi_fw-la will_v engage_v they_o as_o the_o physician_n say_v to_o mind_v the_o vrgentius_fw-la symptom_n and_o for_o which_o they_o have_v a_o rule_n that_o cum_fw-la diversae_fw-la repugnantesque_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la committuntur_fw-la indicationes_fw-la parendum_fw-la est_fw-la omnino_fw-la fortioribus_fw-la it_o be_v fit_a i_o shall_v recompense_v the_o trouble_n i_o have_v give_v your_o lordship_n by_o what_o i_o have_v say_v of_o this_o question_n by_o divert_v you_o with_o the_o news_n of_o another_o question_n that_o among_o some_o company_n be_v late_o bandy_v in_o discourse_n here_o between_o a_o papist_n and_o a_o nonconformist_a and_o it_o be_v a_o much_o more_o termagant_n question_v than_o the_o former_a namely_o whether_o popery_n or_o mahumetanism_n be_v the_o wo●st_n i_o be_v sorry_a to_o find_v the_o nonconformist_a to_o give_v his_o judgement_n as_o he_o do_v in_o a_o gross_a and_o undistinguish_a manner_n that_o the_o imposture_n of_o mahomet_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v embrace_v than_o several_a tenet_n he_o name_v in_o popery_n which_o though_o erroneous_a yet_o be_v denominable_a as_o tenet_n of_o religion_n but_o do_v for_o a_o while_o forbear_v give_v my_o opinion_n in_o the_o case_n or_o relieve_v the_o papist_n with_o any_o notion_n of_o i_o though_o i_o find_v the_o nonconformist_a as_o somewhat_o the_o better_a disputant_n press_v too_o hard_o on_o he_o give_v i_o occasion_n to_o have_v do_v it_o than_o if_o i_o will_v i_o call_v to_o mind_n how_o the_o papist_n of_o old_a have_v so_o often_o decide_v it_o that_o heretic_n be_v wo●se_o than_o turk_n or_o infidel_n and_o that_o they_o have_v rank_v our_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o atheism_n since_o i_o allow_v not_o of_o work_n of_o super-erogation_a will_v not_o super-erogate_a in_o be_v too_o hasty_a in_o moderate_v in_o the_o dispute_n thus_o maldona●e_v on_o st._n john_n say_v qui_fw-la catholici_fw-la sunt_fw-la majore_fw-la odio_fw-la calvinistas_n caeterosque_fw-la omnes_fw-la haereticos_fw-la prosequuntur_fw-la quam_fw-la gentiles_n and_o thus_o stapleton_n in_o his_o oration_n or_o speech_n against_o the_o politician_n say_v that_o the_o heretic_n be_v worse_o than_o turk_n and_o mason_n in_o his_o vindiciae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la anglicanae_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o p._n 8._o cite_v gulielm_n reinold_n in_o his_o calv._n turcis_n l._n 1._o c._n 7._o and_o l._n 4._o c._n 11._o for_o say_v religionem_fw-la nostram_fw-la mean_v that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ipsâ_fw-la turcicâ_fw-la esse_fw-la deteriorem_fw-la mason_n further_o bring_v in_o bristo_n say_v religionem_fw-la nostram_fw-la nullam_fw-la esse_fw-la ipsâ_fw-la experientiâ_fw-la prob●ri_fw-la and_o cite_v another_o popish_a author_n for_o say_v protestant_n nullam_fw-la habent_fw-la fidem_fw-la nullam_fw-la spem_fw-la nullam_fw-la charitatem_fw-la nullam_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la nullam_fw-la justificationem_fw-la nullam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la nullum_fw-la altar_n nullum_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la nullum_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la nullam_fw-la religionem_fw-la christum_fw-la nullum_fw-la and_o quote_v cardinal_n alan_n for_o say_v nostram_fw-la liturgiam_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la &_o conciones_fw-la istiusmodi_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la sine_fw-la dulio_fw-it aeternum_fw-la afferunt_fw-la exitium_fw-la the_o well_o mean_v pain_n of_o the_o compiler_n of_o our_o liturgy_n in_o insert_v there_o some_o good_a prayer_n out_o of_o the_o mass_n to_o render_v it_o more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o papist_n be_v it_o seem_v all_o lose_v and_o that_o perhaps_o occasion_v that_o angry_a exclamation_n of_o mr._n cartwright_n of_o old_a that_o in_o ceremony_n we_o ought_v to_o comply_v with_o the_o turk_n rather_o than_o the_o pope_n i_o acquaint_v the_o discourser_n that_o mr._n fox_n in_o the_o edition_n of_o the_o act_n and_o monument_n print_v together_o in_o one_o volume_n in_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1596_o do_v combat_n this_o mighty_a question_n
and_o honourable_a action_n of_o his_o numerous_a ancestor_n be_v make_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o heaven_n to_o point_n at_o he_o as_o the_o centre_n and_o their_o be_v fix_v so_o in_o his_o memory_n that_o we_o can_v well_o think_v of_o his_o think_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o honour_n that_o must_v make_v other_o subject_n pay_v the_o great_a veneration_n of_o his_o high_a birth_n it_o be_v so_o hard_a a_o matter_n even_o for_o the_o flight_n of_o imagination_n with_o the_o exquisiteness_n of_o art_n to_o produce_v thought_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n any_o way_n proportionable_a to_o their_o real_a figure_n that_o i_o have_v observe_v that_o our_o old_a famous_a dramatist_n of_o the_o former_a age_n can_v hardly_o in_o any_o scene_n give_v we_o the_o character_n of_o a_o king_n do_v up_o to_o the_o height_n of_o a_o monarch_n glory_n and_o as_o the_o character_n of_o king_n in_o those_o day_n be_v express_v it_o be_v but_o necessary_a that_o the_o rule_n in_o theater_n shall_v be_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v enter_v there_o with_o loud_a music_n that_o so_o their_o quality_n may_v that_o way_n be_v understand_v it_o be_v then_o no_o marvel_n if_o so_o many_o in_o the_o present_a age_n who_o be_v not_o make_v è_fw-fr meliore_fw-la luto_fw-la and_o who_o education_n be_v low_a and_o who_o soul_n be_v narrow_a can_v comprehend_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o great_a part_n that_o god_n call_v king_n to_o act_n on_o the_o stage_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v especial_o stranger_n to_o the_o great_a thought_n that_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v to_o crown_v the_o soul_n of_o king_n when_o they_o espouse_v a_o religion_n but_o in_o that_o great_a particular_a concern_v of_o prince_n own_v their_o religion_n we_o be_v moral_o bind_v to_o think_v of_o they_o with_o all_o the_o honour_n we_o can_v nor_o to_o repine_v at_o that_o our_o duty_n to_o they_o since_o in_o the_o concern_v of_o religion_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o the_o divine_a life_n we_o be_v to_o honour_v our_o inferior_n and_o can_v without_o profanation_n and_o usurp_a on_o god_n right_o judge_v they_o rash_o we_o be_v not_o to_o think_v that_o our_o honour_v all_o man_n and_o the_o necessary_a part_n of_o that_o duty_n be_v recommend_v to_o we_o by_o way_n of_o council_n in_o order_n to_o a_o more_o perfect_a life_n and_o as_o not_o sub_fw-la peccato_fw-la oblige_v any_o but_o those_o who_o have_v by_o vow_n bind_v themselves_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o same_o but_o we_o be_v to_o esteem_v they_o precept_n and_o proper_o so_o call_v and_o universal_o bind_v and_o as_o necessary_a part_n of_o that_o holiness_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v see_v god._n and_o therefore_o when_o i_o see_v any_o man_n after_o much_o labour_a of_o his_o thought_n to_o have_v change_v the_o profession_n of_o his_o belief_n of_o any_o tenet_n controvert_v among_o christian_n and_o particular_o one_o who_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o own_o the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n purgatory_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o other_o such_o point_n and_o shall_v find_v that_o most_o certain_o that_o it_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v for_o gain_n or_o respect_n to_o temporal_a advantage_n that_o his_o judgement_n appear_v thus_o alter_v nor_o yet_o out_o of_o levity_n and_o natural_a inconstancy_n and_o that_o his_o habitual_a constancy_n and_o steadiness_n in_o all_o measure_n relate_v to_o person_n and_o thing_n long_o by_o i_o observe_v have_v assure_v i_o that_o no_o such_o change_n can_v thence_o proceed_v and_o shall_v further_o observe_v in_o such_o person_n a_o great_a tenderness_n in_o his_o regard_n to_o second_o table_n duty_n than_o before_o and_o that_o his_o inclination_n of_o beneficence_n to_o all_o mankind_n and_o particular_o to_o his_o former_a friend_n now_o differ_v in_o judgement_n from_o he_o have_v not_o be_v tincture_v and_o discolour_v by_o any_o alteration_n of_o his_o notion_n i_o shall_v think_v myself_o under_o various_a moral_a obligation_n to_o honour_v such_o a_o person_n though_o perhaps_o erroneous_o opine_v i_o will_v honour_v he_o for_o his_o discharge_n of_o his_o duty_n in_o try_v all_o thing_n and_o have_v spend_v time_n in_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o religionary_a speculation_n and_o take_v up_o a_o religion_n not_o by_o chance_n as_o most_o orthodox_n religionary_n do_v but_o by_o choice_n i_o will_v honour_v he_o for_o follow_v that_o which_o sanderson_n in_o his_o lecture_n of_o conscience_n call_v the_o next_o and_o immediate_a though_o not_o the_o adequate_a rule_v of_o his_o conscience_n the_o light_n of_o his_o mind_n for_o the_o time_n present_a a_o light_n that_o i_o see_v so_o many_o orthodox_n religionary_n play_v with_o or_o endeavour_v to_o extinguish_v i_o will_v honour_v he_o for_o the_o great_a sacrifice_n i_o think_v that_o he_o honest_o intend_v to_o truth_n and_o to_o offer_v which_o to_o it_o i_o see_v so_o many_o person_n who_o err_v so_o reluctant_o bring_v to_o its_o altar_n i_o mean_v the_o pride_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o humane_a understanding_n by_o a_o recantation_n of_o its_o former_a sentiment_n a_o sacrifice_n that_o to_o he_o who_o consult_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n may_v seem_v as_o unpleasant_a as_o the_o offering_n up_o of_o isaac_n do_v to_o abraham_n and_o since_o to_o presage_v well_o of_o man_n be_v to_o honour_v they_o i_o will_v thus_o in_o the_o case_n of_o such_o a_o person_n who_o have_v thus_o honour_v god_n by_o take_v up_o his_o ●ross_n and_o take_a shame_n to_o himself_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v honour_v he_o and_o judge_n that_o though_o he_o may_v in_o statu_fw-la viatoris_fw-la have_v mistake_v error_n for_o truth_n in_o his_o way_n he_o will_v not_o mistake_v hell_n for_o heaven_n at_o his_o journey_n end_v moreover_o since_o to_o speak_v rash_o to_o or_o of_o any_o man_n be_v a_o dishonour_n to_o they_o i_o will_v not_o only_o not_o dishonour_v such_o a_o person_n by_o determine_v that_o his_o error_n be_v voluntary_a which_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o i_o can_v never_o know_v and_o which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o i_o do_v know_v it_o can_v be_v no_o sin_n but_o will_v pay_v he_o the_o just_a honour_n of_o my_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v involuntary_a as_o know_v that_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o one_o else_o can_v command_v his_o own_o understanding_n and_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o understanding_n be_v such_o that_o it_o can_v no_o more_o apprehend_v thing_n otherwise_o than_o they_o appear_v to_o it_o than_o the_o eye_n see_v other_o colour_n in_o the_o rainbow_n than_o it_o do_v whether_o those_o colour_n be_v real_o there_o or_o no._n moreover_o although_o i_o know_v that_o no_o law_n bind_v without_o a_o promulgation_n and_o that_o that_o promulgation_n of_o divine_a positive_a law_n may_v by_o reason_n of_o man_n diffent_a ability_n of_o understanding_n be_v sufficient_a for_o one_o man_n that_o be_v not_o for_o another_o and_o so_o that_o the_o erroneous_a opinion_n of_o one_o man_n may_v be_v a_o crime_n and_o another_o man_n hold_v the_o ●●me_n opinion_n may_v be_v innocent_a yet_o i_o will_v not_o dishonour_v the_o understanding_n of_o any_o man_n for_o his_o not_o believe_v the_o controvert_v point_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o i_o observe_v other_o man_n of_o great_a intellectual_n profess_v the_o belief_n of_o and_o do_v consider_v that_o as_o the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v so_o the_o influx_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n on_o man_n be_v not_o confine_v to_o the_o excellence_n of_o their_o understanding_n and_o that_o god_n do_v not_o always_o reveal_v his_o mind_n to_o man_n according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o their_o gift_n and_o grace_n and_o that_o when_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n be_v find_v and_o read_v before_o josiah_n hulda_n the_o prophetess_n be_v send_v to_o and_o consult_v though_o there_o be_v prophet_n in_o the_o land_n at_o that_o time_n and_o that_o that_o be_v reveal_v sometime_o to_o nathan_n that_o be_v not_o to_o david_n who_o be_v in_o all_o point_v his_o superior_a i_o will_v according_a to_o what_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o ames_n interpret_v every_o thing_n of_o he_o in_o the_o better_a part_n that_o be_v doubtful_a and_o though_o man_n do_v natural_o think_v themselves_o equal_o wise_a i_o will_v according_a to_o the_o morality_n enjoin_v by_o that_o place_n in_o the_o philippian_n esteem_v he_o better_o than_o myself_o since_o a_o great_a part_n of_o wisdom_n consist_v in_o the_o proportion_v of_o the_o mean_n to_o the_o end_n i_o will_v out_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o my_o own_o frequent_a omission_n in_o that_o kind_n account_v that_o we_o both_o have_v design_v the_o same_o end_n of_o eternal_a
that_o i_o affirm_v therein_o we_o have_v oblige_v ourselves_o to_o by_o our_o oath_n be_v so_o incomparable_o assert_v in_o a_o long_a speech_n of_o that_o great_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n reginaldus_n belnensis_fw-la archbishop_n of_o bourge_n in_o france_n i_o shall_v refer_v any_o one_o to_o it_o as_o print_v in_o ●huanus_n the_o speech_n be_v speak_v in_o a_o famous_a assembly_n and_o on_o a_o great_a occasion_n for_o to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o quiet_a reception_n of_o harry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n while_o a_o protestant_n into_o the_o throne_n and_o it_o be_v frame_v with_o such_o profound_a thought_n of_o loyalty_n and_o with_o such_o extraordinary_a learning_n refer_v both_o to_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o to_o father_n and_o church_n history_n and_o civil_a and_o canon_n law_n and_o with_o such_o close_a and_o nervous_a argumentation_n to_o evince_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o allegiance_n due_a to_o prince_n and_o particular_o without_o any_o respect_n have_v to_o their_o religion_n that_o it_o may_v pass_v for_o one_o of_o the_o best_a bulwark_n of_o absolute_a loyalty_n i_o know_v of_o next_o to_o the_o 13_o of_o the_o roman_n and_o other_o thing_n contain_v in_o holy_a writ_n and_o because_o i_o think_v no_o serious_a christian_a who_o read_v ●t_a will_n ever_o find_v in_o his_o heart_n afterward_o to_o ridicule_n passive_a obedience_n or_o make_v ridiculous_a platform_n of_o conditional_a loyalty_n i_o do_v intend_v to_o translate_v and_o publish_v it_o moreover_o because_o there_o be_v in_o that_o speech_n one_o noble_a peculiar_a character_n of_o the_o moral_a office_n of_o loyalty_n wherein_o it_o be_v pity_n that_o the_o proverbial_a english_a good_a nature_n shall_v in_o any_o man_n come_v short_a of_o that_o of_o the_o french_a civility_n and_o any_o protestant_n loyalty_n of_o a_o roman-catholic_n i_o mean_v that_o arch-bishop_n honour_v the_o mind_n and_o soul_n of_o his_o prince_n who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o church_n and_o even_o then_o vindicate_v he_o from_o heresy_n and_o say_v that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v think_v a_o heretic_n and_o prop_v up_o his_o honourable_a thought_n of_o his_o prince_n with_o a_o quotation_n out_o of_o st._n austin_n viz._n that_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v among_o heretic_n who_o without_o pertinacy_n defend_v his_o opinion_n tho_o erroneous_a &c_n &c_n i_o think_v the_o hang_n up_o so_o great_a a_o picture_n in_o public_a view_n wherein_o that_o man_n of_o god_n do_v with_o such_o exquisite_a draught_n design_n and_o colour_n thus_o paint_v his_o prince_n character_n and_o that_o of_o his_o own_o loyalty_n to_o eternity_n may_v be_v various_o useful_a and_o the_o very_a sight_n of_o the_o great_a colour_n in_o which_o can_v methinks_v but_o raise_v the_o little_a one_o of_o blush_n in_o any_o nominal_a protestant_n who_o do_v with_o such_o foul_a and_o hard_a hand_n handle_v the_o religionary_a concernment_n of_o king_n who_o be_v nominal_a god_n and_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o danger_n of_o heterodoxy_n in_o subject_n and_o in_o prince_n i_o have_v mention_v it_o that_o there_o be_v less_o danger_n of_o any_o prince_n believe_v or_o practise_v what_o may_v favour_v the_o papal_a usurpation_n than_o of_o such_o belief_n or_o practice_n in_o a_o subject_a and_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o instance_n in_o many_o erroneous_a religionary_a tenet_n which_o as_o hold_v by_o party_n among_o subject_n may_v cause_v general_a apprehension_n of_o danger_n but_o from_o which_o as_o hold_v by_o a_o prince_n it_o will_v be_v ridiculous_a to_o fear_v any_o ill_a or_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o prince_n can_v imbibe_n the_o dregs_o of_o those_o tenet_n as_o they_o discriminate_a discontent_a party_n as_o for_o example_n how_o can_v any_o one_o fear_n that_o a_o prince_n by_o believe_v that_o personal_a reign_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n will_v hurt_v his_o own_o government_n or_o that_o a_o prince_n by_o ●eing_v a_o socinian_n ●ould_v hold_v the_o tenet_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o defensive_a war_n or_o that_o a_o prince_n who_o favour_v the_o order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n will_v approve_v of_o their_o te●ets_n of_o calumny_n and_o equivocation_n etc._n etc._n and_o several_a of_o their_o vile_a casuistical_a tenet_n or_o that_o any_o magistracy_n will_v permit_v some_o of_o their_o apology_n and_o particular_o that_o of_o guymenius_n to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o publish_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o country_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o be_v moral_o bind_v to_o make_v a_o great_a difference_n in_o our_o demeanour_n towards_o our_o prince_n when_o suppose_a to_o err_v in_o opinion_n about_o religion_n from_o the_o measure_v we_o be_v allow_v to_o take_v in_o relation_n to_o our_o ●ellow_a subject_n so_o err_v error_n be_v a_o part_n of_o humane_a frailty_n and_o subject_n be_v moral_o bind_v to_o conceal_v the_o frailty_n of_o their_o king_n and_o not_o to_o censure_v or_o publish_v they_o to_o their_o dishonour_n and_o be_v to_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o apologise_v for_o their_o prince_n on_o all_o occasion_n than_o for_o their_o parent_n s●_n peter_n in_o that_o verse_n where_o the_o duty_n of_o honour_v all_o man_n and_o love_a the_o brotherhood_n be_v mention_v subjoin_v a_o particular_a precept_n of_o honour_v the_o king._n we_o be_v never_o to_o think_v of_o the_o heart_n of_o king_n but_o as_o be_v in_o the_o h●nds_n of_o god_n nor_o of_o any_o mist_n of_o error_n that_o may_v be_v in_o their_o head_n without_o think_v of_o the_o ray_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n that_o like_o a_o glory_n surround_v they_o and_o which_o in_o the_o usual_a concourse_n of_o providence_n do_v dissipate_v all_o danger_n from_o any_o error_n within_o they_o though_o in_o man_n belief_n who_o be_v subject_n religionary_a error_n be_v often_o complicate_v with_o irreligionary_a one_o yet_o we_o be_v to_o think_v of_o the_o oil_n of_o the_o lord_n anoint_v as_o uppermost_a and_o appear_v above_o such_o latter_a error_n and_o suppress_v the_o fume_n of_o they_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o prince_n and_o be_v to_o fear_v no_o more_o harm_n from_o the_o person_n of_o our_o prince_n than_o from_o our_o guardian_n angel_n differ_v from_o we_o in_o many_o great_a religionary_a speculation_n and_o be_v to_o think_v with_o honour_n of_o our_o king_n as_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n to_o discern_v between_o good_a and_o bad_a religion_n and_o irreligion_n and_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n for_o any_o not_o to_o imitate_v the_o popish_a archbishop_n aforesaid_a in_o clear_v his_o prince_n though_o of_o another_o communion_n from_o pertinacy_n since_o such_o a_o moral_a defect_n be_v a_o humour_n of_o positiveness_n that_o of_o all_o man_n king_n be_v most_o natural_o free_v from_o and_o who_o become_a dissidence_n of_o their_o own_o understanding_n how_o great_a soever_o be_v conspicuous_a by_o the_o wear_n away_o so_o much_o of_o their_o life_n in_o hear_v the_o advice_n of_o their_o council_n and_o when_o ever_o passive_a obedience_n be_v call_v for_o by_o prince_n and_o must_v be_v ready_o pay_v as_o a_o due_a debt_n we_o be_v even_o then_o to_o strain_v our_o most_o improve_a thought_n to_o find_v a_o honourable_a interpretation_n of_o our_o prince_n action_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o some_o of_o the_o loyal_a nonconformist_n to_o the_o gallican_n church_n have_v do_v as_o appear_v by_o a_o great_a observation_n in_o their_o book_n call_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n a_o book_n that_o maimbourg_n in_o print_n have_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o best_a late_o publish_v by_o their_o party_n viz._n that_o their_o prince_n never_o make_v any_o great_a assault_n on_o the_o papal_a power_n but_o what_o cost_v their_o protestant_a subject_n dear_a this_o this_o be_v loyalty_n worthy_a the_o name_n of_o christian_a and_o after_o all_o if_o yet_o any_o man_n will_v make_v wanton_a supposition_n of_o the_o belief_n or_o practice_n of_o sovereign_n be_v never_o so_o contrary_a to_o religion_n let_v those_o know_v that_o a_o absolute_a and_o irrespective_a loyalty_n be_v that_o which_o by_o these_o oath_n they_o have_v oblige_v themselves_o to_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o attempt_v to_o exclude_v any_o heir_n of_o the_o crown_n from_o his_o birthright_n on_o any_o pretence_n of_o his_o religion_n or_o other_o pretence_n whatsoever_o since_o we_o must_v pay_v a_o absolute_a obedience_n and_o allegiance_n to_o he_o immediate_o on_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o crown_n to_o he_o and_o according_o as_o by_o these_o oath_n we_o have_v oblige_v ourselves_o to_o do_v have_v thus_o in_o these_o conclusion_n assert_v the_o obligation_n relate_v to_o our_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n as_o result_v from_o the_o plain_a and_o genuine_a sense_n of_o the_o
not_o you_o after_o you_o have_v throw_v off_o the_o papal_a power_n of_o exclude_v king_n make_v your_o reformation_n a_o empty_a name_n if_o you_o at_o last_o reform_v yourselves_o into_o popery_n and_o after_o all_o your_o imagine_a conversion_n from_o popery_n we_o shall_v see_v your_o natural_a conversion_n to_o it_o and_o as_o natural_a as_o the_o common_a hieroglyphic_n of_o the_o year_n show_v we_o and_o how_o in_o se_fw-la convertitur_fw-la annus_fw-la the_o truth_n be_v that_o as_o to_o the_o case_n of_o many_o of_o our_o nominal_a protestant_n and_o some_o real_a one_o be_v thus_o deceive_v as_o aforesaid_a in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o exclusion_n there_o lie_v a_o pudet_fw-la haec_fw-la opprobri●_n nobis_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o a_o worse_a opprobrium_fw-la then_o that_o of_o another_o common_a latin_a saying_n stulti_fw-la dum_fw-la vitant_fw-la vitia_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o here_o they_o have_v run_v but_o from_o popery_n to_o popery_n from_o a_o popery_n more_o genteely_a clad_v to_o a_o second-ha●d_a popery_n and_o even_o into_o a_o frippery_n of_o antimonarchial_a notion_n and_o they_o have_v run_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o worst_a part_n of_o popery_n and_o what_o i_o account_v worse_o than_o transubstantiation_n while_o they_o have_v be_v pursue_v the_o magni_fw-la nominis_fw-la umbria_fw-la i_o mean_v the_o shadow_n of_o the_o great_a name_n of_o protestant_n and_o i_o will_v still_o call_v it_o a_o great_a and_o noble_a name_n however_o abuse_v by_o schismatic_n and_o though_o not_o use_v in_o our_o canon_n and_o article_n etc._n etc._n and_o wherein_o we_o soar_v above_o the_o dictate_v of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n and_o the_o distinction_n of_o name_n they_o occasion_v and_o for_o which_o purpose_n our_o great-souled_n bramhall_n in_o the_o title_n page_n of_o his_o just_a vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v the_o quotation_n of_o my_o name_n be_v christian_a my_o surname_n be_v catholic_a by_o the_o one_o i_o be_o know_v from_o infidel_n by_o the_o other_o from_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n but_o yet_o do_v often_o in_o that_o book_n and_o his_o other_o write_n use_v the_o word_n protestant_n for_o such_o who_o have_v laudable_o oppose_v the_o papal_a usurpation_n and_o imposition_n and_o in_o the_o mention_v of_o the_o protestant_a church_n beyond_o sea_n that_o word_n be_v just_o and_o proper_o applicable_a moreover_o our_o great_a chillingwor●h's_n writing_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o protestant_n a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n have_v endear_v that_o name_n as_o well_o as_o his_o own_o to_o we_o thereby_o the_o adherent_n likewise_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v often_o put_v to_o it_o to_o use_v the_o distinction_n of_o protestant_a recusant_n to_o speak_v intelligible_o but_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england-protestant_n that_o the_o orthodox_n and_o loyal_a general_o mean_a by_o that_o name_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o protestant_n alone_o hear_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o analogum_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la positum_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o these_o protestant_n who_o have_v not_o so_o learned_a christ_n and_o christianity_n as_o to_o be_v untaught_a their_o unnatural_a allegiance_n and_o natural_a obligation_n of_o their_o oath_n that_o it_o may_v be_v observe_v of_o they_o that_o though_o many_o within_o the_o pale_a of_o that_o church_n have_v be_v tempt_v a_o while_n to_o extravagant_a thought_n and_o act_n in_o the_o point_n of_o exclusion_n yet_o they_o have_v through_o the_o divine_a influence_n on_o their_o understanding_n soon_o come_v to_o themselves_o again_o and_o though_o the_o loyalty_n of_o some_o of_o these_o like_a steel_n have_v be_v bend_v yet_o it_o have_v not_o like_o lead_v stand_v and_o continue_v bend_v and_o notwithstanding_o that_o be_v transport_v a_o while_n with_o the_o passion_n of_o anger_n against_o papist_n and_o plot_n they_o say_v in_o their_o haste_n that_o dominion_n be_v found_v in_o grace_n i_o observe_v so_o many_o of_o they_o by_o their_o second_o thought_n so_o averse_a from_o the_o second-hand_n popery_n as_o i_o call_v it_o that_o they_o may_v merit_v a_o exemption_n from_o be_v censure_v by_o papist_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o law_n viz._n quidquid_fw-la calore_fw-la iracundiae_fw-la vel_fw-la fit_a vel_fw-la dicitur_fw-la non_fw-la prius_fw-la ratum_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la si_fw-la perseverantiâ_fw-la apparuit_fw-la judicium_fw-la animi_fw-la fuisse_fw-la ideoque_fw-la brevi_fw-la reversa_fw-la uxor_fw-la nec_fw-la divertisse_fw-la videtur_fw-la and_o here_o i_o be_o likewise_o to_o observe_v that_o though_o many_o who_o have_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o it_o be_v by_o law_n establish_v and_o have_v for_o fashion-sake_n go_v to_o our_o common-prayer_n with_o no_o more_o concernment_n than_o the_o monk_n go_v to_o mass_n who_o say_v eamus_fw-la ad_fw-la communem_fw-la errorem_fw-la yet_o such_o of_o this_o church_n who_o devotion_n have_v be_v deep_o root_v in_o their_o head_n and_o heart_n and_o who_o have_v serious_o think_v of_o those_o word_n in_o the_o collect_n viz._n so_o rule_v the_o heart_n of_o thy_o choose_a servant_n charles_n our_o king_n and_o governor_n etc._n etc._n do_v not_o long_o say_v amen_o to_o any_o man_n thought_n or_o motion_n of_o choose_v their_o king._n let_v rome_n and_o the_o conventicle_n thus_o like_o lead_n stand_v bend_v as_o i_o say_v but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o its_o prayer_n have_v sufficient_o tell_v we_o who_o choose_a servant_n our_o king_n be_v i_o have_v here_o occasion_n to_o refer_v to_o a_o illustrious_a son_n of_o this_o church_n and_o who_o whole_a life_n have_v be_v as_o perfect_v a_o comment_n on_o the_o oath_n and_o moral_a office_n of_o allegiance_n and_o of_o absolute_a and_o unconditional_a loyalty_n as_o any_o can_v be_v and_o more_o useful_a to_o the_o world_n than_o any_o write_a one_o i_o mean_v the_o duke_n of_o ormond_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v but_o justice_n to_o he_o and_o the_o subject_a i_o have_v be_v treat_v of_o for_o i_o here_o to_o cite_v he_o in_o what_o be_v publish_v by_o the_o loyal_a and_o learned_a father_n walsh_n in_o answer_n to_o what_o be_v by_o the_o nuntio_n party_n pretend_v as_o a_o scandal_n namely_o that_o one_o of_o a_o different_a religion_n from_o those_o irish_a papist_n shall_v be_v make_v choice_n of_o to_o govern_v they_o and_o that_o that_o party_n do_v fear_v the_o scourge_v of_o war_n and_o plague_n to_o have_v just_o fal●_n so_o heavy_a on_o they_o and_o some_o evidence_n of_o god_n anger_n against_o they_o for_o put_v god_n cause_n and_o the_o church_n under_o such_o a_o hand_n whereas_o the_o trust_n may_v have_v be_v manage_v in_o a_o catholic_n hand_n under_o the_o king_n authority_n but_o to_o which_o the_o answer_n be_v thus_o with_o great_a loyalty_n and_o judgement_n viz._n now_o at_o length_n they_o be_v come_v plain_o to_o show_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o their_o exception_n to_o we_o which_o they_o have_v endeavour_v all_o the_o whole_a to_o disguise_v under_o the_o personal_a scandal_n they_o have_v endeavour_v to_o cast_v upon_o we_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o scandal_n at_o rome_n for_o make_v choice_n as_o they_o call_v it_o as_o if_o they_o may_v choose_v their_o governor_n of_o one_o of_o a_o different_a religion_n if_o this_o be_v allow_v they_o why_o they_o may_v not_o next_o pretend_v to_o the_o same_o fear_n of_o scandal_n for_o have_v a_o king_n of_o a_o different_a religion_n and_o so_o the_o power_n of_o choose_v one_o of_o their_o own_o religion_n we_o know_v not_o and_o conclude_v with_o a_o observation_n of_o that_o party_n be_v have_v infamous_o practise_v the_o doctrine_n of_o calumny_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o then_o queen_n and_o all_o papist_n therefore_o own_v the_o disloyal_a principle_n of_o that_o party_n have_v thereby_o the_o pudet_fw-la haec_fw-la opprobria_fw-la etc._n etc._n put_v on_o they_o nor_o can_v it_o be_v by_o any_o impartial_a relater_n of_o news_n either_o tell_v at_o gath_n or_o publish_v in_o ascalon_n that_o any_o son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v actual_o 〈◊〉_d in_o think_v they_o may_v choose_v their_o future_a king_n but_o it_o must_v likewise_o there_o be_v say_v how_o the_o father_n and_o divine_n of_o that_o church_n do_v in_o that_o conjuncture_n so_o universal_o and_o with_o such_o a_o impetus_fw-la of_o reason_n and_o scripture_n propagate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o passive_a obedience_n and_o of_o the_o loyalty_n that_o the_o 13_o of_o the_o roman_n and_o our_o oath_n require_v whereby_o the_o popery_n of_o sound_v dominion_n in_o grace_n have_v be_v so_o much_o exterminate_v from_o that_o church_n and_o the_o realm_n that_o the_o very_a sense_n and_o reason_n and_o humour_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n be_v bend_v against_o it_o and_o be_v likely_a to_o be_v so_o
of_o his_o mind_n that_o he_o will_v never_o consent_v to_o any_o such_o thing_n must_v necessary_o appear_v to_o the_o considerate_a a_o scruple_n fit_a to_o be_v throw_v off_o much_o more_o than_o must_v it_o appear_v to_o such_o to_o have_v be_v a_o vile_a scruple_n to_o have_v fancy_v it_o lawful_a to_o pronounce_v man_n enemy_n to_o the_o kingdom_n because_o they_o so_o loyal_o defend_v the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n according_a to_o their_o oath_n in_o that_o hot_a conjuncture_n wherein_o the_o air_n of_o man_n fancy_n be_v so_o general_o infect_v and_o as_o in_o any_o long_a interval_n of_o extreme_a hot_a or_o cold_a weather_n not_o to_o participate_v with_o the_o generality_n of_o man_n body_n in_o some_o sensible_a effect_n of_o it_o will_v argue_v somewhat_o of_o distemper_n in_o one_o constitution_n so_o in_o the_o late_a heat_n of_o the_o populace_n against_o popery_n it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o soundness_n of_o loyalty_n not_o some_o way_n to_o partake_v of_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o heat_n and_o as_o i_o have_v sometime_o perhaps_o too_o much_o with_o many_o other_o loyal_a person_n do_v i_o remember_v to_o have_v read_v it_o somewhere_o in_o a_o print_n full_a of_o wit_n and_o loyalty_n say_v with_o gaiety_n of_o humour_n to_o this_o purpose_n viz._n that_o while_o a_o whole_a nation_n be_v drink_v meaning_n i_o suppose_v intoxicate_v with_o the_o belief_n of_o witness_n tell_v incredible_a thing_n and_o the_o populace_n be_v thereupon_o drink_v with_o anger_n and_o rage_n against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o papist_n it_o be_v to_o little_a purpose_n for_o any_o one_o man_n to_o be_v sober_a the_o notion_n that_o man_n have_v of_o a_o plot_n be_v very_o various_a some_o than_o be_v so_o far_o go_v in_o credulity_n as_o like_o the_o fool_n that_o solomon_n say_v believe_v every_o word_n they_o be_v resolve_v to_o believe_v every_o thing_n the_o witness_n have_v say_v or_o will_v say_v the_o loyal_a general_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o notification_n of_o it_o as_o publish_v by_o the_o government_n and_o thereby_o discharge_v part_n of_o the_o moral_a obligation_n of_o the_o oath_n i_o have_v discourse_v of_o whereby_o they_o be_v to_o defend_v all_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n his_o heir_n etc._n etc._n and_o one_o of_o those_o right_n and_o privilege_n be_v what_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n to_o all_o sovereign_a prince_n namely_o to_o have_v faith_n give_v to_o their_o public_a attestation_n of_o any_o fact._n yet_o religion_n allow_v man_n the_o use_n of_o the_o judicium_fw-la discretionis_fw-la about_o the_o sense_n and_o importance_n of_o the_o writ_n divine_o inspire_v they_o modest_o employ_v their_o discretion_n in_o consider_v what_o by_o the_o dii_fw-la nominales_fw-la be_v publish_v and_o if_o any_o thing_n therein_o seem_v above_o their_o reason_n and_o not_o contrary_a to_o it_o their_o faith_n rest_v therein_o but_o the_o loyal_a soon_o find_v that_o the_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n of_o popery_n begin_v more_o and_o more_o to_o turn_v into_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n relate_v to_o the_o witness_n veracity_n and_o they_o can_v not_o without_o a_o profound_a horror_n and_o astonishment_n reflect_v on_o the_o intoxication_n of_o a_o gaeat_a body_n of_o man_n believe_v some_o incarnate_a devil_n in_o accuse_v one_o that_o have_v appear_v to_o christendom_n as_o great_a a_o saint_n of_o her_o sex_n as_o the_o steady_a practice_n of_o all_o moral_a virtue_n glorify_v a_o heavenly_a mind_n on_o earth_n can_v render_v she_o and_o who_o with_o such_o a_o character_n must_v shine_v as_o a_o star_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o age._n that_o many_o of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n about_o that_o time_n vain_o endeavour_v to_o have_v their_o religion_n paramount_n and_o have_v hope_n to_o get_v their_o land_n again_o none_o will_v think_v impossible_a who_o have_v since_o see_v some_o of_o our_o schismatical_a pastor_n so_o infatuate_v as_o to_o think_v it_o practicable_a for_o they_o again_o to_o thrive_v by_o their_o old_a religion-trade_n and_o that_o such_o particular_a person_n as_o be_v by_o the_o late_a earl_n of_o clarendon_n in_o his_o book_n against_o cressy_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1673._o remark_v for_o the_o petulant_a and_o unruly_a spirit_n that_o sway_v too_o much_o among_o they_o may_v continue_v in_o the_o year_n 1673._o no_o wise_a man_n doubt_v for_o the_o say_a earl_n there_o say_v the_o wise_a and_o sober_a catholic_n of_o england_n do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o restrain_v that_o petulant_a and_o unruly_a spirit_n many_o sagacious_a protestant_n who_o know_v the_o irreligious_a principle_n that_o the_o jesuit_n write_n swarm_v with_o be_v apt_a to_o fear_v that_o there_o be_v then_o endeavour_v to_o have_v some_o of_o they_o practise_v by_o some_o ill_a man_n who_o be_v bigot_n or_o pauper_n and_o who_o necessity_n may_v prompt_v to_o be_v mercenary_a in_o make_v disorder_n in_o the_o state._n the_o judicious_a and_o learned_a bishop_n mor_o be_v observe_v then_o to_o have_v some_o notion_n or_o idea_n of_o a_o popish_a plot_n peculiar_a to_o himself_o and_o as_o then_o many_o have_v their_o various_a conception_n of_o the_o noise_a plot_n so_o many_o loyal_a and_o serious_a think_v person_n suppose_v it_o to_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a and_o barbarous_a to_o involve_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o a_o religion_n in_o the_o guilt_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n and_o on_o any_o pretence_n to_o bereave_v they_o of_o that_o freedom_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o religion_n that_o both_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o of_o god_n allow_v they_o do_v employ_v their_o thought_n and_o fancy_n for_o the_o reclaim_n the_o age_n from_o the_o humour_n of_o severity_n then_o show_v to_o the_o person_n of_o papist_n in_o general_n the_o earl_n of_o anglesy_n one_o of_o his_o majesty_n great_a minister_n public_o move_v he_o in_o the_o hot_a conjuncture_n to_o release_v all_o papist_n and_o even_a priest_n out_o of_o prison_n who_o be_v not_o charge_v with_o any_o thing_n of_o a_o plot._n and_o the_o disloyalty_n of_o many_o nominal_a protestant_n then_o appear_v in_o their_o many_o publish_a print_n it_o seem_v very_o horrid_a to_o all_o ingenious_a man_n that_o the_o life_n and_o liberty_n of_o loyal_a innocent_a papist_n shall_v be_v sacrifice_v to_o feed_v the_o humour_n or_o appetite_n of_o any_o beast_n of_o prey_n in_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n i_o speak_v with_o allusion_n to_o those_o thousand_o of_o harmless_a sheep_n in_o noah_n ark_n employ_v in_o feed_v about_o 20_o pair_n of_o carnivorous_a beast_n there_o i_o thank_v god_n that_o while_o i_o be_v a_o sharer_n with_o many_o of_o the_o loyal_a in_o the_o hatred_n of_o the_o irreligionary_a principle_n former_o maintain_v by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o many_o of_o its_o churchman_n and_o particular_o of_o those_o of_o the_o jesuit_n which_o that_o court_n have_v late_o disclaim_v i_o have_v likewise_o share_v with_o they_o in_o the_o disclaim_n of_o hatred_n or_o enmity_n to_o any_o man_n person_n whither_o jesuit_n or_o jesuit_v protestant_n and_o i_o desire_v to_o live_v no_o long_o than_o i_o shall_v with_o the_o most_o perfect_a hatred_n abhor_v the_o popery_n of_o sound_v dominion_n in_o grace_n and_o endeavour_v to_o persuade_v all_o pretend_a protestant_n but_o real_a half-papists_a so_o to_o hate_v the_o same_o but_o likewise_o with_o a_o perfect_a love_n to_o love_v the_o person_n of_o their_o brethren-papists_a and_o it_o be_v with_o justice_n to_o be_v by_o all_o man_n to_o our_o popish_a fellow-subject_n acknowledge_v that_o whatever_o petulance_n some_o of_o they_o be_v former_o guilty_a of_o or_o of_o any_o ambitious_a design_n of_o make_v too_o great_a a_o figure_n in_o the_o internal_a government_n of_o the_o nation_n yet_o that_o the_o deportment_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o they_o have_v of_o late_o appear_v with_o such_o a_o face_n not_o only_o of_o loyalty_n but_o modesty_n and_o complaisance_n with_o his_o majesty_n measure_n in_o employ_v the_o hand_n and_o head_n of_o protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o management_n of_o the_o great_a matter_n of_o state_n as_o be_v necessary_o attractive_a of_o our_o christian_a love_n and_o compassion_n and_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o we_o have_v see_v at_o the_o same_o time_n many_o factious_a anti-papists_a to_o have_v make_v a_o great_a figure_n in_o the_o internal_a government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n than_o ever_o any_o papist_n do_v in_o the_o reign_v of_o king_n james_n and_o the_o royal_a martyr_n and_o to_o have_v thereby_o give_v disturbance_n both_o to_o the_o external_n government_n and_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n i_o do_v observe_v for_o some_o considerable_a time_n after_o the_o plot-epoche_a somewhat_o of_o a_o become_a humanity_n and_o gentleness_n in_o many_o anti-papists_a relate_n
the_o happy_a future_a state_n of_o england_n or_o a_o discourse_n by_o way_n of_o letter_n to_o the_o late_a earl_n of_o anglesey_n vindicate_v he_o from_o the_o reflection_n of_o a_o affidavit_fw-la publish_v by_o the_o house_n of_o commons_z ao_o 1680._o by_o occasion_n whereof_o observation_n be_v make_v concern_v infamous_a witness_n the_o say_a discourse_n likewise_o contain_v various_a political_a remark_n and_o calculation_n refer_v to_o many_o part_n of_o christendom_n with_o observation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n and_o of_o its_o growth_n in_o populousness_n and_o trade_n the_o vanity_n of_o the_o late_a fear_n and_o jealousy_n be_v show_v the_o author_n do_v on_o ground_n of_o nature_n predict_v the_o happy_a future_a state_n of_o the_o realm_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o discourse_n there_o be_v a_o casuistical_a discussion_n of_o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o king_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n wherein_o many_o of_o the_o moral_a office_n of_o absolute_a and_o vnconditional_a loyalty_n be_v assert_v before_o the_o discourse_n be_v a_o large_a preface_n give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o whole_a work_n with_o a_o index_n of_o the_o principal_a matter_n also_o the_o obligation_n result_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n to_o assist_v and_o defend_v the_o pre-eminence_n or_o prerogative_n of_o the_o dispensative_a power_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o assert_v of_o that_o power_n various_a historical_a passage_n occur_v in_o the_o usurpation_n after_o the_o year_n 1641._o be_v mention_v and_o a_o account_n be_v give_v of_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o power_n of_o dispense_v as_o to_o act_n of_o parliament_n about_o religion_n since_o the_o reformation_n and_o of_o diverse_a judgement_n of_o parliament_n declare_v their_o approbation_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o such_o power_n and_o particular_o in_o what_o concern_v punishment_n by_o disability_n or_o incapacity_n london_n print_v mdclxxxviii_o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a the_o earl_n of_o sunderland_n lord_n precedent_n of_o his_o majesty_n most_o honourable_a privy-council_n and_o principal_a secretary_n of_o state_n and_o knight_n of_o the_o most_o noble_a order_n of_o the_o garter_n my_o lord_n for_o one_o who_o be_v sensible_a how_o little_a he_o know_v of_o thing_n past_a or_o present_a to_o dedicate_v a_o discourse_n of_o the_o future_a state_n of_o his_o country_n to_o your_o lordship_n who_o be_v by_o the_o age_n allow_v to_o be_v as_o critical_a a_o judge_n of_o man_n and_o thing_n as_o any_o it_o afford_v may_v seem_v to_o have_v in_o it_o somewhat_o of_o presumption_n but_o when_o your_o lordship_n shall_v have_v have_v leisure_n to_o consider_v the_o plain_a ground_n of_o nature_n on_o which_o my_o prediction_n in_o the_o follow_a paper_n have_v go_v i_o will_v not_o so_o much_o hope_n that_o what_o i_o have_v attempt_v may_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v no_o presume_v as_o i_o will_v expect_v that_o your_o censure_n will_v cast_v the_o presumption_n on_o the_o other_o side_n namely_o on_o such_o who_o be_v predictor_n with_o a_o continuando_fw-la of_o the_o unhappy_a state_n of_o their_o country_n and_o especial_o on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o our_o most_o gracious_a prince_n and_o be_v i_o now_o to_o have_v my_o judgement_n try_v only_o by_o that_o of_o the_o mobile_n who_o measure_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o event_n i_o account_v i_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o the_o gunshot_n of_o censure_n since_o the_o course_n of_o providence_n after_o my_o writing_n of_o the_o follow_a work_n have_v conduct_v his_o majesty_n to_o fill_v the_o throne_n of_o his_o ancestor_n with_o so_o many_o royal_a virtue_n it_o have_v be_v conspicuous_a to_o they_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o reign_n have_v transcend_v the_o high_a flight_n of_o my_o mention_a expectation_n and_o indeed_o as_o i_o remember_v to_o have_v long_o ago_o hear_v one_o of_o the_o father_n cite_v for_o a_o passage_n to_o this_o purpose_n namely_o that_o on_o a_o supposal_n that_o god_n recount_v to_o he_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o creation_n shall_v ask_v he_o what_o he_o can_v name_v want_v and_o that_o he_o can_v wish_v he_o will_v answer_v unum_n laudatorem_fw-la domine_fw-la so_o it_o may_v till_o of_o late_o be_v say_v that_o in_o this_o new_a creation_n or_o restoration_n of_o england_n under_o his_o majesty_n reign_n the_o only_a thing_n we_o have_v with_o anxiety_n to_o wish_v and_o desire_v from_o god_n next_o to_o the_o ennable_v we_o to_o praise_v his_o divine_a goodness_n be_v one_o who_o talon_n of_o noble_a thought_n and_o word_n may_v be_v adequate_a to_o the_o celebrate_v the_o many_o talent_n of_o our_o prince_n and_o their_o successful_a improvement_n both_o for_o the_o honour_n and_o security_n and_o ease_n of_o his_o people_n but_o neither_o be_v such_o one_o praiser_n now_o want_v for_o he_o who_o shall_v read_v the_o many_o late_a loyal_a address_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n will_v find_v the_o people_n of_o england_n to_o be_v the_o unus_n laudator_n my_o lord_n as_o i_o in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n almost_o whole_o print_v long_o ago_o in_o the_o last_o reign_n during_o the_o freedom_n of_o the_o press_n adventure_v on_o ground_n of_o nature_n to_o predict_v such_o a_o growth_n of_o loyalty_n as_o will_v make_v all_o england_n become_v one_o sober_a party_n of_o mankind_n and_o that_o the_o more_o ingenious_a sort_n of_o jesuit_n will_v by_o natural_a instinct_n throw_v off_o those_o principle_n condemn_v in_o this_o pope_n decree_n and_o with_o justice_n then_o acknowledge_v a_o sober_a party_n in_o that_o order_n and_o have_v at_o large_a in_o p._n 322._o particular_o show_v my_o abhorrence_n of_o charge_v the_o belief_n or_o practice_n of_o those_o principle_n on_o all_o person_n in_o that_o order_n so_o i_o have_v likewise_o in_o p._n 238._o give_v my_o judgement_n that_o all_o seditious_a principle_n own_a by_o any_o who_o call_v themselves_o protestant_n must_v natural_o decay_v and_o have_v at_o large_a in_o my_o preface_n oppose_v my_o measure_n of_o futurity_n to_o those_o of_o a_o late_a father_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n concern_v the_o two_o plot_n that_o he_o think_v the_o papist_n and_o dissenter_n will_v be_v ever_o carry_v on_o and_o without_o his_o lordship_n except_v the_o loyal_a in_o those_o religionary_a party_n but_o have_v say_v this_o i_o must_v likewise_o say_v that_o these_o happy_a birth_n of_o fate_n have_v be_v but_o as_o it_o be_v the_o birth_n of_o a_o day_n under_o the_o powerful_a influence_n of_o his_o majesty_n government_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v a_o nation_n be_v be_v thus_o bear_v in_o a_o day_n be_v beyond_o what_o i_o do_v expect_v and_o i_o do_v little_o think_v that_o with_o the_o suddenness_n of_o the_o motion_n of_o lightning_n when_o it_o melt_v the_o sword_n and_o spare_v the_o scabbard_n his_o majesty_n declaration_n of_o indulgence_n to_o dissenter_n will_v at_o the_o same_o time_n melt_v so_o many_o heart_n and_o all_o hostile_a principle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o resistance_n wrap_v therein_o as_o it_o spare_v the_o person_n of_o the_o delude_a opiner_n i_o account_v that_o any_o indifferent_a observer_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a sweetness_n of_o the_o way_n of_o paint_v their_o loyalty_n in_o their_o address_n and_o which_o resemble_v the_o way_n of_o corregio_n and_o be_v as_o excellent_a in_o its_o kind_n as_o that_o of_o the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n after_o the_o way_n of_o the_o bold_a touch_n of_o titian_n in_o their_o former_a address_n with_o the_o style_n of_o life_n and_o fortune_n be_v in_o its_o must_v be_v very_o hard-hearted_a if_o he_o likewise_o be_v not_o melt_v into_o a_o new_a kind_n of_o compassion_n towards_o such_o his_o brethren_n and_o into_o a_o noble_a sense_n of_o a_o great_a and_o good_a prince_n have_v make_v his_o subject_n of_o all_o religionary_a persuasion_n lachrymist_n for_o joy_n and_o turn_v all_o their_o heart_n to_o invoke_v heaven_n in_o wish_v for_o he_o according_a to_o that_o old_a style_n a_o long_a life_n a_o secure_a kingdom_n a_o safe_a house_n valiant_a army_n a_o faithful_a senate_n loyal_a subject_n the_o world_n at_o peace_n etc._n etc._n the_o comparative_o narrow_a idea_n of_o charity_n and_o beneficence_n that_o subject_n mind_n be_v capable_a of_o towards_o one_o another_o do_v incline_v they_o to_o think_v chief_o of_o particular_a toleration_n and_o such_o as_o we_o call_v dispensation_n and_o that_o too_o with_o the_o nicety_n of_o caution_n and_o upon_o person_n make_v the_o notification_n of_o their_o principle_n and_o their_o particular_a disclaim_n of_o all_o disloyal_a one_o previous_a to_o their_o toleration_n and_o beyond_o this_o pitch_n the_o flight_n of_o my_o poor_a thought_n have_v not_o go_v in_o the_o follow_a work._n but_o his_o majesty_n have_v
i_o conclude_v with_o the_o observation_n that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o nothing_o nor_o without_o some_o end_n that_o divine_a providence_n permit_v so_o many_o protestant_n to_o err_v in_o one_o great_a point_n and_o that_o probable_o it_o may_v be_v to_o the_o end_n to_o produce_v in_o their_o mind_n so_o great_a a_o degree_n of_o compassion_n and_o charity_n towards_o the_o person_n of_o all_o roman-catholick_n christian_n as_o may_v not_o only_o last_v in_o this_o conjuncture_n but_o be_v operative_a in_o they_o by_o all_o moral_a office_n of_o humanity_n and_o christianity_n during_o their_o life_n but_o the_o course_n of_o providence_n have_v further_o honour_v his_o majesty_n government_n by_o bring_v to_o light_n in_o it_o the_o truth_n about_o those_o odious_a matter_n that_o particular_a roman-catholic_n be_v charge_v with_o and_o for_o which_o in_o the_o general_a judgement_n of_o the_o impartial_a they_o appear_v now_o to_o have_v be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o false_a testimony_n the_o cry_n of_o such_o blood_n may_v well_o i_o think_v pass_v for_o a_o loud_o call_v against_o make_v the_o body_n of_o the_o roman-catholic_n uneasy_a by_o the_o penal_a law_n and_o while_o the_o reason_n for_o their_o severity_n have_v so_o apparent_o cease_v as_o towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o preface_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o write_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o last_o reign_n i_o mention_v it_o as_o the_o concordant_a vogue_n of_o the_o populace_n to_o throw_v off_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o only_a person_n refer_v to_o as_o a_o witness_n in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n so_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o time_n have_v by_o its_o birth_n of_o discovery_n now_o give_v a_o just_a occasion_n for_o the_o lay_v aside_o all_o the_o aggravation_n there_o against_o any_o principle_n in_o the_o canon-law_n or_o the_o casuistical_a moral_n of_o the_o jesuit_n that_o myself_o and_o other_o then_o build_v on_o the_o fate_n of_o godfrey_n and_o have_v accord_v to_o what_o i_o have_v predict_v concern_v the_o fate_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n condemn_v by_o this_o pope_n tacit_o evaporate_n by_o fear_n and_o shame_n make_v they_o appear_v obsolete_a and_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o majesty_n reign_n that_o all_o those_o principle_n in_o terrorem_fw-la which_o give_v occasion_n former_o for_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o law_n in_o terrorem_fw-la do_v now_o appear_v offer_v up_o as_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o it_o and_o though_o from_o the_o account_n i_o find_v in_o the_o policy_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n of_o the_o fact_n of_o some_o of_o the_o jesuit_n have_v oppose_v the_o publication_n of_o that_o decree_n in_o france_n as_o have_v issue_v from_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o court_n of_o inquisition_n i_o take_v occasion_n to_o dilate_v on_o the_o aggravation_n of_o their_o disobedience_n to_o the_o pope_n yet_o upon_o my_o have_v since_o inquire_v into_o the_o transaction_n of_o the_o papal_a world_n i_o have_v find_v cause_n to_o absolve_v they_o from_o any_o censure_n of_o that_o kind_n and_o according_o as_o the_o ingenious_a dr._n donne_n in_o his_o pseudomartyr_n say_v that_o chrysostom_n expound_v that_o place_n in_o jeremy_n domus_fw-la dei_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la spelunca_fw-la hyaenae_fw-la apply_v it_o to_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o hard_a to_o be_v convert_v and_o say_v that_o the_o hyaena_fw-la have_v as_o chrysostom_n observe_v but_o one_o backbone_n can_v turn_v except_o it_o turn_v all_o at_o once_o so_o that_o the_o romanist_n priest_n have_v but_o one_o backbone_n the_o pope_n can_v turn_v but_o all_o at_o once_o when_o he_o turn_v it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v by_o that_o his_o noble_a decree_n do_v so_o much_o right_n to_o his_o own_o honour_n and_o that_o of_o his_o church_n and_o indeed_o of_o humane_a nature_n as_o to_o damn_v those_o tenet_n the_o aversion_n of_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n from_o they_o be_v necessary_o and_o natural_o to_o happen_v and_o from_o the_o doctor_n in_o that_o book_n apply_v further_o to_o the_o jesuit_n say_v christ_n say_v to_o those_o who_o he_o send_v what_o i_o tell_v you_o in_o darkness_n that_o speak_v you_o in_o light_n and_o what_o you_o hear_v in_o the_o ear_n that_o preach_v you_o in_o house_n and_o fear_v not_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n and_o if_o no_o other_o thing_n be_v tell_v you_o in_o darkness_n and_o whisper_v in_o your_o ear_n at_o your_o mission_n hither_o then_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n deliver_v to_o they_o you_o may_v be_v as_o confident_a in_o your_o public_a preach_n and_o have_v as_o much_o comfort_n of_o martyrdom_n if_o you_o die_v for_o execute_v such_o a_o commission_n and_o then_o reflect_v on_o the_o instruction_n that_o be_v deliver_v they_o in_o darkness_n in_o that_o conjuncture_n for_o the_o promote_a those_o papal_a usurpation_n on_o the_o regal_a right_n whereby_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o all_o subjection_n to_o the_o king_n it_o may_v be_v here_o occasional_o observe_v that_o many_o person_n of_o our_o several_a religionary_a persuasion_n have_v for_o curiosity_n go_v to_o hear_v the_o public_a preach_v of_o these_o missionary_n have_v there_o meet_v with_o such_o ingenuous_a explication_n of_o the_o moral_a office_n that_o concern_v the_o most_o vital_a part_n of_o religion_n and_o those_o so_o pathetical_o apply_v as_o that_o they_o have_v look_v on_o such_o man_n who_o be_v former_o dead_a in_o law_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v send_v from_o the_o dead_a to_o make_v other_o better_a christian_n and_o better_a subject_n and_o to_o be_v thankful_a for_o the_o dispensative_a power_n animate_v those_o for_o that_o purpose_n and_o have_v find_v no_o cause_n to_o fear_v that_o they_o have_v any_o politic_a whisper_n in_o their_o mission_n to_o oppose_v the_o power_n of_o our_o monarch_n more_o than_o their_o brethren_n do_v that_o of_o the_o great_a neighbour_a one_o and_o to_o who_o in_o the_o litis-pendentia_a between_o he_o and_o the_o pope_n about_o the_o regale_n they_o adhere_v my_o lord_n as_o to_o what_o i_o adventure_v to_o predict_v of_o the_o success_n of_o his_o majesty_n political_a measure_n his_o past_a prudence_n so_o eminent_o appear_v in_o the_o series_n of_o his_o great_a action_n may_v sufficient_o encourage_v i_o without_o any_o help_n from_o enthusiasm_n for_o nullum_fw-la numen_fw-la abest_fw-la si_fw-la sit_fw-la prudentia_fw-la and_o the_o supposal_n about_o his_o come_n to_o the_o throne_n in_o great_a maturity_n of_o year_n a_o thing_n that_o the_o prudence_n of_o the_o roman_n have_v strict_a regard_n to_o in_o the_o age_n of_o their_o consul_n and_o for_o which_o office_n none_o be_v qualify_v under_o the_o age_n of_o 43_o year_n and_o his_o bring_n to_o the_o throne_n a_o vast_a treasure_n of_o knowledge_n and_o experience_n refine_v and_o solid_a by_o many_o experiment_n of_o providence_n on_o himself_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a word_n of_o seneca_n de_fw-mi provide_v deus_fw-la quos_fw-la amat_fw-la indurat_fw-la recognoscit_fw-la exercet_fw-la may_v well_o raise_v the_o high_a expectation_n of_o his_o conduct_n but_o yet_o neither_o be_v i_o without_o some_o regard_n therein_o to_o the_o common_a course_n of_o divine_a providence_n even_o in_o this_o life_n reward_v in_o any_o illustrious_a person_n a_o signal_n tenderness_n for_o religion_n and_o inquisitiveness_n in_o any_o controvert_v point_n about_o it_o and_o at_o last_o contrary_n to_o the_o most_o valuable_a secular_a interest_n determine_v his_o thought_n one_o way_n though_o perhaps_o erroneous_o and_o i_o will_v venture_v to_o conclude_v that_o if_o it_o have_v import_v the_o salvation_n of_o such_o a_o exemplary_a inquisitive_a honourer_n of_o god_n and_o who_o with_o great_a holy_a exercise_n have_v defecate_v his_o thought_n from_o settlement_n on_o any_o local_a religion_n as_o such_o to_o have_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n in_o that_o problematick_a point_n god_n will_v have_v honour_v he_o so_o far_o as_o to_o have_v send_v a_o angel_n to_o direct_v he_o to_o it_o and_o will_v expect_v that_o such_o a_o one_o who_o delight_n be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o therein_o do_v meditate_v day_n and_o night_n though_o he_o perhaps_o comprehend_v not_o every_o thing_n aright_o in_o it_o yet_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v like_o a_o tree_n plant_v by_o the_o river_n of_o water_n that_o bring_v forth_o his_o fruit_n in_o his_o season_n and_o that_o his_o leaf_n shall_v not_o wither_v and_o that_o whatever_o he_o do_v shall_v prosper_v and_o that_o his_o way_n thus_o please_v god_n he_o will_v make_v even_o his_o enemy_n to_o be_v at_o peace_n with_o he_o and_o that_o he_o who_o make_v peace_n in_o his_o high_a place_n and_o who_o can_v make_v peace_n between_o high_a and_o low_a and_o make_v man_n to_o be_v of_o one_o
of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o on_o the_o 20_o the_o of_o october_n 1680._o and_o print_v by_o order_n of_o that_o house_n and_o in_o which_o affidavit_fw-la and_o information_n he_o be_v charge_v with_o endeavour_n to_o stifle_v some_o evidence_n of_o the_o popish_a plot_n and_o to_o promote_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o presbyterian_a one_o and_o with_o encourage_v dugdale_n to_o recant_v what_o he_o have_v swear_v and_o promise_v to_o harbour_v he_o in_o his_o house_n and_o that_o his_o lordship_n priest_n shall_v there_o be_v his_o companion_n and_o likewise_o watch_v he_o his_o lordship_n be_v thereupon_o desirous_a that_o right_n shall_v be_v do_v he_o by_o a_o print_a vindication_n be_v please_v to_o command_v my_o pen_n therein_o and_o i_o be_v the_o less_o unwilling_a to_o disobey_v his_o command_n because_o in_o that_o conjuncture_n wherein_o so_o many_o loyal_a and_o noble_a person_n be_v suffere_n by_o the_o humour_n of_o accusation_n then_o regnant_a i_o hold_v it_o a_o patriot_o thing_n to_o withstand_v its_o arbitrariness_n sir_n w._n p._n in_o a_o excellent_a manuscript_n of_o he_o call_v the_o political_a anatomy_n of_o ireland_n have_v one_o chapter_n there_o of_o the_o government_n of_o ireland_n apparent_a or_o external_a and_o the_o government_n internal_a and_o he_o describe_v the_o apparent_a government_n there_o to_o be_v by_o the_o king_n and_o three_o estate_n and_o with_o the_o conduct_n of_o court_n of_o justice_n but_o make_v the_o internal_a government_n there_o to_o depend_v much_o on_o the_o potent_a influence_n of_o the_o many_o secular_a priest_n and_o friar_n on_o the_o numerous_a irish_a roman_n catholic_n and_o on_o those_o priest_n and_o friar_n be_v govern_v by_o their_o bishop_n and_o superior_n and_o on_o the_o minister_n of_o foreign_a state_n govern_v and_o direct_v such_o superior_n and_o thus_o while_n england_n be_v blessed_v with_o the_o best_a external_a government_n namely_o of_o monarchy_n and_o with_o the_o best_a monarch_n and_o a_o loyal_a nobility_n and_o commons_o yet_o after_o the_o detection_n of_o a_o popish_a plot_n several_a person_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o witness_n about_o the_o same_o make_v so_o great_a a_o figure_n in_o the_o government_n and_o be_v so_o enthrone_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o populace_n that_o the_o office_n of_o the_o king_n witness_n be_v as_o powerful_a as_o ever_o be_v that_o of_o the_o high_a constable_n of_o england_n and_o the_o internal_a government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v then_o very_o much_o as_o i_o may_v say_v a_o martyrocracy_n and_o by_o that_o hard_a name_n the_o noisy_a part_n of_o protestant_n endeavour_v to_o gain_v ground_n as_o much_o as_o ever_o any_o peaceable_a one_o do_v by_o the_o old_a know_a name_n of_o martyrology_n but_o as_o all_o external_a form_n of_o government_n have_v some_o peculiar_a defect_n as_o well_o as_o convenience_n so_o do_v this_o internal_a government_n appear_v to_o have_v and_o those_o too_o so_o dreadful_a that_o the_o air_n of_o testimony_n have_v sometime_o get_v into_o the_o wrong_a place_n be_v likely_a to_o have_v make_v earthquakes_a in_o the_o external_a government_n and_o as_o the_o militia_n that_o after_o the_o epoch_n of_o 41_o be_v call_v the_o parliament_n army_n do_v before_o the_o fatal_a time_n of_o 48_o produce_v the_o revolution_n of_o the_o army_n parliament_n so_o be_v we_o endanger_v after_o the_o plot-epoche_a of_o 78_o to_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o king_n witness_n change_v into_o another_o namely_o of_o the_o witness_n king_n and_o whoever_o shall_v write_v the_o english_a history_n of_o that_o part_n of_o time_n wherein_o that_o martyrocracy_n be_v so_o powerful_a and_o domineer_a will_v if_o he_o shall_v think_v fit_a to_o give_v a_o denomination_n to_o that_o interval_n of_o time_n and_o to_o find_v the_o same_o on_o most_o of_o the_o narratives_n he_o shall_v read_v or_o the_o sham-paper_n that_o many_o papist_n and_o protestant_n after_o the_o plot_n attaque_v each_o other_o with_o be_v think_v not_o absurd_a if_o he_o give_v the_o old_a style_n of_o intervallum_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d incertum_fw-la or_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d fabulosum_fw-la it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o most_o triumphant_a state_n of_o this_o internal_a government_n that_o i_o undertake_v to_o weigh_v its_o empire_n as_o i_o have_v do_v in_o p._n 33_o 34_o 35._o discuss_v the_o point_n of_o infamous_a witness_n and_o their_o infamy_n and_o of_o their_o credibility_n after_o pardon_n of_o perjury_n or_o crime_n and_o infany_n incur_v and_o a_o bold_a man_n than_o myself_o will_v hardly_o have_v dare_v in_o that_o conjuncture_n to_o have_v sift_v their_o prerogative_n and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v to_o have_v put_v hungry_a wolf_n into_o scale_n and_o to_o have_v take_v the_o dimension_n of_o the_o paw_n of_o lion_n or_o to_o have_v handle_v the_o sting_n of_o serpent_n without_o express_v against_o some_o of_o the_o romanist_n principle_n he_o think_v irreligionary_a all_o the_o zeal_n he_o think_v consistent_a with_o charity_n and_o candour_n to_o the_o person_n of_o papist_n which_o be_v so_o much_o do_v in_o the_o body_n of_o this_o discourse_n and_o without_o the_o express_n of_o which_o my_o vindicate_v a_o noble_a person_n from_o be_v a_o papist_n have_v be_v a_o absurdity_n however_o i_o have_v be_v careful_a in_o any_o moot-point_n of_o witness_n not_o to_o disturb_v in_o the_o least_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o external_n government_n about_o they_o and_o out_o of_o the_o tender_a regard_n due_a to_o the_o safety_n of_o monarch_n from_o all_o subject_n have_v in_o p._n 205_o assert_v the_o obligation_n of_o do_v every_o thing_n that_o be_v fair_o to_o be_v do_v to_o support_v the_o credit_n of_o witness_n produce_v in_o the_o case_n of_o treason_n and_o have_v there_o give_v a_o particular_a reason_n for_o it_o and_o have_v in_o p._n 36._o with_o a_o competent_a respect_n mention_v dugdale_n on_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o shame_n swear_v against_o the_o earl_n of_o anglesy_n as_o if_o his_o lordship_n have_v undertake_v to_o have_v unjust_o patronise_v he_o and_o have_v show_v myself_o incline_v enough_o to_o belief_n credible_a witness_n by_o the_o concurrence_n of_o my_o thought_n with_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o nation_n in_o godfrey_n case_n and_o the_o fate_n of_o which_o person_n and_o the_o casuistical_a principle_n that_o allow_v it_o i_o have_v perhaps_o not_o mention_v but_o out_o of_o a_o just_a indignation_n against_o the_o infamous_a shamm_n about_o it_o spread_v by_o some_o ill_a papist_n to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o that_o excellent_a lord_n the_o earl_n of_o danby_n but_o there_o be_v another_o consideration_n that_o induce_v i_o to_o write_v with_o such_o a_o zeal_n as_o aforesaid_a against_o such_o romanist_n principle_n and_o their_o effect_n and_o but_o for_o which_o the_o follow_a discourse_n have_v not_o swell_v to_o a_o large_a volume_n i_o observe_v that_o since_o the_o late_a fermentation_n in_o england_n such_o a_o panic_n fear_v of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o number_n of_o papist_n have_v be_v by_o knave_n propagate_v among_o fool_n that_o make_v the_o english_a nation_n appear_v somewhat_o ridiculous_a abroad_o and_o that_o during_o its_o course_n many_o considerable_a protestant_n be_v so_o far_o mislead_v as_o to_o think_v the_o state_n of_o the_o nation_n can_v never_o be_v restore_v to_o itself_o but_o by_o disturb_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o crown_n in_o its_o lawful_a course_n of_o descent_n and_o therefore_o resolve_v to_o do_v my_o utmost_a to_o free_v the_o land_n from_o the_o burden_n of_o another_o guess_n perjury_n by_o the_o general_a violence_n do_v to_o our_o oath_n promissory_a i_o mean_v to_o those_o of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n then_o that_o of_o any_o witness_n in_o their_o oath_n assertory_n i_o think_v fit_a at_o large_a to_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o any_o man_n fear_v that_o popery_n can_v ever_o human_o speak_v be_v the_o national_a religion_n of_o england_n and_o to_o direct_v they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o by_o the_o imaginary_a danger_n of_o popery_n to_o come_v run_v with_o all_o their_o swell_a sail_n on_o the_o rock_n of_o it_o at_o present_a by_o sound_v dominion_n in_o grace_n and_o outrage_v those_o oath_n that_o do_v at_o present_a bind_v we_o without_o reserve_v to_o pay_v allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n after_o his_o demise_n and_o for_o any_o one_o who_o be_v concern_v to_o see_v so_o many_o of_o his_o countryman_n lie_v as_o it_o be_v on_o the_o ground_n and_o deject_v with_o unaccountable_a fear_n of_o the_o extermination_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o themselves_o and_o besmear_v themselves_o with_o the_o dreadful_a guilt_n of_o their_o great_a oath_n be_v resolve_v to_o endeavour_v to_o help_v they_o up_o and_o by_o persuasion_n gentle_o to_o lead_v they_o
with_o a_o person_n of_o so_o great_a morality_n and_o virtue_n as_o the_o present_a pope_n be_v and_o a_o pope_n that_o will_v brand_v the_o sicarious_a principle_n of_o those_o janissary_n of_o former_a pope_n the_o jesuit_n and_o that_o he_o will_v be_v by_o so_o many_o roman_a catholic_n call_v the_o lutheran_n pope_n and_o that_o the_o papist_n number_n will_v be_v here_o so_o comparative_o small_a long_o before_o this_o time_n as_o to_o render_v it_o absurd_a to_o think_v that_o without_o the_o execution_n of_o heaven_n peanal_a law_n of_o a_o infatuation_n upon_o they_o they_o will_v ever_o attempt_v any_o such_o desperate_a design_n against_o such_o vast_a number_n protect_v by_o the_o best_a of_o prince_n under_o the_o best_a of_o government_n whatever_o principle_n of_o irreligion_n any_o particular_a dissolute_a papist_n might_n by_o any_o be_v suppose_v to_o retain_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v but_o that_o they_o who_o show_v respect_n enough_o to_o number_n and_o their_o weight_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o divine_a concourse_n with_o the_o majority_n of_o number_n in_o the_o election_n of_o the_o head_n of_o their_o church_n and_o in_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o in_o their_o valuation_n of_o their_o church_n by_o its_o universality_n will_v not_o contemn_v the_o power_n of_o number_n in_o matter_n political_a and_o i_o believe_v it_o will_v never_o among_o their_o innumerable_a miracle_n and_o revelation_n be_v reveal_v to_o they_o that_o number_n be_v by_o they_o in_o thing_n political_a to_o be_v disregard_v but_o as_o i_o observe_v of_o mr._n hooker_n prophecy_n in_o this_o discourse_n viz._n that_o he_o guess_v shrewd_o so_o one_o thing_n have_v happen_v that_o may_v partly_o salve_v the_o credit_n of_o this_o prelate_n conjecture_n and_o that_o be_v that_o some_o nominal_a protestant_n but_o too_o just_o to_o be_v think_v popish_o affect_v have_v rob_v the_o jesuit_n of_o their_o doctrine_n of_o resistance_n and_o of_o their_o principle_n of_o dominion_n be_v found_v in_o grace_n endeavour_v to_o rob_v they_o of_o their_o massacre_n and_o as_o his_o majesty_n declaration_n of_o july_n the_o 28_o 1683_o mention_v do_v plot_v a_o execrable_a outrage_n of_o that_o kind_n and_o some_o of_o the_o dissenter_n that_o appear_v to_o i_o for_o sometime_o after_o i_o begin_v this_o discourse_n only_o as_o sheep_n stray_v from_o the_o flock_n as_o they_o do_v to_o that_o great_a minister_n of_o the_o state_n who_o bestow_v on_o they_o that_o expression_n be_v afterward_o turn_v ravenous_a animal_n and_o as_o the_o effect_n of_o nycippus_n sheep_n according_a to_o aelian_a bring_v forth_o a_o lion_n in_o one_o of_o the_o greek_a state_n be_v resent_v as_o portend_v a_o change_n of_o the_o government_n these_o man_n produce_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o jesuit_n be_v to_o be_v much_o more_o regard_v as_o a_o omen_n of_o our_o future_a mischief_n than_o what_o any_o former_a prediction_n can_v import_v and_o it_o be_v short_o accompany_v with_o a_o real_a design_n to_o have_v effect_v it_o and_o as_o i_o hope_v it_o will_v be_v with_o such_o a_o sense_n of_o shame_n in_o other_o of_o they_o when_o they_o shall_v survey_v the_o circumstance_n of_o that_o bloody_a design_n notify_v in_o the_o king_n declaration_n as_o mr._n john_n geree_n a_o eminent_a and_o learned_a presbyterian_a minister_n of_o s._n faith_n in_o london_n do_v express_v in_o a_o dedicatory_a epistle_n before_o a_o book_n of_o his_o call_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d publish_v some_o week_n before_o the_o fate_n of_o the_o royal_a martyr_n and_o in_o which_o epistle_n he_o importune_v the_o lady_n fairfax_n to_o show_v the_o book_n to_o her_o husband_n then_o lord_n general_n to_o prevent_v his_o participate_v in_o the_o guilt_n of_o the_o regicide_n then_o fear_v and_o say_v o_o madam_n let_v we_o fit_v down_o and_o weep_v over_o our_o religion_n and_o we_o whither_o shall_v we_o cause_v her_o shame_n to_o go_v how_o shall_v we_o now_o look_v papist_n in_o the_o face_n who_o we_o have_v so_o revile_v and_o abhor_v for_o their_o derogatory_n doctrine_n and_o damnable_a practice_n against_o king_n or_o any_o in_o supreme_a authority_n o_o study_n that_o it_o may_v never_o be_v say_v that_o any_o person_n of_o honour_n and_o of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n have_v any_o hand_n in_o so_o unworthy_a worthy_a a_o action_n as_o the_o depose_n and_o destroy_v of_o a_o king_n who_o preservation_n they_o stand_v bind_v to_o endeavour_v by_o so_o many_o sacred_a bond_n i_o have_v accord_v with_o our_o timid_a protestant_n that_o popery_n may_v gain_v ground_n perhaps_o in_o some_o turbid_v interval_n and_o how_o by_o the_o divine_a omnipotence_n and_o justice_n the_o course_n of_o nature_n in_o its_o continue_v the_o protestant_a religion_n may_v be_v overrule_v and_o that_o on_o the_o account_n of_o our_o have_v just_o deserve_v the_o visitation_n of_o popery_n we_o may_v reasonable_o apprehend_v the_o danger_n of_o it_o p._n 140._o but_o have_v never_o recur_v from_o show_v they_o the_o future_a prosperous_a estate_n of_o protestant_n and_o protestancy_n in_o england_n but_o to_o advance_v the_o more_o forward_o into_o the_o follow_a representation_n thereof_o but_o have_v thus_o with_o compassion_n to_o the_o timid_n endeavour_v to_o discharge_v my_o duty_n as_o to_o the_o moral_a obligation_n of_o complaisance_n a_o obligation_n that_o mr._n hobbs_n have_v so_o well_o show_v to_o be_v most_o clear_o rise_v from_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o which_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n so_o strong_o inculcate_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o which_o we_o be_v to_o bear_v one_o another_o burden_n and_o sometime_o to_o the_o weak_a to_o become_v as_o weak_a i_o think_v it_o afterward_o proper_a by_o the_o strength_n of_o argument_n desume_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n to_o fortify_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o loyal_a against_o un-christian_a and_o unman_o fear_n but_o as_o to_o the_o dis-loyal_a and_o factious_a let_v they_o by_o my_o consent_n fear_v on_o i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v myself_o to_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o they_o who_o resolve_v to_o be_v burden_n to_o the_o government_n and_o who_o will_v if_o they_o can_v load_v it_o with_o presbytery_n dead-weight_n while_o they_o give_v that_o term_n to_o our_o bishop_n let_v those_o who_o will_v have_v both_o protestant_a prince_n and_o their_o other_o subject_n fear_v they_o be_v laugh_v at_o for_o fear_v of_o papist_n and_o for_o not_o have_v a_o better_a understanding_n with_o the_o person_n of_o papist_n when_o there_o be_v so_o good_a a_o understanding_n and_o coincidence_n between_o the_o principle_n of_o such_o nominal_a protestant_n and_o that_o very_a part_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o some_o papist_n that_o be_v irreligionary_a and_o subversive_a of_o the_o right_n of_o prince_n and_o their_o government_n and_o when_o yet_o they_o seem_v not_o to_o understand_v that_o and_o let_v papist_n by_o my_o consent_n afford_v themselves_o recreative_a smile_n if_o ever_o in_o any_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n that_o may_v come_v they_o shall_v behold_v the_o factious_a reviler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o come_v under_o its_o wing_n for_o shelter_v after_o their_o so_o long_o endeavour_v to_o deplume_v it_o but_o because_o i_o have_v observe_v some_o well_o meaning_n and_o loyal_a dissenter_n fright_v both_o by_o choleric_a and_o melancholy_a exposition_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n a_o good_a book_n in_o which_o some_o ill_a man_n have_v find_v the_o obscure_a passage_n to_o be_v the_o clear_a for_o their_o ill_a purpose_n and_o in_o the_o dark_a place_n of_o which_o book_n many_o have_v long_o lie_v in_o ambush_n have_v thence_o sally_v out_o to_o cut_v throat_n and_o subvert_v government_n i_o have_v here_o rear_v up_o a_o bulwark_n of_o nature_n that_o may_v secure_v they_o from_o the_o imaginary_a danger_n of_o castle_n in_o the_o air_n or_o visionary_a army_n in_o the_o cloud_n of_o any_o man_n fancy_n and_o in_o compassion_n to_o the_o loyal_a protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o melancholy_a supposition_n i_o have_v a_o while_n close_v with_o both_o as_o a_o friend_n and_o wrestler_n that_o i_o may_v give_v they_o a_o fair_a and_o soft_a fall_n i_o think_v it_o then_o proper_a to_o warn_v they_o of_o the_o danger_n of_o extravagant_a supposition_n and_o acquaint_v they_o that_o most_o bedlam_n be_v found_v on_o supposition_n and_o the_o thought_n of_o quid_fw-la si_fw-la caelum_fw-la ruat_fw-la and_o of_o people_n imagine_v earthquake_n to_o happen_v in_o the_o state_n from_o fall_a sky_n and_o have_v show_v they_o how_o irrational_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o suppose_v that_o a_o lawful_a prince_n how_o unlawful_a or_o heterodox_n any_o of_o his_o tenet_n in_o religion_n may_v be_v will_v injure_v his_o law_n and_o the_o religion_n by_o
religion_n under_o a_o lutheran_n or_o calvinian_a or_o popish_a successor_n and_o that_o all_o may_v be_v real_o afraid_a of_o dishonour_v god_n and_o wound_a their_o conscience_n by_o prejudice_v the_o inheritable_a right_n of_o those_o prince_n succession_n it_o be_v thus_o further_o determine_v by_o the_o seven_o article_n of_o the_o instrumentum_fw-la pacis_fw-la caesareo_fw-la suecicum_fw-la suecicum_fw-la 1._o viz._n vnanimi_fw-la quoque_fw-la caesareae_n majestatis_fw-la omniumque_fw-la ordinum_fw-la consensu_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v likewise_o think_v fit_a by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n that_o whatever_o right_a or_o benefit_v both_o all_o the_o other_o constitution_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o religion_n and_o this_o public_a agreement_n and_o the_o decision_n of_o all_o grievance_n therein_o do_v allow_v to_o all_o catholic_n state_n and_o subject_n and_o to_o those_o addict_v to_o the_o augustan_n confession_n the_o same_o shall_v likewise_o be_v allow_v to_o those_o that_o be_v call_v the_o reform_a i._n e._n calvinist_n with_o a_o salvo_n to_o the_o state_n call_v protestant_n i._n e._n lutheran_n as_o to_o all_o thing_n covenant_v and_o agree_v between_o themselves_o with_o their_o own_o subject_n and_o as_o to_o all_o privilege_n and_o other_o disposition_n whereby_o provision_n be_v make_v for_o religion_n and_o its_o exercise_n and_o the_o thing_n thereon_o depend_v by_o the_o state_n and_o subject_n of_o each_o place_n and_o with_o a_o salvo_n to_o each_o for_o the_o freedom_n of_o their_o conscience_n now_o because_o the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v in_o agitation_n at_o this_o time_n among_o the_o forename_a protestant_n have_v not_o be_v hitherto_o reconcile_v but_o have_v be_v refer_v to_o a_o further_a endeavour_n of_o agreement_n so_o that_o they_o still_o make_v two_o party_n therefore_o concern_v the_o right_a of_o reform_v it_o be_v thus_o agree_v between_o they_o that_o if_o any_o prince_n or_o other_o lord_n of_o the_o territory_n or_o patron_n of_o any_o church_n shall_v hereafter_o change_v his_o religion_n or_o obtain_v or_o recover_v a_o principality_n or_o dominion_n either_o by_o the_o right_n of_o succession_n or_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o present_a treaty_n or_o by_o any_o other_o title_n whatsoever_o where_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o other_o party_n be_v at_o present_a in_o use_n it_o shall_v be_v free_a to_o he_o to_o have_v his_o court-chaplain_n of_o his_o own_o religion_n about_o he_o in_o the_o place_n of_o his_o residence_n without_o any_o burden_n or_o prejudice_n to_o his_o subject_n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o change_v the_o public_a exercise_n of_o religion_n or_o the_o law_n or_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n which_o have_v be_v there_o hitherto_o in_o use_n or_o take_v from_o those_o their_o church_n who_o they_o former_o be_v or_o their_o school_n or_o hospital_n or_o the_o revenue_n pension_n and_o stipend_n belong_v thereunto_o or_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o man_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n or_o obtrude_v on_o their_o subject_n man_n of_o another_o religion_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o a_o territorial_n episcopal_n or_o patronal_a right_n or_o under_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o or_o bring_v about_o any_o other_o hindrance_n direct_o or_o indirect_o to_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o other_o party_n etc._n etc._n in_o fine_a here_o have_v be_v a_o great_a pacification_n and_o the_o same_o agree_v on_o to_o be_v a_o perpetual_a law_n and_o pragmatic_n sanction_n and_o as_o strong_o bind_v as_o any_o fundamental_a law_n or_o constitution_n thereof_o comprhend_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o emperor_n all_o his_o confederate_n and_o adherent_n first_o the_o catholic_n king_n and_o house_n of_o austria_n the_o elector_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o hanse_v town_n the_o king_n of_o england_n the_o king_n of_o denmark_n and_o norway_n and_o all_o the_o prince_n and_o republic_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o state_n of_o holland_n and_o other_o and_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o sweden_n all_o her_o confederate_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n the_o hanse_v town_n the_o king_n of_o england_n the_o king_n of_o denmark_n and_o the_o dutch_a state_n etc._n etc._n well_o but_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v by_o our_o timid_a protestant_n object_v that_o all_o these_o roman_a catholic_n prince_n thus_o project_v the_o peace_n of_o germany_n and_o that_o of_o christendom_n do_v in_o this_o great_a instrumentum_fw-la pacis_fw-la and_o the_o pacta_fw-la conventa_fw-la refer_v to_o but_o reckon_v without_o their_o host_n i_o mean_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o one_o bull_n against_o it_o from_o rome_n will_v thunder_v it_o to_o nothing_o and_o render_v it_o voidable_a or_o void_a and_o that_o all_o the_o concession_n to_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n and_o hinder_v their_o extermination_n be_v nugatory_n and_o that_o such_o a_o write_a treaty_n carry_v in_o it_o it_o be_v own_o deletion_n and_o that_o of_o heretic_n and_o that_o the_o bulla_n caenae_n every_o maundy_n thursday_n excommunicate_v and_o cur●es_v all_o lutheran_n calvinist_n hugonot_n and_o their_o receiver_n fautor_n and_o defender_n and_o that_o the_o many_o immunity_n grant_v to_o heretic_n by_o this_o peace_n as_o likewise_o land_n and_o territory_n and_o the_o erect_v of_o bishopric_n into_o secular_a principality_n and_o settle_v they_o on_o heretical_a prince_n and_o their_o heir_n forever_o whereby_o so_o much_o prejudice_n accrue_v to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n will_v probable_o engage_v the_o pope_n some_o time_n or_o other_o to_o quash_n it_o as_o null_n and_o to_o damn_v both_o the_o peace_n and_o all_o that_o make_v it_o i_o answer_v that_o within_o two_o day_n after_o the_o sign_v that_o peace_n the_o pope_n nuntio_n at_o munster_n protest_v against_o it_o declare_v that_o he_o make_v that_o protestation_n by_o the_o pope_n express_a command_n and_o on_o the_o 26_o of_o november_n 1648_o pope_n innocent_a the_o 10_o issue_v out_o his_o bull_n against_o it_o from_o rome_n call_v sanctissimi_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la inn●centii_fw-la divina_fw-la providentia_fw-la papae_fw-la x._o declaratio_fw-la nullitatis_fw-la articulorum_fw-la nuperae_fw-la pacis_fw-la germanicae_fw-la religioni_fw-la catholicae_fw-la sedi_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la aliisque_fw-la locis_fw-la piis_fw-la ac_fw-la ●_z &_o juribus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la quomodolibet_fw-la praejudicialium_fw-la ad_fw-la aeternam_fw-la rei_fw-la memoriam_fw-la and_o he_o therein_o blame_v the_o emperor_n and_o his_o confederate_n and_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o perpetual_a abdication_n of_o some_o ecclesiastical_a good_n and_o right_n possess_v by_o heretic_n and_o for_o their_o permit_v to_o heretic_n the_o free_a exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n by_o that_o peace_n and_o their_o be_v further_o authorize_v by_o it_o to_o bear_v office_n and_o enjoy_v not_o only_a church_n live_n but_o bishopric_n and_o archbishopric_n and_o in_o fine_a that_o pope_n have_v make_v it_o null_n and_o void_a further_o declare_v that_o if_o any_o have_v swear_v to_o observe_v the_o article_n of_o that_o peace_n such_o oath_n shall_v not_o bind_v they_o but_o what_o do_v this_o declaration_n from_o his_o holiness_n signify_v in_o that_o case_n no_o more_o than_o one_o from_o prester_n john_n will_v have_v do_v the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n of_o germa●y_n do_v glorious_o stand_v to_o their_o pacta_fw-la conventa_fw-la and_o take_v care_n to_o see_v the_o same_o solemn_o ratify_v and_o execute_v notwithstanding_o the_o papal_a declaration_n of_o their_o nullity_n they_o know_v the_o pope_n nuntio_n will_v soon_o protest_v and_o the_o pope_n himself_o declare_v against_o the_o peace_n and_o have_v therefore_o in_o term_n therein_o agree_v that_o no_o canon_n or_o special_a decree_n of_o council_n or_o concordat_n with_o pope_n or_o protestation_n or_o edict_n rescript_n mandate_n or_o absolution_n whatsoever_o shall_v in_o any_o future_a time_n be_v allow_v against_o any_o article_n of_o it_o and_o they_o likewise_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n declaration_n of_o the_o nullity_n of_o that_o treaty_n will_v contain_v no_o threaten_n of_o excommunication_n or_o damnation_n against_o their_o person_n but_o only_o quelques_fw-fr choses_fw-fr or_o thing_n of_o course_n or_o to_o speak_v more_o proper_o nullity_n of_o course_n and_o that_o while_o all_o christendom_n be_v embark_v in_o that_o treaty_n and_o go_v with_o full_a sail_n and_o favour_v with_o a_o strong_a gale_n of_o nature_n into_o its_o haven_n of_o rest_n and_o be_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o pope_n fort_n and_o have_v resolve_v against_o lower_v their_o flag_n to_o it_o the_o pope_n will_v of_o course_n fire_n some_o bull_n of_o nullity_n at_o they_o charge_v with_o no_o significant_a shot_n and_o as_o it_o be_v usual_a for_o the_o fort_n of_o prince_n to_o do_v to_o ship_n that_o pass_v
same_o thing_n almost_o the_o same_o word_n use_v in_o a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n zech._n 13._o 3._o he_o say_v indeed_o that_o by_o those_o word_n in_o deut._n the_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o his_o father_n or_o mother_n shall_v present_o run_v a_o knife_n into_o he_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o mean_n to_o bring_v he_o to_o condign_a punishment_n even_o the_o take_n away_o his_o life_n calvin_n likewise_o in_o give_v his_o sense_n of_o that_o place_n of_o zechary_n foresee_v the_o odium_n of_o have_v any_o kill_v without_o go_v to_o the_o judge_n and_o there_o say_v multò_fw-la hoc_fw-la durius_fw-la est_fw-la propriis_fw-la manibus_fw-la filium_fw-la interficere_fw-la quam_fw-la si_fw-la ad_fw-la judicem_fw-la deferrent_fw-la but_o here_o mr._n burrough_n and_o calvin_n have_v categorical_o enough_o assert_v what_o the_o judge_n duty_n be_v in_o the_o case_n and_o i_o have_v say_v what_o calvin_n effect_v by_o go_v to_o the_o judge_n about_o servetus_n gundissalvus_n do_v not_o determine_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o burn_v a_o heretical_a city_n without_o go_v to_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o protestant_a prince_n judge_v the_o person_n or_o city_n of_o idolater_n to_o be_v destroy_v by_o the_o pretend_a obligation_n of_o the_o mosaic_a law_n be_v chargeable_a on_o the_o anti_fw-la papist_n i_o have_v mention_v and_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v few_o of_o our_o presbyterian_a or_o independent_a enthusiast_n but_o who_o think_v it_o as_o lawful_a to_o burn_v rome_n as_o to_o roast_v a_o egg._n but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n abhor_v this_o flammeum_fw-la &_o sulphureum_fw-la evangelium_fw-la and_o dr._n hicks_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o jovian_a take_v notice_n of_o the_o reason_n which_o the_o papist_n urge_v for_o put_v heretic_n and_o the_o scotise_a presbyterian_o for_o put_v popish_a prince_n to_o death_n say_v thereupon_o i_o desire_v mr._n j._n to_o tell_v i_o whether_o he_o think_v in_o his_o conscience_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v argue_v so_o false_o upon_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o jewish_a theocracy_n to_o the_o like_a proceed_n in_o christian_a state_n and_o say_v if_o this_o way_n of_o argue_v be_v true_a than_o the_o queen_n mean_v queen_n elizabeth_n be_v bind_v to_o burn_v many_o popish_a town_n in_o her_o kingdom_n and_o smite_v the_o inhabitant_n with_o the_o sword_n etc._n etc._n i_o have_v therefore_o think_v it_o essential_a to_o the_o advancement_n and_o preservation_n of_o loyalty_n to_o endeavour_v to_o have_v the_o papal_a and_o presbyterian_a error_n as_o to_o the_o jewish_a law_n exterminate_v and_o the_o settle_n of_o this_o point_n be_v the_o more_o important_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o loyalty_n because_o the_o same_o chapter_n in_o deuteronomy_n viz._n the_o 13_o the_o that_o have_v be_v the_o pope_n palladium_n for_o his_o power_n of_o fire_v heretical_a city_n have_v likewise_o be_v make_v use_n of_o by_o our_o delude_a excluder_n as_o they_o too_o recur_v to_o in_o a_o practice_n so_o scandalous_a to_o loyalty_n and_o to_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o which_o have_v too_o much_o appear_v in_o the_o many_o factious_a pamphlet_n for_o the_o exclusion_n and_o as_o i_o hint_v that_o that_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomy_n be_v impious_o apply_v in_o a_o former_a conjuncture_n for_o put_v the_o queen_n of_o scot_n to_o death_n so_o the_o pretend_a lawfulness_n of_o the_o exclusion_n by_o argue_v from_o the_o great_a to_o the_o less_o be_v by_o the_o delude_a general_o infer_v from_o that_o chapter_n and_o the_o place_n i_o just_a now_o refer_v too_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o jovian_a mention_n mr._n i_n argue_v from_o deut._n 13._o 6._o if_o thy_o brother_n the_o son_n of_o thy_o mother_n etc._n etc._n in_o cite_v of_o which_o say_v the_o dr._n it_o be_v evident_a on_o who_o our_o author_n do_v reflect_v the_o very_a expose_v the_o absurdity_n of_o the_o papal_a power_n of_o destroy_v heretical_a person_n and_o city_n on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o mosaic_a law_n will_v i_o believe_v as_o by_o consent_n of_o the_o sober_a of_o all_o party_n much_o help_v to_o exterminate_v the_o aforesaid_a error_n which_o have_v cost_v the_o papacy_n so_o dear_a and_o natural_o tempt_v so_o many_o calvinist_n to_o own_o the_o same_o error_n partly_o by_o way_n of_o retaliation_n and_o not_o altogether_o through_o defect_n of_o judgement_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o if_o the_o papacy_n be_v now_o to_o begin_v to_o claim_v the_o allowance_n of_o exercise_v the_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v over_o all_o proselyte_v to_o the_o jewish_a religion_n and_o as_o appear_v by_o not_o only_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o palestine_n but_o other_o of_o the_o most_o remote_a country_n and_o particular_o by_o the_o aethiopian_a in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n own_v subjection_n to_o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n it_o will_v stop_v at_o the_o conquest_n of_o that_o ecumenical_a power_n and_o ten_o of_o the_o levite_n thereby_o without_o demand_v the_o power_n to_o destroy_v heretic_n town_n and_o to_o exterminate_v the_o person_n of_o heretic_n by_o crusado_n as_o other_o dependency_n on_o it_o but_o the_o papacy_n have_v long_o ago_o pass_v that_o bloody_a rubicon_n of_o the_o judicial_a law_n and_o can_v in_o honour_n or_o politic_n go_v back_o nor_o will_v any_o pope_n express_o renounce_v the_o power_n of_o compel_a prince_n to_o exterminate_v their_o heretical_a subject_n though_o yet_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o power_n be_v thus_o as_o i_o have_v show_v tacit_o pass_v away_o and_o as_o a_o thing_n necessary_o impracticable_a in_o the_o more_o populous_a world._n and_o no_o jesuited_a papist_n dare_v disclaim_v this_o power_n in_o the_o pope_n behalf_n or_o impugn_v the_o same_o however_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o but_o foresee_v that_o his_o quash_a the_o jesuites_n power_n to_o kill_v man_n by_o retail_n will_v render_v the_o jesuit_n averse_a from_o write_v for_o his_o power_n to_o kill_v heretic_n by_o wholesale_n and_o by_o crusado_n or_o for_o the_o power_n to_o fire_v heretical_a city_n if_o there_o be_v occasion_n to_o have_v any_o such_o power_n assert_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o papacy_n as_o i_o believe_v there_o neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v but_o partly_o according_a to_o my_o conjecture_n of_o the_o result_n of_o the_o fermentation_n about_o the_o regale_n in_o france_n i_o suppose_v that_o though_o the_o papacy_n will_v no_o more_o be_v bring_v to_o disclaim_v its_o pretend_a monarchy_n over_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la than_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n will_v the_o title_n of_o their_o be_v king_n of_o cyprus_n yet_o it_o will_v be_v neither_o able_a or_o studious_a to_o prosecute_v its_o claim_n of_o such_o power_n by_o disorder_v the_o world_n as_o former_o all_o the_o personal_a virtue_n and_o probity_n of_o any_o pope_n will_v never_o incline_v they_o to_o pronounce_v against_o their_o jurisdiction_n however_o they_o may_v thereby_o and_o by_o want_n of_o strength_n to_o execute_v it_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o old_a injurious_a ampliate_v it_o and_o on_o this_o slippery_a precipice_n the_o papacy_n still_o remain_v and_o from_o whence_o through_o the_o natural_a jealousy_n of_o crown_v head_n and_o state_n in_o the_o point_n of_o power_n it_o will_v probable_o fall_v down_o to_o its_o tame_a principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la and_o its_o patriarchal_a figure_n and_o in_o time_n to_o nothing_o but_o by_o many_o of_o the_o anti-papal_a sect_n and_o such_o as_o call_v themselves_o the_o only_a true_a protestant_n still_o own_v the_o obligation_n of_o the_o jewish_a forinsec_n law_n a_o necessity_n be_v by_o god_n and_o nature_n put_v on_o the_o protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o combat_n such_o pretend_a obligation_n by_o dint_n of_o reason_n and_o thereby_o to_o support_v the_o right_n of_o their_o prince_n without_o condition_n and_o reserve_v and_o which_o no_o jesuited_a papist_n or_o protestant_n either_o can_v or_o will_v do_v nor_o be_v it_o safe_a for_o other_o papist_n to_o own_o principle_n that_o touch_v the_o pope_n imaginary_a monarchal_a power_n for_o power_n how_o fantastic_a soever_o will_v seem_v a_o serious_a thing_n and_o will_v endure_v no_o raillery_n and_o the_o honest_a father_n charon_n who_o i_o have_v mention_v as_o cite_v 250_o popish_a author_n who_o deny_v the_o pope_n power_n to_o depose_v prince_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n nuntio_n and_o 4_o pope_n condemn_v his_o doctrine_n and_o the_o inquisitor_n damn_v his_o book_n and_o his_o superior_n his_o soul_n i_o mean_v they_o very_o fair_o excommunicate_v he_o for_o it_o there_o be_v another_o thing_n that_o may_v render_v the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o papal_a tenet_n worthy_a
settlement_n of_o the_o same_o prove_v abortive_a in_o several_a parliament_n ib._n the_o french_a king_n in_o the_o last_o war_n do_v forbid_v the_o importation_n of_o sail-cloath_n to_o england_n ib._n a_o presage_n of_o the_o future_a happy_a state_n of_o england_n and_o the_o author_n idea_n thereof_o at_o large_a ib._n and_o p._n 252._o a_o account_n of_o the_o rough_a hemp_n and_o flax_n and_o sail-cloth_n and_o all_o other_o manufacture_n of_o hemp_n and_o flax_n yearly_o bring_v into_o england_n and_o from_o what_o country_n deduce_v out_o of_o the_o custom-house_n book_n p._n 254._o all_o the_o hemp_n and_o flax_n sow_v in_o england_n be_v observe_v to_o be_v buy_v up_o by_o the_o year_n end_n p._n 257._o almost_o as_o much_o hemp_n and_o flax_n yearly_o bring_v into_o amsterdam_n as_o into_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o england_n ib._n the_o author_n judgement_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o necessity_n that_o will_v drive_v we_o on_o to_o the_o linen_n manufacture_n ib._n a_o account_n of_o the_o fine_a linen_n late_o make_v by_o the_o french_a protestant_n at_o ipswich_n and_o of_o the_o flax_n by_o they_o sow_v ib._n the_o author_n censure_n of_o the_o excessive_a complaint_n of_o the_o danger_n of_o popery_n ib._n his_o belief_n that_o the_o future_a state_n of_o england_n will_v make_v man_n ashamed_a of_o their_o pass_a fear_n of_o popery_n ib._n the_o vote_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o for_o the_o recall_v the_o declaration_n of_o indulgence_n carry_v by_o the_o party_n of_o the_o nonconformist_n p._n 258._o most_o of_o the_o papist_n of_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1610_o compute_v to_o be_v under_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o jesuit_n p._n 260._o many_o popish_a writer_n have_v inveigh_v against_o gratian_n the_o compiler_n of_o the_o decret_o of_o the_o canon_n law_n ib._n that_o law_n never_o in_o gross_a receive_v in_o england_n ib._n bind_v not_o english_a papist_n in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n ib._n a_o tenet_n ridiculous_o and_o false_o in_o the_o canon_n law_n found_v on_o cyprian_a ib._n gratian_n sound_n it_o on_o cyprian_a give_v it_o only_o the_o weight_n it_o can_v have_v in_o cyprian_n work_n p._n 261._o pere_n veron_n book_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o catholic_n faith_n cite_v for_o gratian_n decree_n and_o the_o gloss_n claim_v nothing_o of_o faith_n and_o bellarmine_n acknowledge_v error_n therein_o ib._n one_o definition_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o gloss_n hold_v by_o all_o papist_n ridiculous_a ib._n the_o author_n think_v he_o have_v say_v as_o much_o to_o throw_v off_o the_o obligation_n on_o any_o papist_n to_o obey_v the_o pope_n canon_n law_n as_o they_o will_v wish_v say_v ib._n he_o think_v himself_o moral_o oblige_v in_o any_o theological_a enquiry_n to_o say_v all_o that_o the_o matter_n will_v fair_o bear_v on_o both_o side_n ib._n heylin_n and_o maimbourg_n cite_v about_o the_o fire_n of_o heretical_a village_n in_o france_n p._n 262._o parson_n and_o bellarmine_n cite_v by_o donne_n for_o render_v some_o thing_n obligatory_a that_o be_v say_v by_o gratian_n p._n 263._o the_o author_n expect_v that_o the_o grow_a populousness_n of_o england_n will_v have_v the_o effect_n of_o render_v man_n less_o censorious_a of_o any_o suppose_a political_a error_n in_o the_o minister_n of_o our_o prince_n p._n 265._o mr._n fox_n cite_v for_o his_o observation_n of_o many_o excellent_a man_n false_o accuse_v and_o judge_v in_o parliament_n and_o his_o advice_n to_o parliament_n to_o be_v more_o circumspect_a ib._n the_o author_n mind_v by_o that_o passage_n out_o of_o fox_n to_o reflect_v on_o the_o severity_n in_o a_o late_a parliament_n in_o their_o vote_n against_o the_o king_n minister_n ib._n the_o injustice_n of_o the_o vote_n against_o the_o earl_n of_o hallifax_n p._n 266._o the_o earl_n of_o radnor_n occasional_o mention_v with_o honour_n ib._n the_o constancy_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o anglesy_n to_o the_o protestant_a religion_n further_o assert_v p._n 267._o mention_v of_o his_o lordship_n be_v injurious_o reflect_v on_o in_o a_o speech_n of_o sir_n w._n j._n ib._n the_o unreasonableness_n of_o the_o reflection_n on_o the_o lord_n chief_a justice_n north_n for_o advise_v and_o assist_v in_o the_o draw_v up_o and_o pass_v a_o proclamation_n against_o tumultuous_a petition_n ib._n the_o great_a deserve_a character_n of_o that_o lord_n chief_a justice_n p._n 268._o throughout_o a_o reflection_n on_o the_o popularity_n of_o sir_n w._n j._n and_o on_o the_o ●●●essive_a applause_n he_o have_v from_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o after_o his_o speech_n for_o the_o exclusion-bill_n p._n 269._o sir_n leolin_n jenkins_n mention_v with_o honour_n ib._n the_o cabal_n of_o sir_n w._n j._n observe_v to_o be_v full_a of_o fear_n of_o the_o exclusion-bill_n pass_v and_o their_o not_o know_v what_o step_v in_o politic_n to_o make_v next_o ib._n the_o earl_n of_o peterborough_n at_o large_a mention_v with_o honour_n ib._n and_o p._n 270._o a_o further_a account_n of_o the_o author_n prediction_n of_o england_n future_a happy_a state_n ib._n and_o p._n 271._o the_o author_n observe_v that_o the_o most_o remarkable_a late_a seditious_a writer_n have_v publish_v it_o in_o print_n that_o they_o fear_v the_o next_o heir_n to_o the_o crown_n only_o as_o chief_a favourite_n to_o his_o prince_n and_o that_o they_o judge_v that_o the_o law_n will_v sufficient_o secure_v they_o from_o fear_n of_o his_o power_n if_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o crown_n p._n 271._o a_o assertion_n of_o his_o never_o have_v advise_v his_o prince_n to_o incommode_v any_o one_o illegal_o and_o of_o his_o not_o have_v use_v his_o own_o power_n to_o any_o such_o purpose_n ib._n the_o author_n judge_v such_o person_n to_o write_v but_o in_o jest_n who_o amuse_n the_o people_n about_o be_v lachrymist_n by_o that_o prince_n succession_n ib._n the_o author_n reflect_v on_o our_o counterfeit_n lachrymist_n for_o not_o affect_v as_o quick_a a_o prevention_n of_o any_o future_a growth_n of_o popery_n as_o be_v 〈◊〉_d care_n of_o in_o scotland_n p._n 272._o he_o observe_v that_o few_o or_o none_o in_o scotland_n fear_v that_o popery_n can_v ever_o in_o any_o course_n of_o time_n there_o gain_v much_o ground_n ib._n the_o papist_n in_o that_o kingdom_n estimate_v to_o be_v but_o 1000_o ib._n the_o author_n believe_v that_o the_o fear_n of_o popery_n growth_n will_v be_v daily_o abate_v in_o england_n and_o in_o time_n be_v extinguish_v ib._n more_o popish_a ecclesiastic_n observe_v to_o be_v in_o holland_n than_o minister_n in_o france_n and_o that_o yet_o none_o in_o holland_n pretend_v to_o fear_v the_o papist_n ib._n the_o author_n judgement_n of_o the_o dissenter_n say_n be_v useful_o publish_v ib._n some_o note_n on_o the_o geneva_n bible_n seditious_a ib._n the_o same_o tenet_n of_o fire_v heretical_a city_n that_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n canon_n law_n found_v on_o the_o 13_o the_o of_o deuteronomy_n be_v chargeable_a on_o our_o late_a presbyterian_o ib._n the_o assembly_n annotation_n cite_v to_o that_o purpose_n ib._n the_o church_n of_o england_n illuminate_v we_o with_o better_a doctrine_n p._n 274._o bishop_n sanderson_n cite_v for_o that_o purpose_n ib._n calvin_n as_o to_o this_o point_n do_v blunder_v as_o shameful_o as_o our_o assembly-man_n p._n 274._o several_a of_o the_o calvinistick_a and_o lutheran_n divine_v imbibe_v the_o error_n of_o hereticidium_fw-la from_o the_o same_o mistake_a principle_n of_o monk_n gratian'ss_n ib._n the_o presbyterian_o here_o fire_v the_o church_n and_o state_n with_o a_o civil_a war_n ib._n the_o author_n belief_n that_o there_o will_v never_o be_v any_o new_a presbyterian_a synod_n in_o england_n nor_o general_n council_n beyond_o sea_n ib._n the_o pope_n pension_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o sit_v for_o 18_o year_n come_v to_o 750_o l._n sterling_n per_fw-la month_n ●b_n the_o author_n predict_v the_o extermination_n of_o all_o mercenary_a loyalty_n in_o england_n ib._n the_o reason_n of_o such_o his_o prediction_n p._n 275._o the_o lord_n hyde_n first_o commissioner_n of_o the_o treasury_n mention_v with_o honour_n ib._n what_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n be_v that_o the_o author_n expect_v in_o england_n ib._n the_o reason_n that_o induce_v false_a prophet_n to_o foretell_v evil_a rather_o than_o good_a to_o state_n and_o kingdom_n p._n 276._o at_o large_a the_o same_o apply_v to_o our_o augur_n who_o by_o enlarge_n our_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n and_o their_o own_o fortune_n thereby_o render_v the_o genius_n of_o england_n less_o august_n ib._n the_o author_n measure_n of_o the_o future_a state_n of_o england_n be_v take_v only_o from_o natural_a cause_n and_o nature_n constancy_n to_o itself_o p._n 277._o a_o short_a account_n of_o several_a great_a religionary_a doctrine_n have_v natural_o pierce_v through_o the_o side_n and_o root_n of_o one_o another_o p._n 279._o the_o
i_o think_v that_o a_o eximious_a man_n impeach_v in_o parliament_n and_o there_o acquit_v will_v need_v no_o herald_n to_o proclaim_v his_o worth_n nor_o his_o deserve_a to_o be_v restore_v in_o integrum_fw-la to_o the_o royal_a protection_n and_o favour_n when_o that_o his_o own_o work_n have_v praise_v he_o in_o the_o gate_n that_o be_v in_o the_o jurisdiction_n where_o they_o be_v so_o strict_o scan_v my_o lord_n if_o any_o can_v prove_v your_o lordship_n to_o be_v a_o papist_n he_o need_v not_o call_v that_o accumulative_a treason_n in_o you_o nor_o need_v he_o go_v about_o by_o torture_v the_o law_n to_o make_v it_o confess_v many_o felony_n to_o be_v one_o treason_n many_o rape_n to_o be_v one_o false_a come_v but_o popery_n in_o you_o will_v be_v plain_o downright_a palpable_a and_o rank_a treason_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o statute_n of_o 23_o of_o elizabeth_n ch._n 1._o which_o make_v it_o high_a treason_n for_o any_o person_n in_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n to_o be_v withdraw_v from_o the_o religion_n then_o establish_v to_o the_o romish_a religion_n that_o your_o lordship_n have_v be_v breed_v a_o protestant_n and_o be_v so_o as_o it_o be_v ex_fw-la traduce_n there_o need_v no_o other_o evidence_n than_o the_o content_n of_o this_o letter_n and_o that_o you_o have_v not_o be_v withdraw_v to_o the_o romish_a religion_n you_o have_v declare_v by_o the_o series_n of_o your_o act_n against_o it_o that_o show_v your_o mind_n beyond_o the_o power_n of_o word_n and_o it_o be_v by_o the_o help_n of_o that_o great_a wisdom_n god_n have_v give_v you_o that_o our_o english_a world_n expect_v that_o a_o way_n may_v be_v find_v how_o to_o make_v it_o more_o clear_o appear_v to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o law_n when_o any_o other_o have_v be_v or_o be_v withdraw_v to_o the_o romish_a religion_n a_o thing_n perhaps_o at_o present_a of_o somewhat_o difficult_a proof_n for_o without_o suppose_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v or_o will_v give_v they_o dispensation_n to_o take_v all_o oath_n and_o test_n that_o can_v be_v devise_v do_v not_o a_o reserve_v some_o fantastic_a sense_n to_o themselves_o make_v nonsense_n of_o all_o oath_n and_o that_o one_o word_n equivocation_n make_v they_o proof_n against_o all_o other_o word_n do_v not_o that_o with_o they_o sanctify_v or_o at_o least_o justify_v all_o other_o word_n they_o can_v use_v may_v they_o not_o on_o these_o term_n safe_o swear_v there_o be_v neither_o god_n nor_o man_n nor_o hell_n nor_o devil_n that_o be_v meaning_n not_o in_o a_o mathematical_a point_n or_o in_o utopia_n and_o that_o they_o see_v not_o such_o a_o man_n such_o a_o day_n that_o be_v not_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o whale_n and_o have_v not_o the_o late_a die_a speech_n of_o some_o of_o these_o impostor_n and_o particular_o father_n ireland_n show_v we_o that_o in_o the_o point_n of_o mental_a reservation_n and_o equivocation_n they_o persevere_v in_o the_o impudent_a own_n of_o that_o which_o will_v unhinge_v the_o world_n and_o turn_v humane_a society_n into_o a_o dissolute_a multitude_n and_o do_v we_o not_o believe_v many_o to_o be_v papist_n who_o we_o know_v have_v take_v the_o oath_n and_o test_n have_v not_o a_o papist_n some_o year_n since_o write_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o take_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n i_o speak_v not_o this_o my_o lord_n to_o derogate_v from_o the_o wisdom_n of_o our_o ancestor_n that_o appoint_v these_o discrimination_n nation_n and_o do_v think_v that_o when_o we_o have_v use_v all_o the_o lawful_a mean_n we_o can_v to_o know_v who_o among_o we_o be_v papist_n as_o certain_o as_o we_o do_v what_o be_v popery_n and_o to_o keep_v papist_n from_o hurt_v we_o and_o themselves_o we_o ought_v to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o result_v of_o the_o providence_n of_o god._n but_o what_o all_o those_o mean_n be_v though_o i_o know_v not_o yet_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o believe_v that_o your_o lordship_n comprehensive_a knowledge_n of_o man_n and_o thing_n and_o of_o the_o true_a interest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n have_v qualify_v you_o to_o tell_v your_o royal_a master_n and_o his_o house_n of_o parliament_n nor_o do_v i_o believe_v that_o the_o difficulty_n of_o either_o find_v out_o such_o mean_n and_o make_v practicable_a thing_n be_v practise_v will_v blunt_v but_o rather_o whet_v the_o edge_n of_o your_o industry_n in_o this_o case_n as_o be_v of_o quintilian_o mind_n who_o judged_n that_o there_o be_v turpitude_n in_o despair_v of_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v do_v i_o think_v his_o word_n be_v turpiter_fw-la desperatur_fw-la quicquid_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la ●tis_fw-la certain_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n here_o and_o especial_o of_o those_o withdraw_v from_o protestancy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v know_v in_o the_o case_n of_o which_o apostate_n though_o it_o be_v impossible_a without_o seize_v on_o the_o paper_n and_o archive_v of_o one_o certain_a priest_n to_o see_v the_o original_a act_n of_o their_o recantation_n of_o protestancy_n yet_o be_v it_o most_o certain_a and_o on_o all_o hand_n confess_o true_a that_o eminent_a overtact_n of_o abhorrency_n of_o protestantisme_n be_v always_o require_v at_o the_o admitting_z one_o who_o be_v of_o that_o religion_n into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n which_o any_o one_o will_v be_v convince_v of_o who_o read_v the_o letter_n of_o cardinal_n d'ossat_fw-la to_o villeroy_n of_o the_o 20_o the_o of_o octob._n 1603._o from_o rome_n where_o he_o give_v his_o opinion_n against_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n be_v make_v godmother_n at_o the_o baptism_n of_o madam_n that_o cardinal_n who_o have_v incomparable_a skill_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o papal_a see_v and_o who_o have_v live_v at_o rome_n above_o 20_o year_n say_v in_o that_o letter_n i_o account_v it_o my_o duty_n to_o write_v to_o you_o free_o that_o that_o can_v be_v do_v without_o very_o great_a scandal_n to_o good_a catholic_n nor_o without_o the_o extreme_a displeasure_n and_o offence_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o presuppose_v that_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n be_v a_o catholic_a but_o here_o we_o know_v the_o contrary_a though_o some_o believe_v that_o she_o be_v not_o of_o the_o worse_a sort_n of_o heretic_n and_o that_o she_o have_v some_o inclination_n to_o the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o moreover_o that_o though_o she_o be_v in_o her_o heart_n of_o the_o catholic_a apostolic_a and_o roman_a religion_n as_o much_o as_o the_o pope_n himself_o so_o it_o be_v that_o she_o have_v be_v breed_v up_o in_o heresy_n and_o outward_o persist_v in_o it_o as_o she_o do_v she_o can_v according_o to_o the_o canon_n be_v hold_v for_o a_o catholic_a in_o public_a act_n of_o religion_n till_o she_o have_v first_o both_o viva_fw-la voce_fw-la and_o by_o write_v under_o her_o hand_n abjure_v all_o heresy_n and_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith._n nor_o be_v it_o ever_o know_v that_o in_o the_o case_n of_o any_o protestant_n apostasy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n any_o pope_n ever_o dispense_v with_o those_o canon_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v well_o hence_o be_v infer_v that_o if_o evidence_n just_a so_o much_o as_o the_o law_n require_v as_o to_o such_o apostasy_n be_v give_v that_o no_o superpondium_fw-la or_o proof_n of_o overtact_n more_o than_o necessary_a aught_o to_o be_v expect_v for_o that_o overt_a act_n almost_o impossible_a to_o be_v prove_v may_v yet_o necessary_o be_v presume_v but_o this_o by_o the_o way_n and_o therefore_o now_o further_o my_o lord_n if_o fas_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la host_n doceri_fw-la be_v adviseable_a in_o the_o case_n as_o strict_a circumstance_n may_v be_v require_v in_o the_o conversion_n of_o papist_n to_o our_o church_n as_o be_v in_o the_o withdraw_n of_o any_o from_o our_o church_n to_o they_o indeed_o if_o i_o be_v a_o member_n of_o parliament_n and_o any_o one_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o invent_v a_o way_n and_o propound_v it_o whereby_o the_o present_a lay-papists_a in_o england_n may_v let_v we_o have_v a_o moral_a certainty_n that_o they_o neither_o consent_v to_o nor_o conceal_v the_o late_a plot_n and_o likewise_o that_o they_o do_v real_o detest_v all_o those_o desperate_a popish_a principle_n that_o be_v fundamental_o destructive_a to_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o that_o they_o will_v harbour_v no_o priest_n bear_v in_o the_o king_n dominion_n nor_o send_v any_o of_o their_o child_n to_o be_v breed_v in_o foreign_a seminary_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o on_o occasion_n they_o will_v discover_v to_o a_o magistrate_n any_o such_o priest_n or_o one_o who_o send_v his_o child_n to_o such_o seminary_n
least_o one_o world_n of_o heretic_n the_o author_n of_o the_o compendium_n need_v not_o by_o his_o rhetoric_n to_o reflect_v on_o my_o lord_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n candour_n &_o gentleness_n in_o say_v yet_o if_o it_o be_v a_o breach_n of_o christianity_n to_o crush_v the_o bruise_a reed_n and_o of_o generosity_n also_o to_o trample_v upon_o the_o oppress_a i_o wish_v his_o lordship_n may_v be_v find_v guilty_a of_o neither_o etc._n etc._n for_o behold_v any_o single_a jesuit_n according_a to_o campian_n though_o but_o like_o a_o reed_n shake_v with_o the_o wind_n be_v able_a to_o bruise_v all_o protestant_a sceptre_n and_o any_o little_a toe_n of_o that_o order_n can_v trample_v all_o heretical_a crown_a head_n to_o dirt_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o england_n if_o reduce_v to_o the_o least_o of_o number_n be_v not_o according_a to_o campian_n to_o be_v slight_v if_o one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o jesuite_n for_o that_o that_o one_o jesuit_n will_v carry_v the_o advantage_n of_o odds_o against_o all_o protestant_a king_n and_o prince_n that_o one_o may_v say_v my_o name_n be_v legion_n for_o we_o be_v many_o but_o as_o that_o legion-spirit_n can_v not_o without_o the_o divine_a permission_n ruin_v a_o herd_n of_o swine_n off_o from_o a_o steep_a place_n so_o neither_o can_v all_o the_o legion_n of_o jesuited_a evil_a spirit_n in_o the_o world_n drive_v a_o king_n &_o kingdom_n from_o precipice_n at_o their_o pleasure_n and_o queen_n elizabeth_n in_o spite_n of_o all_o the_o art_n and_o power_n of_o rome_n outlive_v eight_o pope_n and_o live_v to_o change_v all_o her_o counsellor_n but_o one_o all_o her_o great_a officer_n twice_o or_o thrice_o some_o bishop_n four_o time_n and_o die_v full_a of_o year_n and_o do_v see_v and_o leave_v peace_n upon_o israel_n and_o now_o i_o shall_v entertain_v your_o lordship_n with_o a_o further_a reason_n of_o my_o charge_v the_o present_a pope_n declaration_n aforesaid_a about_o some_o opinion_n of_o the_o casuist_n as_o carry_v with_o it_o a_o face_n of_o some_o thing_n like_o shame_n and_o my_o reason_n be_v ground_v on_o what_o be_v say_v in_o a_o public_a sermon_n before_o a_o honourable_a audience_n namely_o that_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o casuist_n therein_o be_v not_o condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o consistory_n which_o will_v have_v make_v the_o censure_n more_o authoritative_a but_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n of_o the_o court_n of_o the_o inquisition_n upon_o which_o a_o remarkable_a thing_n follow_v the_o jefuite_n in_o france_n who_o be_v much_o provoke_v at_o this_o censure_n move_v the_o procurer_n de_fw-fr roy_fw-fr or_o attorney_n general_a at_o paris_n to_o put_v in_o a_o complaint_n against_o the_o publish_n that_o decree_n since_o it_o come_v from_o the_o court_n of_o the_o inquisition_n which_o not_o be_v acknowledge_v in_o france_n nothing_o flow_v from_o that_o authority_n can_v be_v receive_v in_o that_o kingdom_n upon_o which_o the_o decree_n be_v prohibit_v and_o suppress_v and_o may_v not_o the_o english_a popish_a priest_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n the_o inquisition_n be_v never_o receive_v in_o england_n and_o therefore_o that_o declaration_n of_o the_o pope_n oblige_v we_o not_o here_o and_o we_o will_v prohibit_v and_o suppress_v it_o as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o present_a pope_n fear_v that_o the_o noisome_a and_o infectious_a smell_n of_o those_o opinion_n of_o the_o casuist_n be_v more_o offensive_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n than_o any_o snuff_n of_o a_o candle_n can_v be_v to_o their_o nostril_n they_o be_v ready_a to_o cry_v for_o the_o remove_n of_o the_o candlestick_n of_o his_o church_n out_o of_o its_o place_n go_v about_o to_o extinguish_v they_o in_o the_o most_o summary_n manner_n that_o he_o can_v and_o therefore_o attempt_v to_o do_v it_o by_o the_o court_n of_o the_o inquisition_n well_o know_v that_o in_o the_o consistory_n of_o cardinal_n all_o proceed_n be_v so_o dilatory_a and_o the_o old_a magi_fw-la there_o so_o use_v to_o do_v every_o thing_n pian_a piano_n that_o they_o will_v consume_v many_o pound_n of_o new_a candle_n in_o debate_v whither_o or_o no_o and_o how_o the_o old_a snuff_n shall_v be_v remove_v and_o perhaps_o will_v have_v think_v to_o have_v content_v the_o world_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n with_o give_v it_o some_o perfume_n but_o the_o pope_n be_v afraid_a of_o the_o jesuit_n perhaps_o as_o sometime_o the_o grand_a signior_n be_v of_o his_o janissary_n do_v not_o for_o fear_v himself_o shall_v be_v extinguish_v by_o they_o so_o far_o as_o i_o may_v say_v follow_v the_o light_n within_o he_o as_o to_o throw_v away_o or_o tread_v out_o that_o snuff_n of_o those_o opinion_n as_o contain_v a_o malum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la or_o declare_v any_o of_o they_o to_o be_v ill_a as_o contrary_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n in_o which_o case_n neither_o he_o nor_o god_n himself_o indeed_o can_v have_v dispense_v with_o they_o though_o yet_o any_o honest_a and_o ingenious_a heathen_a will_v on_o the_o least_o occasion_n give_v have_v declare_v they_o so_o as_o cicero_n and_o seneca_n and_o many_o other_o have_v do_v and_o which_o have_v the_o pope_n do_v and_o the_o jesuit_n or_o any_o papist_n persevere_v in_o the_o make_v those_o principle_n the_o rule_n of_o practice_n his_o kingdom_n have_v thereby_o be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la divide_v against_o itself_o and_o a_o diffinitive_a sentence_n have_v be_v thereby_o give_v by_o the_o pope_n that_o all_o who_o have_v die_v own_v those_o principle_n and_o practice_n have_v be_v sink_v for_o ever_o into_o the_o burn_a lake_n therefore_o as_o i_o say_v before_o i_o hope_v this_o declaration_n of_o the_o pope_n such_o as_o it_o be_v will_v give_v a_o alarm_n to_o our_o english_a papist_n to_o deal_v serious_o with_o their_o soul_n and_o to_o consider_v as_o if_o it_o be_v for_o their_o eternity_n these_o and_o other_o principle_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o that_o if_o they_o will_v not_o be_v thereby_o persuade_v to_o be_v almost_o protestant_a christian_n yet_o to_o be_v altogether_o master_n of_o as_o good_a moral_a principle_n as_o the_o heathen_n i_o name_v and_o if_o any_o of_o they_o can_v but_o give_v we_o a_o moral_a certainty_n of_o their_o principle_n be_v but_o such_o i_o shall_v never_o repine_v at_o any_o favour_n that_o any_o new_a law_n may_v afford_v to_o such_o of_o they_o if_o therefore_o any_o of_o our_o lay_n country_n man_n papist_n not_o guilty_a of_o the_o late_a plot_n shall_v desire_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n towards_o this_o effect_n some_o of_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o these_o principle_n before_o mention_v as_o own_a by_o our_o casuist_n and_o priest_n and_o confessor_n that_o be_v now_o thus_o condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o those_o our_o spiritual_a guide_n do_v own_o such_o principle_n but_o now_o our_o eye_n see_v by_o the_o condemnation_n thereof_o that_o they_o be_v before_o own_a and_o make_v rule_n of_o practice_n wherefore_o we_o hope_v that_o who_o ever_o do_v own_o they_o will_v abhor_v themselves_o and_o repent_v in_o dust_n and_o ash_n and_o other_o of_o we_o do_v former_o think_v they_o consistent_a with_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o kingdom_n and_o with_o humane_a society_n but_o we_o now_o abhor_v those_o principle_n and_o repent_v in_o dust_n and_o ash_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o let_v the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o the_o world_n have_v a_o moral_a certainty_n that_o we_o desire_v no_o power_n to_o change_v the_o religion_n in_o england_n by_o law_n establish_v and_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o receive_v instruction_n from_o any_o that_o shall_v be_v appoint_v by_o public_a authority_n to_o give_v it_o to_o we_o concern_v what_o other_o principle_n beside_o these_o condemn_a by_o the_o pope_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o religion_n or_o the_o public_a peace_n and_o in_o case_n any_o shall_v offer_v to_o give_v we_o dispensation_n either_o for_o principle_n or_o practice_n contrary_a to_o those_o we_o renounce_v as_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o public_a peace_n we_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o accept_v of_o such_o dispensation_n that_o we_o shall_v detect_v the_o offerer_n thereof_o before_o a_o magistrate_n as_o much_o as_o we_o will_v a_o enemy_n to_o his_o majesty_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v active_a or_o passive_a obedience_n as_o to_o all_o the_o law_n in_o be_v we_o believe_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v more_o power_n in_o his_o majesty_n realm_n by_o god_n word_n than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n as_o be_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o public_a recognition_n declare_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o 8_o the_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o render_v the_o kingdom_n as_o secure_v from_o
great_a veh●men●●_n and_o master-like_a in_o the_o council_n about_o two_o hour_n prove_v that_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v give_v whole_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o none_o in_o the_o church_n beside_o ●ath_v any_o spark_n of_o it_o but_o from_o he_o and_o that_o while_n christ_n live_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o govern_v the_o world_n with_o a_o absolute_a monarchical_a government_n and_o be_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o world_n he_o leave_v the_o same_o form_n appoint_v his_o vicar_n st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n to_o administer_v it_o as_o he_o have_v do_v give_v he_o full_a and_o total_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o subject_v the_o church_n to_o he_o as_o before_o to_o himself_o that_o in_o counsel_n be_v they_o never_o so_o frequent_a if_o the_o pope_n be_v present_a he_o only_o do_v decree_n neither_o do_v the_o council_n any_o thing_n but_o approve_v and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v always_o say_v sacro_fw-la approbante_fw-la concilio_n yea_o even_o in_o resolution_n of_o the_o great_a weight_n as_o be_v the_o deposition_n of_o the_o emperor_n frederic_n the_o second_o in_o the_o general_n council_n of_o lion_n innocent_a the_o four_o a_o most_o wise_a pope_n refuse_v the_o approbation_n of_o that_o synod_n tha●_n none_o may_v think_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a and_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o say_v present_a concilio_n how_o come_v the_o case_n now_o alter_v when_o we_o behold_v the_o jesuit_n now_o crucify_a the_o decree_n of_o their_o king_n the_o pope_n after_o all_o their_o former_a hosanna_n to_o he_o while_o he_o be_v mount_v on_o the_o world_n as_o his_o ass_n and_o after_o all_o their_o dea●●ing_n of_o the_o world_n with_o bless_v he_o in_o nomine_fw-la domini_fw-la and_o see_v they_o now_o put_v but_o a_o reed_n of_o infallibility_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o see_v his_o sceptre_n in_o they_o and_o see_v their_o four_o vow_n to_o the_o pope_n annul_v and_o what_o performance_n then_o can_v heretic_n expect_v from_o any_o promise_v they_o make_v to_o they_o and_o may_v not_o the_o jesuit_n wi●●_n the_o salvo_fw-la of_o a_o protestation_n against_o the_o inquisition_n or_o with_o a_o thousand_o expedient_n if_o they_o have_v please_v allow_v receipt_n from_o the_o inquisition_n to_o rid_v the_o world_n of_o a_o pestilence_n as_o frank_o as_o protestant_n use_v the_o jesuit_n powder_n against_o ague_n and_o without_o intend_v more_o honour_n to_o that_o court_n than_o the_o sacred_a writ_n do_v to_o the_o devil_n in_o record_v for_o our_o instruction_n several_a thing_n by_o he_o speak_v and_o have_v not_o we_o a_o candid_a account_n of_o this_o arca●um_n in_o a_o very_a ingenious_a discourse_n late_o translate_v into_o english_a and_o call_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n to_o destroy_v the_o protestant_n of_o that_o kingdom_n and_o write_v in_o the_o way_n of_o a_o dialogue_n between_o a_o parisian_a and_o provincial_n where_o p._n 67_o and_o 68_o le_fw-fr cheise_n and_o the_o jesuit_n party_n be_v say_v to_o have_v effect_v the_o suppression_n of_o the_o say_a decree_n in_o france_n upon_o pretence_n that_o it_o issue_v from_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o inquisition_n and_o that_o in_o the_o draught_n of_o a_o order_n of_o a_o parliament_n in_o france_n for_o the_o suppress_n the_o publication_n of_o this_o decree_n these_o word_n be_v put_v viz._n though_o that_o these_o proposition_n be_v just_o condemn_v and_o that_o father_n le_fw-fr cheise_n cause_v these_o word_n to_o be_v ra●ed_v out_o and_o have_v put_v in_o their_o stead_n that_o even_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o come_v to_o we_o from_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o inquisition_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v but_o if_o upon_o occasion_n of_o what_o be_v discourse_v by_o that_o author_n it_o be_v further_o say_v that_o the_o set_n up_o of_o those_o unmoral_a casuistical_a tenet_n in_o france_n be_v the_o erect_v a_o pillar_n of_o ignominy_n against_o god_n i_o will_v ask_v if_o one_o who_o be_v revera_fw-la a_o incompetent_a judge_n shall_v go_v to_o demolish_v any_o such_o pillar_n set_v up_o against_o my_o father_n and_o i_o have_v already_o own_a that_o that_o judge_n do_v infallible_o know_v the_o bound_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o have_v oblige_v myself_o to_o he_o by_o the_o forementioned_a four_o vow_n that_o what_o thing_n soever_o he_o shall_v command_v that_o belong_v to_o the_o profit_n of_o soul_n and_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o faith_n i_o will_v without_o any_o tergiversation_n or_o excuse_n execute_v as_o far_o as_o i_o be_o able_a for_o this_o be_v the_o jesuit_n four_o vow_n to_o the_o pope_n shall_v i_o then_o be_v active_a in_o the_o hinder_v a_o decree_n of_o this_o nature_n give_v by_o this_o judge_n from_o be_v execute_v at_o the_o same_o time_n i_o protest_v against_o it_o shall_v i_o make_v no_o protestation_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o my_o father_n and_o do_v you_o think_v in_o this_o inquisitive_a age_n the_o cheat_n of_o a_o inquisition_n will_v elsewhere_o pass_v long_o since_o that_o court_n that_o be_v use_v by_o ordinary_a inquisitor_n for_o the_o torture_a the_o body_n of_o christian_n and_o mutilation_n of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n can_v be_v allow_v to_o show_v severity_n to_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o deprave_a mind_n and_o that_o while_o your_o unerring_a judge_n of_o law_n and_o fact_n be_v in_o person_n there_o praeside_v be_v not_o you_o that_o surpre●●_n the_o dictate_v of_o your_o own_o universal_a pastor_n such_o unreasonable_a man_n as_o we_o may_v well_o pray_v to_o be_v deliver_v from_o all_o our_o jesuited_a papist_n must_v still_o expect_v expostulation_n of_o this_o nature_n their_o head_n be_v before_o at_o rome_n and_o their_o brain_n too_o but_o if_o they_o now_o make_v a_o schism_n from_o the_o pope_n himself_o they_o will_v come_v under_o the_o denomination_n of_o acephali_n the_o name_n of_o some_o ancient_a heretic_n that_o be_v the_o people_n without_o a_o head_n unless_o they_o will_v own_v the_o hydra_n of_o the_o jesuit_n for_o their_o head_n which_o it_o seem_v the_o hercules_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o subdue_v i_o believe_v many_o of_o they_o will_v consider_v what_o sure_a foot_n they_o have_v where_o they_o be_v while_o they_o see_v their_o moses_n fly_v from_o his_o own_o staff_n when_o make_v a_o serpent_n i_o mean_v his_o order_n of_o jesuit_n and_o see_v the_o collusive_a or_o sham-serpent_n of_o the_o jesuit_n devour_v those_o of_o their_o moses_n and_o juggler_n by_o deceptio_fw-la visus_fw-la and_o lie_v to_o impose_v on_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n against_o the_o sense_n and_o reason_n of_o mankind_n and_o even_o of_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o it_o will_v be_v very_o ridiculous_a for_o they_o who_o have_v be_v cheat_v out_o of_o their_o own_o religion_n to_o think_v that_o some_o who_o be_v the_o jesuit_n bubble_n can_v cheat_v we_o of_o we_o and_o that_o while_o they_o be_v grow_v seeker_n they_o shall_v make_v we_o loose_v our_o church_n and_o that_o when_o the_o spiritual_a monarchy_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n run_v down_o by_o the_o republic_n or_o society_n of_o the_o jesuit_n they_o shall_v think_v to_o cheat_v we_o of_o our_o king_n and_o church_n and_o that_o our_o religion_n can_v be_v run_v down_o by_o such_o spiritual_a outlaw_n and_o rebel_n against_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o such_o as_o perhaps_o the_o pope_n may_v in_o time_n be_v induce_v to_o oblige_v the_o world_n by_o suppress_v after_o their_o injure_v all_o morality_n and_o the_o most_o vital_a part_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o great_a avow_v use_n of_o his_o power_n in_o the_o whole_a christian_a commonwealth_n by_o their_o suppression_n of_o his_o say_a decree_n i_o hope_v while_o the_o fan_n be_v in_o his_o hand_n he_o will_v thorough_o purge_v his_o floor_n and_o esteem_v the_o disposal_n of_o rich_a benefice_n in_o france_n to_o be_v poor_a regalia_z sancti_fw-la petri_n for_o he_o to_o vindicate_v in_o comparison_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o flock_n that_o he_o and_o all_o ingenuous_a know_v mankind_n know_v must_v be_v destroy_v by_o such_o casuistical_a principle_n and_o without_o his_o do_v which_o he_o can_v in_o the_o least_o deserve_v the_o title_n of_o his_o holiness_n for_o the_o determine_v the_o truth_n about_o such_o principle_n he_o need_v not_o say_v as_o one_o of_o his_o predecessor_n do_v about_o the_o jansenian_a speculation_n that_o he_o have_v no_o skill_n in_o divinity_n a_o very_a little_a skill_n in_o natural_a divinity_n and_o such_o as_o may_v be_v have_v by_o the_o read_n a_o few_o line_n in_o tully_n office_n will_v accomplish_v any_o one_o with_o what_o will_v demonstrate_v the_o thing_n allow_v by_o the_o casuist_n to_o be_v unworthy_a both_o of_o the_o divine_a and_o
give_v decent_a burial_n to_o any_o of_o their_o undecent_a plot_n and_o for_o the_o exasperate_n any_o protestant_n by_o despise_v they_o and_o endeavour_v to_o impose_v on_o their_o understanding_n as_o some_o do_v on_o a_o raw_a young_a country_n gentleman_n who_o one_o day_n treat_v at_o a_o puppet-shew_a they_o persuade_v that_o the_o puppet_n be_v live_v creature_n and_o after_o he_o have_v find_v out_o his_o gross_a ridiculous_a misconceit_n therein_o they_o on_o the_o follow_a day_n attend_v he_o to_o the_o theatre_n engage_v he_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o actor_n be_v puppet_n i_o mean_v their_o endeavour_v to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o sham-plot_n be_v real_a one_o and_o that_o a_o real_a one_o be_v shame_n i_o shall_v never_o wonder_v at_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o anger_n incident_a to_o humane_a nature_n even_o in_o great_a and_o generous_a soul_n on_o the_o occasion_n of_o gross_a calumny_n invent_v against_o they_o about_o a_o matter_n of_o weight_n when_o i_o consider_v the_o example_n of_o the_o great_a royal_a prophet_n a_o person_n of_o a_o great_a understanding_n and_o of_o so_o great_a courage_n that_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a of_o ten_o thousand_o of_o man_n who_o set_v themselves_o against_o he_o round_o about_o and_o though_o a_o host_n shall_v encamp_v ogainst_a he_o his_o heart_n will_v not_o fear_v and_o a_o man_n that_o have_v in_o his_o nature_n and_o temper_n the_o gentleness_n of_o a_o lamb_n mix_v with_o the_o stoutness_n of_o a_o lion_n and_o one_o to_o who_o the_o divine_a promise_n have_v insure_v a_o kingdom_n and_o yet_o be_v he_o by_o the_o sycophancy_n and_o little_a shamme_n raise_v against_o he_o by_o saul_n great_a courtier_n wrought_v to_o so_o high_a a_o pitch_n of_o anger_n that_o he_o do_v with_o exquisite_a form_n of_o imprecation_n and_o such_o as_o perhaps_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o story_n frequent_o devote_v those_o calumniator_n to_o the_o most_o dire_a misery_n his_o fancy_n can_v lead_v he_o to_o express_v but_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o be_v so_o high_o provoke_v by_o those_o that_o will_v turn_v his_o glory_n into_o shame_n and_o do_v seek_v after_o lease_v and_o who_o deceitful_a tongue_n use_v all-devouring_a word_n as_o he_o say_v to_o doeg_n the_o edomite_n in_o one_o of_o his_o psalm_n and_o who_o tongue_n he_o there_o say_v do_v devise_v mischief_n like_o a_o sharp_a razor_n work_v deceitful_o may_v be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o shamme_n of_o his_o enemy_n wound_v he_o in_o the_o most_o sensible_a part_n namely_o the_o reputation_n of_o his_o loyalty_n to_o his_o prince_n who_o life_n he_o spare_v when_o it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o destroy_v he_o and_o who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o use_n of_o shamme_n against_o he_o that_o he_o doom_v the_o amalekite_n to_o die_v that_o shammed_a himself_o the_o author_n of_o saul_n death_n and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n if_o the_o calumny_n of_o jesuited_a papist_n attaque_a protestant_n in_o that_o case_n too_o of_o their_o fidelity_n to_o their_o king_n render_v the_o passion_n of_o anger_n in_o they_o against_o those_o sham_n so_o intense_a and_o vehement_a and_o though_o the_o english_a courage_n or_o a_o very_a little_a philosophy_n will_v help_v they_o to_o bestow_v only_o a_o generous_a neglect_n on_o other_o calumny_n they_o can_v never_o forget_v those_o that_o strike_v at_o the_o heart_n of_o their_o allegiance_n and_o consequent_o of_o their_o religion_n that_o so_o strict_o enjoin_v it_o nor_o if_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o that_o great_a man_n after_o god_n heart_n who_o say_v away_o from_o i_o all_o you_o that_o work_v vanity_n and_o who_o will_v have_v no_o liar_n tarry_v in_o his_o sight_n be_v it_o to_o be_v admire_v if_o every_o true_a english_a protestant_n shall_v say_v too_o odi_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la malignantium_fw-la and_o shall_v feclude_v all_o dictator_n of_o calumny_n from_o his_o company_n and_o banish_v they_o home_o to_o their_o own_o and_o though_o the_o abuse_n of_o excommunication_n by_o the_o papal_a church_n and_o presbyterian_a have_v be_v so_o horrid_a that_o the_o primitive_a use_n of_o it_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n lose_v and_o grow_v obsolete_a yet_o will_v that_o which_o include_v somewhat_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o be_v still_o keep_v alive_a in_o the_o world_n by_o private_a person_n who_o practice_n the_o christian_a religion_n they_o profess_v and_o to_o who_o though_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v not_o give_v that_o hateful_a thing_n to_o humane_a nature_n in_o charge_n namely_o to_o be_v informer_n or_o promoter_n or_o judicial_a accuser_n of_o any_o of_o mankind_n according_o as_o under_o the_o mosaic_a oeconomy_n it_o be_v say_v tu_fw-la non_fw-la eris_fw-la criminator_fw-la yet_o have_v they_o oblige_v they_o to_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n and_o destitute_a of_o the_o truth_n and_o not_o to_o eat_v with_o any_o one_o who_o be_v call_v a_o brother_n and_o be_v a_o railer_n and_o to_o turn_v away_o from_o man_n that_o be_v truce-breaker_n and_o to_o mark_v those_o who_o cause_n division_n and_o to_o avoid_v they_o and_o to_o reject_v a_o heretic_n who_o be_v subvert_v and_o self-condemned_n and_o by_o man_n of_o cultivated_a education_n and_o temper_n who_o value_v themselves_o on_o the_o company_n they_o keep_v and_o on_o it_o be_v value_v by_o the_o world_n and_o will_v therefore_o abandon_v or_o excommunicate_v from_o their_o conversation_n such_o monster_n of_o man_n who_o have_v renounce_v the_o obligation_n of_o humane_a society_n and_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o notorious_a contumacy_n in_o matter_n that_o concern_v the_o very_a salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o kingdom_n the_o be_v stake_v down_o therefore_o to_o a_o narrow_a tedder_n in_o conversation_n or_o be_v civil_o excommunicate_v from_o protestant_n company_n must_v by_o necessity_n of_o nature_n in_o my_o opinion_n be_v the_o fate_n of_o our_o jesuited_a makebate_n and_o criminator_n of_o protestant_n that_o have_v be_v so_o unwearyed_a in_o raise_v jealousy_n between_o the_o king_n and_o his_o people_n and_o between_o protestant_n and_o protestant_n and_o all_o such_o that_o go_v to_o part_v who_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o interest_n have_v join_v will_v probable_o come_v at_o last_o to_o be_v the_o derelict_n of_o humane_a society_n when_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o especial_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v that_o good_a understanding_n between_o protestant_n here_o of_o several_a persuasion_n that_o may_v be_v expect_v to_o arise_v from_o their_o have_v find_v out_o the_o author_n of_o their_o division_n and_o see_v how_o ridiculous_a protestant_n have_v be_v in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o world_n while_o they_o have_v appear_v like_o the_o cat_n to_o draw_v one_o another_o through_o the_o pool_n and_o the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o pensioner_n stand_v behind_o undiscerned_a and_o pull_v the_o rope_n my_o lord_n i_o know_v we_o may_v just_o fear_v that_o popery_n may_v during_o some_o turbid_v interval_n gain_v ground_n in_o england_n and_o as_o the_o renown_a historian_n of_o our_o reformation_n have_v in_o a_o public_a sermon_n judicious_o observe_v that_o sure_a none_o believe_v themselves_o when_o they_o say_v we_o be_v not_o in_o danger_n of_o popery_n and_o none_o can_v think_v it_o but_o they_o who_o desire_v it_o but_o without_o presume_v to_o make_v myself_o one_o of_o heaven_n privy_a councillor_n and_o without_o pretend_v to_o a_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n i_o shall_v on_o the_o basis_n of_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n ground_n this_o affirmation_n that_o whatever_o alteration_n time_n can_v cause_n yet_o while_o the_o english_a nation_n remain_v entire_a and_o defend_v from_o foreign_a conquest_n the_o protestant_a religion_n can_v never_o be_v exterminate_v out_o of_o this_o kingdom_n nor_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o it_o suffer_v any_o long_a interruption_n therein_o i_o will_v grant_v it_o possible_a that_o hereafter_o under_o a_o prince_n of_o the_o popish_a religion_n popery_n may_v like_v the_o vibration_n of_o a_o pendulum_fw-la among_o certain_a person_n have_v the_o great_a extent_n in_o the_o return_n of_o it_o as_o becket_n image_n be_v by_o gardiner_n set_v up_o in_o london_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o much_o pomp_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n after_o its_o be_v pull_v down_o in_o harry_n the_o eighth_n and_o himself_o unsainted_a and_o some_o people_n may_v undertake_v devout_a pilgrimage_n hereafter_o to_o some_o such_o image_n and_o relic_n as_o my_o lord_n herbert_n say_v be_v in_o harry_n the_o eighth_n time_n explode_v and_o we_o may_v again_o hear_v of_o our_o lady_n girdle_n show_v in_o eleven_o several_a place_n and_o her_o milk_n in_o eight_o the_o bell_n of_o st._n guthlac_n and_o the_o feel_a of_o st._n thomas_n of_o lancaster_n both_o remedy_n for_o
by_o some_o accident_n be_v make_v to_o cast_v anchor_n or_o they_o may_v be_v sink_v but_o they_o can_v be_v force_v to_o go_v back_o when_o a_o man_n have_v long_o be_v compel_v to_o creep_v with_o chain_n on_o he_o through_o a_o toilsome_a dark_a labyrinth_n and_o have_v extricate_v himself_o out_o of_o it_o and_o be_v come_v to_o enjoy_v his_o liberty_n in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n the_o persuasion_n of_o word_n can_v make_v he_o go_v back_o again_o my_o lord_n i_o late_o mention_v the_o motto_n of_o the_o royal_a society_n of_o england_n of_o which_o your_o lordship_n be_v a_o member_n and_o i_o look_v on_o the_o very_a constitution_n of_o that_o society_n to_o be_v a_o inexpugnable_a bulwark_n against_o popery_n in_o which_o society_n many_o of_o our_o choice_a english_a wit_n have_v show_v as_o much_o subtlety_n and_o curiosity_n in_o the_o architecture_n of_o real_a science_n and_o such_o as_o tend_v to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o world_n as_o any_o of_o our_o country_n man_n heretofore_o do_v in_o those_o curious_a but_o useless_a cobweb_n of_o holy_a church_n call_v school_n divinity_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o that_o society_n have_v not_o only_o be_v useful_a in_o increase_a the_o trade_n of_o knowledge_n among_o its_o member_n by_o a_o join_a stock_n but_o moreover_o have_v tend_v to_o the_o raise_n in_o the_o kingdom_n a_o general_a inclination_n to_o pursue_v real_a science_n and_o to_o contemn_v all_o science_n false_o so_o call_v and_o the_o raise_v of_o this_o inclination_n i_o will_v call_v a_o spirit_n that_o can_v never_o be_v conjure_v down_o nor_o can_v the_o knowledge_n that_o depend_v on_o number_n weight_n and_o local_a motion_n be_v ever_o exterminate_v by_o sophism_n or_o cant_v or_o term_n of_o art_n nor_o will_v they_o who_o have_v from_o this_o society_n learned_a to_o weigh_v air_n give_v up_o their_o soul_n to_o any_o religion_n that_o be_v all_o air_n without_o weigh_v it_o or_o notwithstanding_o any_o hard_a name_n that_o may_v come_v to_o be_v in_o vogue_n ever_o forget_v that_o bread_n be_v bread_n his_o majesty_n by_o the_o sound_n of_o this_o great_a conservatory_n of_o knowledge_n present_o after_o his_o restoration_n wherein_o his_o great_a minister_n then_o the_o earl_n of_o clarendon_n be_v a_o honourable_a member_n do_v convey_v real_a knowledge_n and_o a_o demonstration_n of_o his_o be_v a_o abhorrer_n of_o arbitrary_a power_n to_o all_o that_o can_v understand_v reason_n and_o affect_v not_o the_o ridiculous_a treasonableness_n of_o bradshaw_n court_n to_o say_v that_o they_o will_v not_o hear_v reason_n for_o have_v he_o like_o the_o eastern_a king_n be_v affect_v arbitrary_a power_n he_o will_v have_v use_v their_o artifice_n of_o endeavour_v to_o cast_v mist_n before_o the_o understand_a faculty_n of_o his_o subject_n and_o to_o detain_v they_o from_o knowledge_n by_o admiration_n and_o to_o deprive_v they_o of_o sight_n like_o horse_n that_o be_v still_o to_o drudge_n in_o the_o mill_n of_o government_n by_o blind_a obedience_n but_o to_o show_v that_o he_o abhor_v both_o such_o obedience_n and_o implicit_a faith_n and_o that_o he_o intend_v to_o establish_v his_o throne_n as_o well_o in_o the_o head_n as_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o subject_n he_o present_o settle_v this_o great_a storehouse_n of_o knowledge_n that_o show_v it_o be_v his_o desire_n and_o ambition_n by_o the_o general_a communication_n of_o knowledge_n in_o his_o dominion_n to_o command_v subject_n who_o head_n be_v with_o the_o ray_n of_o science_n crown_v within_o and_o therefore_o i_o think_v his_o majesty_n munificence_n to_o the_o royal_a society_n in_o give_v they_o chelsey-colledge_n at_o their_o first_o institution_n be_v very_o consistent_a with_o the_o primary_n intention_n of_o the_o erect_v that_o college_n which_o be_v to_o be_v a_o magazine_n for_o polemical-divinity_n wherewith_o to_o attaque_fw-la the_o writer_n for_o popery_n for_o the_o very_a plant_n of_o a_o general_a disposition_n to_o believe_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o reason_n be_v the_o cut_n of_o the_o gra●s_n under_o poperies_fw-fr foot_n and_o his_o majesty_n provide_v for_o the_o growth_n of_o reason_n do_v apparent_o check_v the_o growth_n of_o popery_n as_o well_o as_o of_o arbitrary_a power_n without_o the_o prop_n of_o which_o popery_n can_v never_o run_v up_o to_o any_o height_n more_o than_o the_o sun-flower_n without_o a_o supporter_n and_o the_o settle_n in_o man_n a_o humour_n of_o inquisition_n into_o the_o truth_n and_o nature_n of_o thing_n be_v as_o i_o partly_o say_v before_o a_o everlasting_a barricade_v against_o the_o pope_n darling_n court_n of_o the_o inquisition_n that_o great_a and_o noble_a notion_n of_o the_o circulation_n of_o the_o blood_n take_v its_o first_o rise_n from_o the_o hint_n of_o a_o common_a person_n inquire_v what_o become_v of_o all_o the_o blood_n that_o issue_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n see_v that_o the_o heart_n beat_v above_o three_o thousand_o time_n a_o hour_n tho'_o but_o one_o drop_n shall_v be_v pump_v out_o at_o every_o stroke_n and_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v tell_v i_o that_o he_o believe_v that_o popery_n with_o its_o retinue_n of_o implicit_a faith_n and_o ignorance_n can_v overrun_v we_o i_o will_v ask_v he_o what_o will_v then_o become_v of_o all_o that_o knowledge_n the_o vital_a blood_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o have_v issue_v from_o the_o head_n of_o inquisitive_a protestant_n and_o be_v circulate_v in_o the_o world_n for_o above_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o will_v be_v in_o man_n soul_n as_o long_o as_o blood_n shall_v have_v its_o circular_a course_n in_o their_o body_n and_o maugre_o all_o the_o calumny_n cast_v on_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o be_v fautor_n of_o popery_n i_o shall_v expect_v that_o our_o learned_a college_n of_o physician_n will_v as_o soon_o be_v bring_v to_o disbelieve_v the_o circulation_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o royal_a society_n to_o take_v down_o the_o king_n standard_n that_o they_o have_v set_v up_o against_o implicit_a faith_n as_o our_o learned_a convocation_n the_o learnede_a that_o ever_o england_n have_v be_v bring_v to_o believe_v the_o principle_n of_o popery_n i_o know_v my_o lord_n lord_n t●s_v obvious_a against_o this_o my_o hypothesis_n of_o the_o unpracticableness_n of_o popery_n be_v here_o the_o state-religion_n to_o say_v that_o in_o little_a more_o than_o twenty_o year_n time_n four_o great_a change_n in_o religion_n happen_v in_o england_n and_o that_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o people_n then_o like_o dead_a fish_n go_v with_o the_o stream_n of_o the_o time_n but_o i_o ask_v if_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o people_n have_v be_v thorough_o enlighten_v in_o the_o rationality_n of_o the_o protestant_a principle_n twenty_o year_n together_o will_v they_o have_v return_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o popish_a will_v they_o now_o do_v it_o after_o the_o establishment_n of_o a_o rational_a religion_n for_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n together_o can_v popery_n now_o find_v the_o way_n into_o most_o man_n brain_n here_o present_o after_o the_o whole_a nation_n almost_o be_v preacher_n and_o when_o all_o our_o great_a and_o little_a unruly_a disagree_a sect_n yet_o agree_v in_o this_o as_o a_o fundamental_a that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o antichrist_n if_o printing_n have_v be_v free_a in_o turkey_n for_o a_o hundred_o year_n and_o a_o libera_fw-la philosophia_fw-la and_o theologia_n have_v be_v there_o in_o fashion_n for_o a_o hundred_o year_n and_o every_o man_n have_v be_v allow_v his_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n so_o long_o about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o koran_n or_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o all_o book_n of_o religion_n can_v ignorance_n even_o there_o come_v into_o play_n again_o or_o if_o the_o turk_n have_v drink_v wine_n for_o a_o hundred_o year_n together_o can_v any_o one_o conjure_v the_o glass_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n by_o tell_v they_o there_o be_v a_o devil_n in_o every_o grape_n if_o that_o law_n in_o muscovy_n that_o make_v it_o death_n for_o any_o subject_a to_o travel_v out_o of_o that_o kingdom_n without_o the_o emperor_n licence_n lest_o his_o subject_n have_v see_v the_o freedom_n of_o other_o country_n shall_v never_o again_o return_v to_o the_o arbitrary_a power_n in_o their_o own_o again_o i_o say_v if_o that_o law_n have_v be_v repeal_v for_o a_o hundred_o year_n and_o multitude_n of_o oppress_a mankind_n have_v thence_o find_v the_o way_n to_o breath_n in_o the_o air_n of_o liberty_n like_o man_n can_v they_o be_v persuade_v to_o return_v to_o the_o yoke_n of_o beast_n again_o when_o a_o float_a island_n have_v be_v a_o hundred_o year_n fix_v to_o the_o continent_n can_v any_o teach_v it_o to_o swim_v again_o consulitur_fw-la de_fw-la religione_fw-la be_v likely_a to_o be_v the_o eternal_a
their_o guardian_n and_o account_v it_o a_o very_a preposterous_a thing_n that_o since_o our_o saviour_n refuse_v to_o divide_v a_o inheritance_n his_o pretend_a vicar_n shall_v do_v nothing_o else_o moreover_o holy_a church_n resume_v all_o its_o land_n out_o of_o lay_v hand_n will_v appear_v the_o more_o strange_a in_o england_n when_o we_o see_v as_o my_o lord_n primate_n bramhal_o say_v in_o his_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 212_o that_o the_o very_a king_n of_o spain_n impose_v pension_n usual_o on_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n to_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o value_n and_o particular_o one_o pension_n on_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o sivile_a in_o favour_n of_o a_o infant_n of_o castille_n of_o great_a value_n than_o all_o the_o pension_n there_o impose_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o when_o we_o know_v that_o the_o french_a king_n do_v for_o the_o behoof_n of_o so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o layman_n impose_v so_o many_o and_o great_a pension_n on_o the_o abbey_n without_o say_v to_o the_o abbot_n more_o than_o car_fw-fr tel_fw-fr est_fw-fr nostre_fw-fr plaisir_fw-fr sir_n edwin_n sands_n in_o his_o europae_n speculum_fw-la write_v in_o the_o year_n 1599_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o harry_n the_o 4_o the_o of_o france_n speak_v of_o that_o kingdom_n say_v that_o there_o the_o church_n prelacy_n and_o other_o government_n of_o soul_n be_v make_v the_o fee_n and_o charge_n of_o mere_a courtier_n and_o soldier_n and_o our_o excellent_a animadverter_n on_o mounseur_fw-fr sorbier_n reflect_v on_o that_o country_n intimate_v in_o effect_n how_o there_o the_o chief_a spiritual_a dignity_n be_v entail_v upon_o family_n and_o possess_v by_o child_n they_o who_o unjust_o cry_v out_o of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o interrupt_v the_o trade_n of_o the_o kingdom_n will_v be_v loud_a enough_o in_o their_o complaint_n of_o omnia_fw-la comesta_fw-mi à_fw-it belo_n under_o popery_n he_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o king_n now_o depend_v in_o a_o manner_n sole_o upon_o trade_n and_o that_o trade_n depend_v on_o populousness_n and_o that_o the_o encouragement_n of_o people_n to_o live_v under_o any_o government_n be_v that_o great_a thing_n call_v property_n in_o their_o estate_n religion_n and_o law_n and_o that_o therefore_o any_o thing_n that_o call_v itself_o religion_n that_o go_v to_o exterminate_v above_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o person_n for_o every_o one_o it_o leave_v for_o so_o the_o proportion_n between_o non-papists_a and_o papist_n by_o the_o bishop_n survey_v make_v about_o the_o year_n 1676_o be_v return_v to_o be_v and_o to_o call_v they_o heretic_n and_o which_o make_v their_o good_n and_o life_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la a_o forfeit_n of_o the_o law_n will_v not_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la exterminate_v trade_n be_v fit_a for_o the_o galley_n or_o a_o trade_n voyage_n to_o the_o anticyrae_n then_o for_o any_o discourse_n of_o trade_n and_o commerce_n your_o lordship_n have_v in_o your_o travel_n sufficient_o see_v it_o long_o since_o exemplify_v that_o the_o protestant_a country_n for_o the_o quantity_n of_o ground_n exceed_v the_o popish_a in_o trade_n and_o number_n of_o people_n and_o that_o thus_o the_o protestant_a hanse_n town_n have_v eclipse_v their_o roman_a catholic_n neighbour_n and_o amsterdam_n antwerp_n and_o the_o unite_a province_n flanders_n and_o that_o in_o flanders_n where_o the_o ecclesiastic_n be_v proprietor_n of_o seven_o part_n of_o ten_o of_o the_o whole_a country_n levy_n of_o man_n and_o money_n for_o the_o defence_n thereof_o have_v be_v make_v with_o so_o much_o slowness_n and_o difficulty_n and_o be_v so_o inconsiderable_a as_o not_o to_o have_v secure_v themselves_o against_o invader_n nor_o do_v the_o ecclesiastic_n there_o think_v it_o worth_a their_o while_n to_o strain_v themselves_o in_o contribution_n to_o resist_v a_o invader_n who_o be_v of_o their_o own_o religion_n the_o which_o make_v the_o french_a king_n victory_n there_o fly_v like_o lightning_n more_o than_o our_o over-rich_a english_a regulars_n do_v to_o oppose_v william_n the_o conqueror_n when_o he_o come_v here_o under_o the_o pope_n banner_n and_o thus_o be_v they_o here_o and_o in_o flanders_n be_v like_o wenn_n in_o the_o body_n which_o draw_v to_o themselves_o much_o nourishment_n and_o be_v of_o great_a trouble_n and_o no_o use_n and_o thus_o ridiculous_a be_v it_o that_o so_o over_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o property_n of_o the_o land_n shall_v be_v link_v to_o person_n who_o be_v no_o way_n link_v to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o country_n more_o than_o profess_a gamester_n and_o empyric_n and_o soldier_n of_o fortune_n and_o be_v no_o more_o damnify_v by_o popish_a invader_n than_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n be_v by_o earthquakes_a but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n in_o the_o united-province_n how_o easy_o and_o soon_o be_v vast_a tax_n raise_v when_o their_o all_o be_v at_o stake_n &_o to_o what_o a_o prodigious_a increase_n of_o the_o number_n of_o their_o people_n have_v they_o attain_v since_o the_o reformation_n insomuch_o that_o the_o author_n of_o a_o political_a discourse_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o holland_n print_v in_o dutch_a in_o the_o year_n 1669_o and_o license_v by_o john_n de_fw-fr witt_n and_o by_o van_n beaumond_n make_v the_o people_n in_o the_o province_n of_o holland_n to_o be_v 2_o million_o and_o 400_o thousand_o and_o so_o likewise_o do_v pellerus_fw-la in_o his_o learned_a note_n on_o klockius_n de_fw-fr aerario_fw-la p._n 300._o and_o there_o cite_v that_o book_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o holland_n when_o as_o gerard_n malyne_v in_o his_o lex_fw-la mercatoria_fw-la make_v the_o people_n in_o flanders_n in_o the_o year_n 1622_o to_o have_v consist_v of_o a_o hundred_o and_o forty_o thousand_o family_n and_o he_o reckon_v each_o of_o they_o one_o with_o a_o other_o at_o 5_o person_n make_v the_o total_a of_o the_o people_n in_o flanders_n to_o have_v then_o amount_v but_o to_o seven_o hundred_o thousand_o soul_n and_o yet_o as_o that_o author_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o holland_n say_v the_o province_n of_o holland_n can_v hardly_o make_v 400_o thousand_o profitable_a acre_n or_o morgen_n of_o land_n down_n and_o heath_n not_o put_v in_o and_o that_o the_o 8_o the_o part_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o holland_n can_v be_v nourish_v with_o what_o be_v grow_v there_o but_o tell_v we_o what_o prodigious_a granary_n they_o there_o have_v and_o that_o amsterdam_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1571_o be_v about_o 200_o morgen_n or_o acre_n of_o land_n be_v in_o the_o year_n 1650_o enlarge_v to_o 600_o morgen_n or_o acre_n of_o land_n in_o circumference_n and_o to_o have_v in_o it_o three_o hundred_o thousand_o soul_n and_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o zelander_n choice_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1673_o mention_n aitsmas_n liere_n to_o have_v reckon_v the_o public_a income_n of_o holland_n alone_o in_o the_o year_n 1643_o to_o have_v amount_v to_o 1100_o thousand_o pound_n sterling_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o holland_n say_v that_o in_o one_o year_n in_o a_o time_n of_o peace_n viz._n in_o the_o year_n 1664_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o holland_n do_v over_o and_o above_o the_o custom_n and_o other_o domain_o of_o the_o earl_n or_o state_n of_o holland_n pay_v towards_o the_o public_a charge_n as_o follow_v viz._n to_o the_o state_n of_o holland_n 11_o million_o of_o gilder_n to_o the_o admiralty_n of_o the_o maze_n 472_o 898_o gilder_n to_o the_o admiralty_n of_o amsterdam_n 2_o million_o of_o gilder_n to_o the_o admiralty_n of_o the_o northern_a quarter_n 200_o thousand_o guilder_n which_o come_v to_o in_o all_o about_o 14_o hundred_o 87_o thousand_o pound_n sterling_a how_o mean_o do_v the_o achievement_n of_o venice_n and_o their_o effort_n to_o aggrandise_v their_o republic_n compare_v with_o holland_n show_n in_o story_n for_o the_o quantity_n of_o year_n many_o time_n double_v since_o the_o dutch_a throw_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o papacy_n history_n have_v record_v the_o longevity_n of_o the_o venetian_a government_n as_o it_o have_v of_o methusalem_n of_o who_o we_o read_v not_o 〈◊〉_d great_a thing_n he_o say_v or_o do_v or_o attempt_v but_o a_o few_o day_n of_o the_o short_a life_n of_o alexander_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o same_o weigh_v down_o the_o 999_o year_n of_o the_o other_o the_o very_a religion_n of_o popery_n make_v the_o venetian_n more_o narrow_a in_o their_o principle_n and_o even_o in_o their_o rule_n of_o traffic_n then_o be_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o protestant_a country_n the_o popish_a religion_n do_v hamper_v its_o devout_a professor_n as_o to_o trade_n with_o heretic_n and_o hold_v communication_n with_o such_o as_o be_v ipso_fw-la jure_fw-la &_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la excommunicate_v and_o give_v any_o quarentine_n to_o man_n say_v to_o be_v infect_v with_o heresy_n insomuch_o that_o we_o be_v tell_v in_o de_fw-fr
place_n that_o make_v no_o return_n as_o for_o example_n in_o the_o arch-deaconry_a of_o colchester_n 11_o parish_n make_v no_o return_n and_o in_o the_o decanatus_n tendring_n twelve_o parish_n in_o the_o decanatus_n colcestre_fw-fr seven_o parish_n in_o the_o decanatus_n lexden_n ten_o parish_n in_o decanatus_n witham_n eleven_o parish_n in_o the_o arch-deaconry_a of_o middlesex_n and_o decanatus_n braugle_v and_o harlow_n fourteen_o parish_n in_o the_o decanatus_n dunmo●_n 7_o parish_n in_o the_o decanatus_n henningam_n 9_o parish_n in_o the_o decanatus_n of_o middlesex_n 16_o parish_n some_o of_o which_o be_v st._n clements_n danes_n st._n marry_o le_fw-fr bow_o uxbridge_n and_o in_o the_o arch-deacony_a of_o london_n st._n bartholomew_n exchange_n be_v therein_o express_v to_o have_v make_v no_o return_n it_o may_v hence_o seem_v rational_a for_o any_o man_n to_o suppose_v in_o general_a that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n reverâ_fw-la be_v very_o great_a beyond_o the_o say_v total_a of_o 5,199,567_o and_o that_o it_o will_v have_v rise_v to_o a_o much_o great_a number_n if_o exact_a return_n have_v be_v make_v of_o all_o the_o head_n of_o family_n in_o england_n and_o wales_n and_o much_o more_o if_o all_o person_n in_o all_o family_n above_o the_o age_n of_o 16_o have_v be_v return_v but_o yet_o according_a to_o the_o return_v that_o be_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la make_v in_o that_o survey_n i_o observe_v that_o in_o some_o where_o the_o total_o for_o county_n be_v cast_v up_o that_o they_o double_v the_o total_o of_o the_o people_n return_v for_o the_o same_o county_n upon_o the_o poll_n act_n of_o 66._o as_o for_o example_n the_o poll_n for_o devonshire_n and_o cornwell_n be_v fourteen_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o pound_n and_o the_o number_n return_v for_o those_o county_n by_o the_o bishop_n survey_n be_v two_o hundred_o and_o thirteen_o thousand_o double_v which_o number_n for_o those_o under_o the_o age_n of_o communicant_n there_o make_v 426000_o soul_n there_o so_o than_o the_o 14000_o l._n at_o 12_o d._n the_o head_n make_v there_o 280000_o shilling_n or_o person_n at_o 12_o d._n a_o head_n to_o which_o as_o i_o show_v the_o number_n in_o the_o bishop_n survey_n be_v double_a and_o further_o to_o show_v the_o omission_n of_o great_a number_n of_o people_n returnable_a in_o that_o survey_n i_o shall_v acquaint_v your_o lordship_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1676._o in_o the_o which_o the_o bishop_n survey_v be_v make_v there_o die_v within_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n 18730._o and_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o 1_o in_o 30._o there_o yearly_o die_v there_o will_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v then_o live_v there_o 533,170_o and_o the_o total_a of_o the_o people_n return_v of_o all_o persuasion_n of_o religion_n above_o the_o age_n of_o 16_o in_o the_o whole_a diocese_n of_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 76._o be_v 286,347_o and_o the_o double_n of_o that_o number_n for_o those_o under_o the_o age_n of_o 16_o in_o that_o diocese_n make_v the_o total_a of_o the_o people_n there_o then_o to_o be_v 572,694_o but_o here_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o though_o the_o peculiar_o of_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o canterbury_n in_o london_n be_v de_fw-mi facto_fw-la return_v then_o within_o the_o survey_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o london_n yet_o the_o great_a and_o populous_a parish_n in_o southwark_n and_o other_o in_o surry_n within_o the_o district_n of_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n be_v not_o return_v with_o any_o respect_n to_o the_o diocese_n of_o london_n but_o be_v in_o that_o survey_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o winton_n return_v as_o belong_v to_o his_o lordship_n diocese_n and_o that_o in_o a_o late_a year_n of_o ordinary_a health_n viz._n in_o anno_fw-la 1677._o there_o die_v in_o the_o parish_n in_o surry_n that_o be_v within_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n 2803._o and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o 30_o the_o part_v then_o die_v there_o it_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v that_o there_o then_o live_v there_o 81287._o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o subtract_v that_o last_o mention_v number_n out_o of_o the_o 533,170_o than_o the_o number_n of_o all_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o other_o place_n in_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n will_v be_v 451,983_o and_o so_o at_o that_o rate_n the_o number_n of_o all_o the_o soul_n within_o the_o whole_a diocese_n of_o london_n will_v be_v but_o 120,711_o more_o than_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o other_o place_n within_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n the_o which_o diocese_n take_v in_o all_o the_o other_o place_n in_o middlesex_n that_o be_v without_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n and_o all_o essex_n and_o part_n of_o hartfordshire_n and_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n the_o omission_n of_o great_a part_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n and_o particulary_a of_o son_n daughter_n servant_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v in_o other_o place_n proportionable_a i_o be_o hence_o induce_v to_o believe_v that_o on_o the_o occasion_n of_o any_o actual_a and_o exact_a survey_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n to_o be_v make_v their_o number_n will_v rise_v to_o a_o great_a height_n than_o what_o it_o have_v be_v advance_v to_o by_o the_o most_o judicious_a calculator_n and_o now_o if_o after_o all_o this_o one_o shall_v tell_v i_o that_o any_o vast_a increase_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n beyond_o the_o quota_fw-la suppose_v by_o cautious_a calculator_n be_v incredible_a and_o to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o number_n of_o thing_n incredible_a i_o will_v answer_v he_o out_o of_o sallust_n incredibile_fw-la est_fw-la memoratu_fw-la quantum_fw-la adepta_fw-la libertate_fw-la in_fw-la brevi_fw-la romana_fw-la civitas_n creverit_fw-la and_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v almost_o incredible_a to_o relate_v how_o much_o we_o have_v gain_v by_o our_o abandon_v popery_n and_o its_o incredibility_n and_o the_o almost_o incredibile_fw-la as_o well_o as_o intolerable_a servitude_n that_o the_o papacy_n so_o often_o oppress_v both_o our_o king_n and_o people_n with_o we_o be_v tell_v by_o the_o observator_fw-la on_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n that_o anxiety_n of_o mind_n hinder_v breed_n and_o from_o sharp_a anxiety_n of_o divers_a kind_n have_v the_o protestant_a religion_n rescue_v english_a mind_n and_o from_o their_o former_a daily_a yariness_n for_o their_o daily_a bread_n and_o their_o fear_n of_o be_v arbitrary_o dispossess_v of_o it_o what_o prince_n as_o i_o may_v say_v be_v the_o english_a infantry_n and_o even_o the_o boor_n of_o holland_n to_o the_o peasant_n of_o france_n who_o with_o chain_n on_o do_v propagate_v their_o species_n and_o servitude_n itself_o and_o what_o pity_n be_v it_o that_o commerce_n which_o with_o its_o infant_n smile_v cheer_v our_o isle_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o edward_n the_o 6_o the_o be_v almost_o fright_v away_o from_o it_o by_o the_o frown_n and_o arbitrary_a practice_n of_o queen_n mary_n and_o that_o after_o that_o edward_z the_o 6_o the_o consult_v the_o advancement_n of_o our_o trade_n have_v legal_o suppress_v the_o corporation_n of_o merchant-stranger_n and_o null_v their_o monopoly_n queen_n mary_n endeavour_v the_o suppression_n of_o our_o native_a merchant_n and_o that_o too_o by_o illegal_a imposition_n it_o be_v not_o denyable_a that_o in_o the_o four_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n she_o do_v lay_v a_o impost_n upon_o our_o cloth_n and_o one_o who_o have_v be_v a_o judge_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o who_o have_v no_o spite_n to_o her_o story_n mention_v it_o in_o his_o book_n call_v the_o right_n of_o the_o people_n concern_v imposition_n say_v there_o this_o religious_a prince_n environ_v with_o infinite_a trouble_n in_o the_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n and_o impoverish_v by_o her_o devotion_n in_o renounce_v the_o profit_n of_o the_o church_n land_n that_o be_v in_o the_o crown_n be_v the_o first_o that_o make_v digression_n from_o the_o step_n of_o her_o worthy_a progenitor_n in_o put_v on_o that_o imposition_n without_o assent_n of_o parliament_n and_o the_o same_o author_n in_o pag._n 91._o mention_n another_o unjust_a imposition_n of_o she_o on_o gascoyn_n wine_n and_o her_o expulsion_n of_o the_o dutch_a church_n and_o their_o pastor_n from_o london_n and_o her_o cansel_v of_o the_o legal_a privilege_n that_o edward_n the_o 6_o the_o for_o himself_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n give_v they_o and_o other_o stranger_n by_o his_o letter_n patent_n be_v a_o arbitrary_a blow_n give_v to_o the_o trade_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o general_n and_o of_o that_o city_n in_o particular_n the_o copy_n of_o her_o proclamation_n for_o the_o expel_v they_o be_v print_v in_o fox_n in_o which_o they_o be_v style_v a_o multitude_n of_o evil_n dispose_v person_n be_v bear_v out_o of_o her_o highness_n dominion_n in_o other_o sundry_a nation_n fly_v from_o the_o obeisance_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o ruler_n
flatter_v a_o prince_n with_o insinuation_n of_o the_o greatness_n and_o extent_n of_o his_o power_n be_v not_o more_o unusual_a then_o for_o mendicant_a poet_n to_o overact_v their_o part_n in_o panegyric_n or_o for_o the_o celebrator_n of_o any_o particular_a bright_a beauty_n in_o verse_n to_o represent_v she_o as_o the_o empress_n of_o all_o heart_n and_o thus_o the_o famous_a campanella_n after_o he_o have_v make_v his_o present_n of_o the_o universal_a monarchy_n to_o spain_n send_v it_o too_o a_o beg_n into_o france_n as_o appear_v out_o of_o archbishop_n laud'_v book_n against_o fisher_n pag._n 210._o where_o he_o say_v that_o late_o friar_n companella_n have_v set_v out_o a_o eclogue_n on_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o dauphin_n and_o that_o permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o all_o the_o prince_n be_v now_o more_o afraid_a of_o france_n then_o ever_o for_o that_o there_o be_v provide_v for_o it_o regnum_fw-la universal_a the_o universal_a kingdom_n or_o monarchy_n the_o word_n there_o be_v in_o the_o margin_n quum_fw-la gallia_n alat_fw-la 20000000_o hominum_fw-la ex_fw-la singulis_n centenis_fw-la sumendo_fw-la unum_fw-la collegit_fw-la 200000_o strenuorum_fw-la militum_fw-la stipendiatorum_fw-la commode_v perpetuoque_fw-la propterea_fw-la omnes_fw-la terrae_fw-la principes_fw-la metuunt_fw-la nunc_fw-la magis_fw-la a_o gallia_n quam_fw-la unquam_fw-la ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la paratur_fw-la enim_fw-la illi_fw-la regnum_fw-la vniversale_fw-la f._n tho●ae_fw-la companellae_fw-la ecloga_fw-la in_o principis_fw-la galliarum_n delphini_n nativitatem_fw-la cum_fw-la annot_n discip_n parisiis_fw-la 1639._o cum_fw-la permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la yet_o with_o a_o non_fw-la obstante_fw-la to_o the_o politic_n of_o campanella_n and_o his_o pitiful_a great_a flattery_n i_o shall_v venture_v to_o pronounce_v the_o great_a french_a monarch_n who_o be_v certain_o as_o great_a a_o prince_n in_o the_o intellectual_a world_n as_o in_o the_o other_o and_o be_v true_o by_o the_o bright_a sun_n of_o reason_n non_fw-la pluribus_fw-la impar_fw-la no_o designer_n of_o take_v the_o dimension_n of_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n with_o chain_n and_o do_v think_v the_o most_o christian_n king_n out_o of_o his_o royal_a prudence_n less_o incline_v to_o favour_v the_o servile_a flatterer_n who_o will_v set_v he_o up_o to_o be_v king_n of_o christendom_n than_o be_v former_o the_o catholic_n monarch_n to_o encourage_v those_o who_o render_v he_o aspire_v to_o be_v the_o universal_a one_o a_o title_n which_o according_a to_o the_o excellent_a say_n of_o mr._n cow_n in_o his_o brutus_n none_o can_v deserve_v but_o he_o who_o will_v refuse_v the_o offer_n nor_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o that_o if_o ever_o the_o great_a prince_n in_o christendom_n shall_v be_v abandon_v to_o the_o vanity_n of_o attempt_v the_o particular_a conquest_n of_o great_a britain_n and_o ireland_n his_o power_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o world_n will_v as_o soon_o and_o as_o sensible_o grow_v insignificant_a thereby_o as_o do_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n spain_n by_o the_o design_n of_o 88_o and_o as_o the_o fate_n of_o the_o great_a temporary_a disturber_n of_o mankind_n have_v be_v their_o constant_a augmentation_n of_o their_o own_o expense_n which_o be_v a_o just_a pecuniary_a mulct_n from_o heaven_n on_o their_o ambition_n for_o their_o increase_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o divers_a nation_n in_o the_o posture_n of_o defence_n so_o be_v it_o likely_a to_o be_v more_o and_o more_o to_o the_o end_n of_o time_n and_o it_o be_v sufficient_o exemplify_v in_o the_o result_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o king_n of_o spain_n politic_n in_o 88_o which_o reduce_v they_o to_o attempt_v the_o remedy_n of_o the_o prosu●ion_n of_o their_o treasure_n by_o send_v as_o i_o may_v say_v canonical_a waste-paper_n to_o the_o west-indies_n and_o the_o loss_n too_o of_o their_o cargo_n of_o that_o as_o appear_v by_o malynes_n in_o his_o lex_fw-la mercatoria_fw-la where_o he_o say_v pag._n 126._o that_o in_o the_o year_n 1561_o pope_n sixtus_n quintus_n cause_v two_o ship_n to_o be_v lade_v out_o of_o spain_n for_o the_o west-indies_n with_o a_o 100_o butt_n of_o sack_n 1400_o little_a chest_n contain_v each_o of_o they_o three_o ordinary_a small_a barrel_n of_o quicksilver_n weigh_v 50_o l._n apiece_o to_o refine_v the_o silver_n withal_o in_o the_o west-indies_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o pack_n of_o print_a bull_n and_o pardon_n grant_v at_o that_o time_n to_o make_v provision_n against_o heretic_n because_o the_o year_n 1588._o have_v so_o much_o exhaust_v the_o treasure_n of_o spain_n these_o two_o ship_n be_v meet_v with_o at_o sea_n by_o captain_n white_a who_o be_v lade_v and_o bind_v for_o barbary_n and_o bring_v into_o england_n by_o he_o where_o the_o commodity_n be_v sell_v but_o the_o pope_n merchandise_n be_v out_o of_o request_n and_o remain_v a_o long_a time_n in_o warehouse_n at_o the_o disposal_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n at_o the_o last_o at_o the_o request_n of_o her_o physician_n doctor_n lopez_n she_o give_v all_o that_o great_a quantity_n of_o bull_n to_o he_o amount_v to_o many_o thousand_o in_o number_n and_o he_o and_o another_o send_v those_o bull_n into_o the_o west-indies_n where_o they_o be_v no_o soon_o arrive_v but_o the_o pope_n contractor_n for_o that_o commodity_n do_v seize_v on_o all_o the_o say_a bull_n and_o cause_v a_o information_n to_o be_v give_v against_o they_o that_o they_o be_v infect_v as_o have_v be_v take_v by_o heretic_n it_o be_v allege_v that_o they_o be_v miraculous_o save_v but_o they_o be_v lose_v and_o confiscate_v malynes_n further_a mention_n that_o he_o be_v employ_v to_o appraise_v the_o lade_n of_o those_o prize_n and_o to_o certify_v what_o it_o cost_v and_o what_o it_o may_v have_v be_v worth_a in_o the_o west-indies_n according_a to_o the_o rate_n of_o every_o bull_n tax_v at_o two_o rial_n of_o plate_n and_o some_o four_o and_o some_o eight_o rial_n according_a to_o their_o limitation_n every_o one_o be_v but_o one_o sheet_n of_o paper_n and_o by_o computation_n the_o lade_n do_v not_o cost_v 50000_o l._n and_o will_v have_v yield_v above_o 600000_o l._n he_o have_v before_o say_v that_o every_o reasonable_a soul_n of_o the_o popish_a religion_n in_o america_n must_v have_v one_o of_o these_o bull_n yearly_a and_o that_o these_o bull_n contain_v a_o mandate_n that_o their_o bed_n shall_v be_v sell_v who_o will_v not_o take_v off_o one_o of_o they_o it_o seem_v by_o the_o way_n that_o all_o that_o treasure_n of_o indulgence_n bestow_v by_o queen_n elizabeth_n on_o doctor_n lopez_n can_v not_o oblige_v he_o from_o design_v afterward_o to_o take_v away_o her_o life_n by_o poison_n but_o this_o be_v the_o result_n of_o the_o tragicomedy_n or_o rather_o farce_n of_o 88_o and_o broil_n on_o the_o coast_n when_o spain_n invincible_a fleet_n that_o have_v in_o it_o but_o 8350._o seaman_n prove_v the_o sport_n of_o fortune_n and_o of_o the_o wind_n and_o the_o fatal_a wrack_n of_o its_o treasure_n insomuch_o that_o it_o can_v never_o since_o if_o then_o awe_z the_o world_n by_o the_o number_n of_o mariner_n man_n who_o love_v not_o to_o be_v pay_v with_o ticket_n even_o in_o this_o world_n and_o much_o less_o to_o receive_v they_o as_o payable_a in_o another_o the_o which_o be_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o paper-indulgence_n it_o be_v agree_v on_o by_o all_o writer_n that_o the_o spanish_a armada_n consist_v of_o 130_o ship_n then_o have_v in_o it_o but_o the_o number_n of_o seaman_n beforementioned_a and_o of_o those_o too_o a_o great_a part_n borrow_v from_o diverse_a country_n and_o 19290_o land_n soldier_n which_o natural_o clog_v its_o sea_n service_n for_o the_o antipathy_n between_o those_o and_o seaman_n in_o ship_n be_v such_o that_o unless_o the_o seaman_n be_v the_o major_a part_n there_o they_o be_v apt_a to_o look_v on_o those_o as_o intruder_n and_o as_o such_o who_o stand_v in_o their_o way_n and_o in_o their_o light_n but_o in_o a_o remonstrance_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o nottingham_n lord_n high_a admiral_n from_o the_o trinity_n house_n anno_fw-la 1602._o extant_a in_o sir_n julius_n caesar_n collection_n it_o be_v mention_v that_o in_o 88_o the_o queen_n have_v at_o sea_n 150._o sail_v of_o ship_n whereof_o 40_o only_o be_v she_o own_o and_o 110_o be_v of_o her_o subject_n and_o that_o in_o the_o same_o year_n there_o be_v english_a ship_n employ_v in_o trade_n voyage_n into_o all_o part_n and_o country_n to_o the_o number_n likewise_o of_o 150_o sail_n of_o about_o 150_o tunn_n one_o with_o another_o and_o that_o all_o those_o 300_o ship_n be_v man_v with_o 30000_o seaman_n that_o be_v the_o queen_n forty_o with_o 12000_o and_o the_o 110_o with_o 12000_o and_o that_o in_o the_o other_o 150_o be_v 6000_o seaman_n but_o it_o be_v not_o unworthy_a to_o be_v remark_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o concurrence_n of_o providence_n with_o the_o gallantry_n and_o number_n
of_o father_n parson_n about_o the_o succession_n part_n 2_o d_o where_o he_o weigh_v the_o several_a party_n of_o england_n in_o the_o balance_n of_o state_n and_o say_v it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o in_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n at_o this_o day_n there_o be_v three_o different_a and_o opposite_a body_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v of_o most_o bulk_n and_o do_v carry_v most_o sway_n and_o power_n which_o three_o body_n be_v common_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n puritant_n and_o papist_n and_o afterward_o speak_v of_o the_o great_a power_n of_o the_o protestant_a party_n for_o wealth_n and_o force_n he_o say_v p._n 140._o a_o chief_a member_n of_o the_o protestant_a body_n be_v the_o clergy_n of_o england_n especial_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o other_o man_n in_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n which_o be_v like_a to_o be_v a_o great_a back_n to_o this_o party_n at_o that_o day_n etc._n etc._n meaning_n the_o time_n after_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n when_o her_o successor_n shall_v enter_v on_o the_o stage_n and_o then_o have_v weigh_v the_o puritan_n party_n and_o its_o interest_n he_o say_v the_o three_o body_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v those_o of_o the_o roman_a who_o call_v themselves_o catholic_n which_o be_v the_o least_o in_o show_n at_o this_o present_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o law_n and_o tide_n of_o the_o time_n that_o run_v against_o they_o yet_o be_v they_o of_o no_o small_a consideration_n in_o this_o affair_n to_o he_o that_o weigh_v thing_n indifferent_o and_o this_o in_o respect_n as_o well_o of_o their_o party_n at_o home_n as_o their_o friend_n abroad_o for_o at_o home_n they_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n as_o the_o world_n know_v the_o one_o more_o up●n_a that_o discover_v themselves_o which_o be_v the_o recusant_n and_o the_o other_o more_o close_a and_o privy_a that_o accommodate_v themselves_o to_o all_o external_a preceeding_n of_o the_o time_n and_o state_n so_o as_o they_o can_v be_v know_v or_o at_o leastwise_o not_o much_o touch_v we_o may_v imagine_v that_o their_o number_n be_v not_o small_a throughout_o the_o realm_n etc._n etc._n the_o vigour_n of_o the_o hope_n that_o popery_n have_v in_o that_o conjuncture_n appear_v out_o of_o that_o great_a historical_a letter_n of_o d'ossat_fw-la to_o his_o king_n anno_fw-la 1601_o where_o he_o make_v such_o a_o judicious_a abstract_n of_o this_o goodly_a book_n of_o parson_n for_o so_o he_o call_v it_o ce_fw-fr beau_fw-fr liure_fw-fr and_o animadversion_n on_o it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v about_o four_o year_n ago_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v create_v in_o england_n a_o certain_a arciprestre_fw-fr to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o ecclesiastic_n and_o catholic_n of_o the_o realm_n shall_v have_v one_o to_o who_o to_o go_v and_o have_v recourse_n about_o the_o thing_n relate_v to_o the_o catholic_n religion_n and_o by_o mean_n thereof_o to_o be_v unite_v among_o themselves_o and_o to_o understand_v what_o shall_v be_v good_a to_o be_v do_v for_o their_o preservation_n and_o the_o re-establishment_n of_o the_o catholic_n religion_n and_o some_o have_v give_v his_o holiness_n to_o understand_v that_o by_o that_o mean_v he_o will_v make_v a_o great_a party_n of_o the_o catholic_n in_o england_n for_o what_o he_o will_v effect_v and_o then_o acquaint_v the_o king_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v send_v three_o brief_n to_o his_o nuntio_n in_o the_o low-countries_n for_o he_o to_o keep_v till_o the_o death_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o after_o that_o to_o send_v they_o to_o england_n one_o to_o the_o ecclesiastic_n another_o to_o the_o nobility_n and_o another_o to_o the_o three_o estate_n by_o which_o the_o say_v three_o estate_n be_v admonish_v and_o exhort_v by_o his_o holiness_n to_o remain_v unite_v together_o to_o receive_v a_o catholic_n king_n that_o his_o holiness_n shall_v name_v and_o such_o a_o one_o who_o shall_v appear_v acceptable_a to_o they_o and_o honourable_a and_o all_o this_o for_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o restore_n the_o catholic_n religion_n etc._n etc._n here_o be_v it_o seem_v one_o brief_n more_o send_v to_o england_n then_o mr._n marvel_v mention_n in_o his_o growth_n of_o popery_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n send_v two_o brief_n in_o order_n to_o exclude_v king_n james_n from_o the_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n in_o fine_a popery_n be_v in_o a_o storm_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o in_o it_o the_o papist_n be_v sometime_o carry_v up_o to_o the_o sky_n and_o then_o down_o again_o and_o in_o their_o erterprise_n with_o variety_n of_o success_n in_o some_o conjuncture_n their_o fortune_n be_v to_o reel_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o stagger_v like_o a_o drunken_a man_n and_o as_o in_o a_o storm_n many_o hand_n be_v necessary_a so_o on_o the_o whole_a matter_n they_o find_v need_n of_o the_o number_n of_o more_o hand_n than_o they_o can_v command_v and_o their_o number_n decrease_v in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o people_n here_o as_o much_o by_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n ambition_n as_o do_v the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o unite_a province_n thereby_o and_o as_o they_o look_v big_a on_o the_o account_n of_o their_o number_n in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n so_o they_o do_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n james_n and_o as_o d'ossat_fw-la say_v in_o that_o letter_n to_o villeroy_n of_o april_n second_o 1603._o you_o will_v find_v that_o the_o spaniard_n who_o be_v most_o trouble_v about_o this_o event_n mean_v of_o the_o succession_n will_v be_v the_o first_o to_o congratulate_v the_o king_n of_o scotland_n so_o it_o happen_v here_o with_o the_o papist_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o book_n in_o 4_o to_o print_v for_o joseph_n barnes_n at_o oxford_n anno_fw-la 1604_o call_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o papist_n reason_n of_o state_n and_o religion_n for_o toleration_n of_o popery_n in_o england_n intimate_v in_o their_o supplication_n to_o the_o king_n majesty_n and_o the_o state_n of_o the_o present_a parliament_n where_o in_o their_o supplication_n at_o large_a print_v they_o in_o the_o begin_n thereof_o in_o a_o profession_n too_o as_o inauspicious_a as_o be_v possible_o say_v that_o his_o majesty_n direct_a title_n to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o the_o realm_n both_o by_o lineal_a descent_n and_o priority_n of_o blood_n and_o your_o highness_n most_o quiet_a access_n to_o the_o same_o do_v exceed_o possess_v and_o englad_a our_o heart_n the_o tide_n of_o the_o succession_n against_o which_o they_o have_v strive_v be_v make_v by_o fate_n to_o run_v smooth_a and_o clear_a and_o they_o be_v resolve_v to_o appear_v on_o the_o surface_n of_o it_o with_o a_o nos_fw-la poma_fw-la natamus_fw-la gabriel_n powel_n of_o st._n maryhall_n in_o oxford_n the_o publisher_n of_o that_o book_n say_v in_o his_o animadversion_n on_o the_o say_a beginning_n of_o that_o supplication_n how_o can_v papist_n without_o blush_v acknowledge_v his_o majesty_n title_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n to_o be_v direct_a see_v they_o have_v heretofore_o most_o indirect_o and_o most_o unjust_o oppugn_v the_o same_o which_o traitorous_a parson_n confess_v albeit_o for_o excuse_n he_o assure_v himself_o that_o whatsoever_o have_v be_v say_v write_v or_o do_v by_o any_o catholic_n against_o his_o majesty_n which_o with_o some_o other_o may_v breed_v disgust_n have_v be_v direct_v to_o this_o end_n to_o make_v his_o majesty_n first_o a_o catholic_n and_o than_o our_o king_n as_o if_o treason_n and_o treachery_n against_o his_o highness_n can_v make_v he_o a_o catholic_n and_o impugn_v of_o his_o direct_a and_o just_a title_n tend_v to_o make_v he_o king._n rob._n parson_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o three_o conversion_n in_o the_o dedicat_fw-la addition_n to_o the_o catholic_n but_o though_o they_o give_v themselves_o as_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o oblivion_n as_o to_o the_o many_o treason_n of_o parson_n his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n yet_o in_o this_o supplication_n they_o forget_v not_o again_o in_o effect_n to_o use_v parson_n his_o division_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n into_o three_o part_n and_o so_o to_o shape_v the_o estimate_n of_o their_o number_n and_o they_o say_v in_o their_o first_o reason_n of_o state_n the_o world_n know_v that_o there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o subject_n in_o the_o realm_n the_o protestant_n the_o puritan_n and_o the_o catholic_n affect_v and_o by_o general_a report_n the_o subject_n catholick_o affect_v be_v not_o inferior_a to_o the_o protestant_n or_o puritan_n either_o in_o number_n or_o alliance_n etc._n etc._n and_o say_v powel_n in_o his_o note_n on_o that_o clause_n if_o by_o catholick_o affect_v you_o mean_v plain_o papist_n the_o world_n know_v that_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o protestant_n they_o be_v but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o handful_n of_o thief_n among_o honest_a subject_n however_o
reign_n of_o the_o royal_a martyr_n their_o number_n decrease_v fast_o in_o many_o active_a conjuncture_n of_o time_n than_o they_o increase_v in_o any_o lazy_a one_o the_o author_n of_o the_o regal_a apology_n and_o suppose_v to_o be_v doctor_n bate_v the_o physician_n say_v in_o p._n 39_o it_o be_v well_o know_v there_o be_v not_o 24000_o papist_n convict_v in_o all_o england_n and_o wales_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v suppose_v the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n then_o not_o convict_v to_o be_v double_a to_o that_o of_o the_o convict_a yet_o will_v such_o their_o number_n appear_v considerable_o dwindle_v from_o what_o it_o be_v swell_v to_o in_o any_o conjuncture_n before_o in_o king_n james_n reign_n and_o i_o believe_v if_o our_o civil_a war_n have_v not_o happen_v one_o canon_n even_o of_o the_o convacation_n of_o 1640_o as_o ill_o as_o that_o convocation_n hear_v among_o many_o i_o mean_v the_o three_o canon_n will_v have_v effect_v the_o extermination_n of_o popery_n from_o england_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o royal_a martyr_n the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v for_o suppress_v of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n no_o doubt_n but_o a_o little_a before_o that_o time_n popery_n do_v again_o lift_v up_o his_o head_n as_o if_o its_o redemption_n be_v to_o draw_v nigh_o in_o ireland_n and_o england_n and_o therefore_o the_o convocation_n then_o with_o great_a conduct_n and_o skill_n do_v lead_v up_o our_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n to_o confront_v its_o growth_n and_o i_o do_v not_o remember_v to_o have_v find_v that_o phrase_n of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n which_o have_v in_o late_a day_n so_o fill_v our_o mouth_n use_v in_o any_o author_n before_o the_o write_n of_o that_o canon_n and_o do_v think_v that_o all_o the_o committee_n that_o have_v be_v appoint_v to_o prevent_v the_o growth_n of_o popery_n or_o book_n of_o that_o subject_n have_v not_o produce_v to_o the_o world_n any_o mean_n or_o expedient_a so_o likely_a to_o make_v popery_n have_v do_v grow_v here_o as_o be_v the_o excellent_a scheme_n for_o that_o purpose_n draw_v in_o that_o canon_n and_o which_o when_o ever_o it_o shall_v be_v with_o vigour_n execute_v will_v make_v our_o fear_n grow_v out_o of_o fashion_n either_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o papist_n or_o of_o the_o argument_n of_o their_o number_n that_o since_o that_o restoration_n of_o our_o king_n and_o law_n and_o of_o the_o discipline_n of_o our_o church_n a_o conjuncture_n happen_v that_o make_v the_o barren_a womb_n of_o popery_n here_o fruitful_a of_o number_n none_o will_v deny_v who_o consider_v how_o all_o our_o great_a divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v so_o late_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n against_o it_o as_o i_o before_o observe_v in_o the_o account_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o persuasion_n in_o religion_n in_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n that_o dr._n glanvile_n say_v he_o have_v see_v and_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o a_o sheet_n of_o paper_n among_o the_o nine_o preliminary_a observation_n the_o first_o be_v that_o many_o leave_v the_o church_n upon_o the_o late_a indulgence_n who_o before_o do_v frequent_v it_o i_o believe_v by_o the_o many_o there_o be_v mean_v those_o that_o veer_v towards_o popery_n and_o i_o suppose_v that_o few_o have_v for_o several_a precedent_n year_n repair_v thither_o from_o fear_n of_o the_o penal_a law_n we_o have_v a_o remark_n give_v we_o by_o that_o learned_a statesman_n and_o noble_a confessor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o earl_n of_o clarendon_n in_o his_o judicious_a animadversion_n print_v anno_fw-la 1673_o on_o cressy_n cressy_n s_o book_n against_o dr._n stillingfleet_n that_o the_o rude_a and_o boisterous_a behaviour_n of_o some_o of_o the_o roman_a catholic_n here_o disturb_v the_o happy_a calm_a they_o all_o enjoy_v and_o the_o vanity_n and_o folly_n of_o other_o make_v that_o ill_a use_n of_o the_o king_n bounty_n and_o generosity_n towards_o they_o that_o they_o endeavour_v to_o make_v it_o believe_v that_o it_o proceed_v not_o from_o charity_n and_o compassion_n towards_o their_o person_n but_o from_o affection_n to_o their_o religion_n and_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o reproach_v the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o all_o who_o adhere_v to_o it_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o a_o condition_n as_o well_o as_o a_o disposition_n to_o oppress_v it_o and_o to_o affront_v and_o discountenance_v all_o who_o will_v adhere_v to_o it_o and_o so_o alienate_v the_o affection_n of_o those_o who_o desire_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v disquiet_v and_o kindle_v a_o jealousy_n in_o other_o who_o have_v believe_v that_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o attempt_v it_o and_o have_v more_o power_n to_o compass_v it_o then_o be_v discern_v etc._n etc._n and_o this_o mischief_n the_o wise_a and_o sober_a catholic_n of_o england_n have_v long_o foresee_v will_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o that_o petulant_a and_o unruly_a spirit_n that_o sway_v too_o much_o among_o they_o and_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o restrain_v it_o etc._n etc._n and_o afterward_o say_v as_o if_o they_o can_v subdue_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o so_o care_v not_o who_o they_o provoke_v a_o friend_n of_o i_o in_o the_o king_n loyal_a long_a parliament_n write_v to_o i_o for_o news_n after_o one_o of_o their_o session_n that_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o mr._n seymour_n open_v according_o to_o the_o customary_a manner_n in_o a_o public_a speech_n to_o his_o majesty_n in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o bill_n then_o ready_a for_o the_o royal_a assent_n speak_v thus_o concern_v that_o sharp_a one_o that_o will_v forever_o here_o cut_v popery_n to_o the_o quick_a viz._n and_o for_o the_o severity_n of_o this_o bill_n to_o the_o papist_n they_o may_v thank_v their_o own_o petulant_a insolence_n the_o word_n petulant_a be_v very_o significant_a and_o import_v saucy_a malepert_a impudent_a reproachful_a ready_a to_o do_v wrong_n one_o will_v suppose_v that_o those_o two_o great_a observe_a person_n will_v not_o apply_v it_o to_o any_o body_n of_o man_n without_o just_a occasion_n it_o seem_v the_o house_n of_o commons_o at_o their_o next_o session_n in_o a_o address_n to_o the_o king_n october_n 31._o 1673._o have_v this_o clause_n that_o for_o another_o age_n at_o the_o least_o this_o kingdom_n will_v be_v under_o continual_a apprehension_n of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o in_o a_o address_n to_o his_o majesty_n november_n the_o 3_o d_o 1673._o speak_v of_o the_o popish_a recusant_n they_o have_v these_o word_n who_o number_n and_o insolence_n be_v great_o of_o late_a increase_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v then_o high_a time_n for_o that_o great_a minister_n of_o the_o king_n the_o earl_n of_o danby_n when_o he_o see_v that_o of_o all_o dissenter_n chief_o the_o popish_a one_o have_v sascinated_a so_o many_o with_o a_o belief_n of_o their_o number_n to_o cause_v that_o great_a enquiry_n into_o they_o to_o be_v make_v and_o it_o be_v his_o fortune_n by_o the_o very_a enquiry_n to_o strip_v the_o papist_n of_o many_o of_o their_o value_a number_n for_o the_o very_a next_o observation_n to_o that_o i_o before_o mention_v be_v this_o the_o send_v forth_o these_o inquiry_n have_v cause_v many_o to_o frequent_v the_o church_n alsted_n in_o his_o chronology_n venture_v to_o say_v p._n 112._o david_n ex_fw-la merâ_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d numerat_fw-la populum_fw-la and_o the_o thing_n perhaps_o do_v with_o a_o ill_a intent_n be_v punish_v with_o a_o plague_n from_o god_n but_o the_o fact_n of_o our_o noble_a and_o profound_a statesman_n do_v abate_v the_o plague_n of_o the_o late_a conjuncture_n of_o pragmatical_a insolence_n and_o too_o the_o plague_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o papist_n that_o be_v then_o so_o epidemical_a among_o protestant_n and_o do_v in_o effect_n console_n we_o as_o with_o the_o word_n of_o elisha_n viz._n fear_v not_o for_o they_o that_o be_v with_o we_o be_v more_o than_o they_o that_o be_v with_o they_o and_o indeed_o the_o number_v of_o people_n in_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n who_o die_v of_o the_o plague_n be_v not_o more_o necessary_a to_o the_o state_n then_o be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o soul_n infect_v in_o any_o conjuncture_n with_o destructive_a opinion_n and_o the_o omission_n thereof_o in_o a_o public_a minister_n when_o ever_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o necessary_a as_o at_o that_o time_n it_o be_v will_v appear_v in_o he_o a_o lethargy_n that_o will_v be_v as_o penal_a as_o a_o plague_n to_o a_o kingdom_n that_o useful_a undertake_n of_o his_o lordship_n as_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o his_o very_a great_a ability_n and_o vigilance_n for_o the_o public_a so_o be_v it_o of_o the_o great_a power_n he_o have_v in_o the_o government_n and_o
to_o have_v wherewithal_o to_o eat_v bread_n if_o they_o be_v execute_v according_a to_o the_o say_a proclamation_n it_o be_v but_o about_o october_n 1673_o that_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o in_o a_o address_n to_o the_o king_n take_v occasion_n to_o say_v it_o be_v now_o more_o than_o one_o age_n that_o the_o subject_n have_v live_v in_o continual_a apprehension_n of_o the_o increase_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n but_o what_o mr._n coleman_n apprehension_n be_v of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n on_o the_o 5_o of_o february_n 1674_o i_o have_v show_v before_o and_o be_o of_o opinion_n that_o though_o possible_o in_o the_o follow_a course_n of_o time_n to_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o popish_a plot_n the_o come_n of_o many_o romish_a missionary_n here_o may_v make_v some_o accession_n to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o however_o the_o laity_n of_o they_o here_o inhabitant_n have_v in_o its_o number_n sensible_o decrease_v and_o will_v do_v so_o more_o and_o more_o till_o the_o most_o timid_a protestant_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o aggrieve_v at_o their_o number_n then_o of_o that_o of_o the_o muggletonian_o or_o of_o the_o sweet_a singer_n of_o israel_n that_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o popish_a plot_n have_v have_v a_o natural_a tendency_n to_o the_o abate_v the_o number_n of_o their_o persuasion_n must_v be_v grant_v by_o all_o who_o believe_v there_o be_v one_o and_o who_o know_v that_o the_o bluster_a attempt_n of_o the_o conspirator_n to_o subvert_v the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o which_o have_v therein_o fail_v must_v end_v in_o the_o better_a settlement_n of_o it_o as_o all_o storm_n that_o do_v not_o overthrow_v a_o tree_n confirm_v its_o growth_n mr._n care_v in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o popish_a plot_n mention_n that_o the_o jesuit_n and_o seminary_n priest_n in_o england_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o plot_n be_v about_o 1800_o a_o number_n far_o inferior_a to_o that_o in_o the_o conjuncture_n in_o king_n james_n james_n s_o time_n before_o mention_v and_o short_a of_o the_o number_n mention_v by_o prynne_n in_o a_o book_n of_o he_o print_v anno_fw-la 1659._o call_v a_o true_a and_o perfect_a narrative_n of_o what_o be_v do_v speak_v by_o and_o between_o mr._n prynne_n the_o old_a and_o new_a forcible_o seclude_v member_n and_o those_o now_o sit_v etc._n etc._n where_o he_o say_v p._n 44_o that_o a_o english_a lord_n return_v from_o rome_n about_o four_o year_n since_o aver_v that_o the_o provincial_n of_o the_o english_a jesuit_n when_o he_o go_v to_o see_v the_o college_n in_o rome_n assure_v he_o that_o they_o have_v then_o above_o 1500_o of_o their_o society_n of_o jesuit_n in_o england_n able_a to_o work_v in_o several_a profession_n and_o trade_n which_o they_o have_v there_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o better_a to_o support_n and_o secure_v themselves_o from_o be_v discover_v and_o infuse_v their_o principle_n into_o the_o vulgar_a people_n mr._n coleman_n complain_v of_o a_o conjuncture_n as_o to_o popery_n that_o he_o write_v in_o that_o though_o the_o harvest_n be_v great_a the_o labourer_n be_v very_o few_o but_o mr._n prynne_n suppose_v the_o labour_a jesuit_n who_o wrought_v in_o the_o trade_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o other_o trade_n too_o be_v here_o after_o the_o year_n 50_o above_o 1500_o and_o it_o may_v therefore_o be_v well_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v many_o jesuit_n here_o beside_o who_o can_v only_o manage_v their_o tool_n in_o the_o former_a trade_n and_o perhaps_o as_o many_o seminary_n priest_n as_o jesuit_n and_o no_o doubt_n without_o some_o hint_n of_o notification_n from_o some_o one_o of_o the_o jesuit_n provincial_n their_o number_n in_o any_o protestant_a state_n can_v hardly_o be_v conjecture_v in_o regard_n of_o their_o proteus-like_a vary_v their_o shape_v according_o as_o a_o description_n of_o they_o be_v give_v in_o the_o book_n call_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o empire_n betray_v where_o it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v in_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n man_n of_o several_a sort_n some_o of_o which_o be_v dispense_v with_o not_o only_a to_o lay_v aside_o the_o habit_n but_o to_o marry_v and_o bear_v all_o sort_n of_o dignity_n and_o he_o further_o presume_v to_o say_v that_o the_o emperor_n be_v thus_o in_o this_o order_n in_o his_o young_a day_n mr._n prynne_n in_o p._n 42._o of_o that_o book_n averr_v that_o oliver_n cromwell_n declare_v to_o his_o parliament_n anno_fw-la 1654._o that_o the_o emissary_n of_o the_o jesuit_n than_o come_v over_o in_o great_a swarm_n and_o that_o they_o have_v then_o fix_v in_o england_n a_o episcopal_a power_n with_o arch-deacon_n and_o other_o person_n to_o pervert_v the_o people_n a_o thing_n they_o never_o since_o the_o reformation_n i_o think_v attempt_v in_o any_o conjuncture_n till_o quarto_n caroli_n and_o then_o as_o appear_v out_o of_o rushworth_n rushworth_n s_z collection_n in_o a_o conference_n between_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o and_o manage_v by_o secretary_n cook_n he_o say_v there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n a_o popish_a hierarchy_n establish_v in_o england_n that_o they_o have_v a_o bishop_n consecrate_a by_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o bishop_n have_v his_o subalternate_a officer_n of_o all_o kind_n as_o vicar_n general_n arch-deacon_n rural_a dean_n apparitor_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o nominal_a or_o titular_a officer_n only_o but_o they_o all_o execute_v their_o jurisdiction_n and_o make_v their_o ordinary_a visitation_n throughout_o the_o kingdom_n keep_v court_n and_o determine_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n but_o it_o appear_v not_o that_o they_o have_v any_o such_o hierarchy_n here_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o plot_n or_o that_o they_o have_v any_o thing_n like_o it_o at_o this_o time_n in_o this_o realm_n mr._n prynne_n tell_v we_o in_o p._n 49._o of_o that_o book_n that_o in_o that_o conjuncture_n in_o cromwel_n time_n above_o 30000_o popish_a pamphlet_n be_v permit_v to_o be_v print_v and_o vend_v in_o england_n and_o that_o of_o this_o the_o london_n stationer_n complain_v in_o print_n but_o it_o be_v very_o little_a that_o they_o have_v print_v here_o since_o the_o king_n restauration_n and_o the_o same_o private_a press_n which_o give_v birth_n to_o the_o few_o pamphlet_n they_o print_v will_v have_v do_v it_o to_o as_o many_o volume_n as_o ever_o tostatus_n as_o mr._n prynne_n write_v if_o they_o have_v please_v the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o protestant_n must_v still_o be_v natural_o attractive_a of_o the_o lesser_a to_o it_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o their_o person_n though_o at_o the_o price_n of_o the_o diminution_n of_o their_o number_n as_o a_o drop_n be_v best_a preserve_v in_o the_o sea_n though_o it_o be_v there_o swallow_v up_o this_o notion_n be_v well_o confirm_v by_o edmund_n spencer_n in_o his_o observation_n of_o the_o history_n of_o ireland_n in_o former_a time_n where_o he_o show_v in_o what_o course_n of_o time_n a_o handful_n of_o english_a plant_v among_o the_o numerous_a irish_a must_v of_o necessity_n become_v irish_a as_o indeed_o his_o own_o family_n there_o do_v as_o i_o be_o tell_v and_o that_o cromwell_n speak_v to_o the_o grandchild_n of_o spencer_n in_o english_a that_o on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o fame_n of_o his_o ancestor_n he_o shall_v enjoy_v his_o estate_n be_v not_o by_o he_o understand_v and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o time_n will_v illuminate_v the_o papist_n as_o to_o the_o pope_n politic_n be_v inconvenient_a to_o they_o and_o only_o convenient_a to_o himself_o for_o the_o same_o principle_n in_o politic_n that_o make_v every_o lesser_a state_n have_v a_o regret_n against_o be_v unite_v to_o a_o great_a namely_o for_o fear_v of_o its_o be_v absorb_v thereby_o a_o notion_n late_o in_o vogue_n when_o the_o union_n of_o england_n and_o scotland_n be_v agitate_a engage_v the_o pope_n to_o keep_v the_o papist_n from_o a_o coalition_n with_o the_o protestant_n here_o that_o will_v drown_v the_o visibility_n of_o their_o number_n and_o consequent_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o number_n of_o his_o subject_n in_o this_o realm_n for_o so_o in_o effect_n they_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n therefore_o in_o nature_n that_o make_v the_o pope_n by_o his_o bull_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n prohibit_v the_o papist_n from_o continue_v to_o come_v to_o our_o church_n and_o to_o our_o common-prayer_n a_o thing_n they_o will_v else_o still_o have_v do_v be_v the_o pope_n be_v enable_v by_o such_o prohibition_n to_o put_v mark_n on_o his_o sheep_n whereby_o to_o know_v they_o and_o their_o number_n and_o which_o have_v he_o forbear_v there_o have_v probable_o be_v no_o number_n of_o they_o returnable_a in_o the_o bishop_n survey_n it_o be_v therefore_o not_o to_o be_v wonder_v that_o our_o church_n get_v nothing_o but_o the_o destruction_n of_o its_o hierarchy_n in_o the_o last_o age_n by_o the_o policy_n
chesible_a and_o other_o pretend_a holy_a vestment_n and_o see_v he_o use_v cross_v turn_v duck_a lift_v whisper_a gape_v mingle_v of_o wine_n and_o water_n lick_n and_o other_o variety_n of_o gesture_n and_o to_o hear_v prayer_n in_o latin_a and_o to_o the_o saint_n and_o for_o the_o dead_a and_o to_o have_v our_o bell_n baptize_v to_o have_v veil_n holy-water_n holy-ash_n palm_n etc._n etc._n erasmus_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n p._n 108._o ep._n 10._o an_fw-mi hic_fw-la sacrificulum_fw-la illum_fw-la mal●unt_fw-la imitari_fw-la qui_fw-la suum_fw-la mumpsimus_fw-la quo_fw-la fuerat_fw-la viginti_fw-la usus_fw-la annos_fw-la muta●e_fw-la noluit_fw-la admonitus_fw-la à_fw-la quopiam_fw-la sumpsimus_fw-la esse_fw-la legendum_fw-la the_o verse_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o he_o read_v that_o word_n be_v josua_n 9_o 12._o en_fw-fr pane_n quando_fw-la egressi_fw-la sumus_fw-la de_fw-la domibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la ut_fw-la veniremus_fw-la ad_fw-la vos_fw-la calidos_fw-la mumpsimus_n nunc_fw-la sicci_fw-la facti_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o vetustate_fw-la nimia_fw-la comminuti_fw-la no_o other_o verse_n appear_v to_o i_o by_o the_o concordance_n of_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a to_o haué_fw-fr sumpsimus_fw-la in_o it_o and_o the_o folly_n of_o the_o priest_n in_o so_o read_v be_v so_o famous_a as_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o harry_n the_o eight_o and_o to_o occasion_v his_o say_n as_o my_o lord_n herbert_n tell_v we_o some_o of_o the_o clergy_n be_v too_o stiff_a in_o their_o old_a mumpsimus_n other_o too_o curious_a in_o their_o new_a sumpsimus_fw-la but_o that_o verse_n in_o josua_n be_v as_o unlucky_a and_o as_o ill_o bode_v a_o one_o to_o popery_n for_o a_o priest_n thus_o to_o signalise_v en_fw-fr ridicule_fw-la as_o any_o he_o can_v have_v find_v in_o holy_a writ_n and_o carry_v in_o itself_o a_o revenge_n for_o its_o barbarous_a usage_n for_o it_o natural_o suggest_v to_o people_n that_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n be_v but_o a_o gibeonitish_a or_o mere_a pretend_a one_o and_o that_o even_o its_o transubstantiated_a bread_n be_v not_o bring_v from_o so_o far_o a_o country_n as_o be_v pretend_v and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o long_o ago_o then_o anno_fw-la 1212_o that_o innocent_a the_o three_o in_o the_o lateran_n council_n bring_v in_o transubstantiation_n as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o decree_v those_o to_o be_v exterminate_v who_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o and_o that_o king_n be_v to_o be_v compel_v to_o exterminate_v they_o and_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o depose_v king_n a_o effectual_a way_n to_o put_v not_o only_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n but_o man_n on_o the_o wrack_n and_o then_o make_v they_o say_v they_o believe_v any_o thing_n but_o we_o have_v be_v use_v to_o the_o new_a sumpsimus_fw-la these_o hundred_o year_n shall_v be_v so_o curious_a in_o it_o as_o to_o make_v what_o be_v barbarous_a the_o object_n of_o our_o mirth_n as_o much_o as_o harry_v the_o eight_o and_o erasmus_n do_v and_o the_o novelty_n of_o popery_n come_v again_o here_o in_o the_o masquerade_n of_o antiquity_n will_v appear_v as_o nauseous_a as_o will_v the_o moud_o bread_n of_o the_o gibeonite_n to_o the_o man_n of_o israel_n if_o they_o have_v come_v to_o treat_v they_o with_o it_o a_o second_o time_n from_o what_o have_v be_v in_o this_o historical_a way_n glance_v at_o concern_v the_o gradual_a decrease_a popery_n here_o in_o the_o several_a past_a conjuncture_n we_o may_v without_o the_o amentia_fw-la prophetiae_fw-la as_o tertullian_n call_v it_o say_v that_o in_o any_o conjuncture_n that_o can_v hereafter_o come_v it_o will_v more_o and_o more_o decrease_n and_o that_o under_o any_o new_a prince_n protestancy_n will_v be_v the_o rise_a sun_n who_o light_n will_v be_v then_o increase_a and_o popery_n acquire_v no_o more_o lustre_n than_o the_o short_a one_o of_o a_o parelius_fw-la doleman_n alias_o parson_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n publish_v his_o thought_n how_o ponderous_a the_o papist_n will_v be_v in_o the_o balance_n of_o state_n in_o the_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n attend_v the_o next_o successor_n speak_v thus_o as_o if_o it_o be_v before_o he_o in_o vision_n with_o these_o many_o other_o do_v join_v et_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la amaro_fw-la animo_fw-la sunt_fw-la cum_fw-la illis_fw-la se_fw-la conjungunt_fw-la as_o the_o scripture_n say_v of_o those_o that_o follow_v david_n david_n be_v retinue_n 1_o king_n 12._o pursue_v by_o saul_n and_o his_o force_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o all_o that_o be_v offend_v grieve_a or_o any_o way_n discontent_v with_o the_o present_a time_n be_v they_o of_o what_o religion_n they_o will_v do_v easy_o join_v with_o these_o men._n and_o when_o i_o consider_v how_o many_o there_o be_v qui_fw-la amaro_fw-la sunt_fw-la animo_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o their_o condition_n be_v embitter_v by_o poverty_n and_o that_o it_o have_v pursue_v they_o like_o a_o arm_a man_n and_o be_v likely_a so_o to_o do_v when_o i_o consider_v that_o the_o multitude_n of_o free-school_n in_o the_o kingdom_n divert_v the_o education_n of_o the_o poor_a sort_n of_o our_o youth_n from_o useful_a laborious_a trade_n to_o the_o useless_o appear_v scholar_n and_o gentleman_n or_o according_a to_o the_o dutch_a word_n idleman_n have_v at_o last_o bring_v they_o but_o to_o fragment_n of_o knowledge_n and_o likewise_o of_o bread_n and_o though_o wear_v better_a habit_n than_o their_o ancestor_n yet_o to_o be_v little_o better_a than_o have_v in_o a_o handsome_a disguise_n rob_v the_o world_n of_o their_o labour_n and_o its_o own_o quiet_a by_o their_o be_v solicitor_n makebate_n informer_n prouler_n into_o the_o right_n of_o other_o man_n estate_n tamperer_n with_o witness_n tales-man_n promoter_n of_o office_n suer_n of_o other_o in_o the_o way_n of_o qui_fw-la tam_fw-la etc._n etc._n quam_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o when_o i_o consider_v what_o be_v so_o true_o observe_v by_o the_o author_n of_o britannia_fw-la languens_fw-la that_o of_o all_o other_o employment_n we_o have_v the_o great_a quest_n after_o office_n that_o man_n will_v almost_o give_v any_o thing_n say_v any_o thing_n do_v any_o thing_n for_o a_o office_n so_o that_o some_o office_n that_o be_v think_v hardly_o worth_a the_o meddle_v with_o of_o late_a year_n will_v now_o yield_v near_o ten_o year_n purchase_n for_o one_o life_n and_o when_o i_o every_o where_o behold_v the_o t●rn_a limb_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o so_o great_a a_o party_n among_o we_o as_o may_v be_v call_v the_o luxuriant_n and_o who_o have_v sell_v the_o same_o estate_n and_o conscience_n three_o or_o four_o time_n over_o and_o do_v likewise_o recollect_v the_o number_n of_o all_o such_o idle_a man_n who_o have_v be_v observe_v of_o late_a year_n in_o shoales_n so_o much_o to_o depopulate_v the_o country_n to_o plant_v themselves_o about_o london_n insomuch_o that_o though_o according_a to_o the_o observator_fw-la of_o the_o bill_n of_o mortality_n there_o usual_o do_v come_v out_o of_o the_o country_n to_o live_v in_o london_n but_o 6000_o yet_o there_o die_v within_o those_o bill_n 17249_o in_o the_o year_n 75_o and_o 18732_o in_o the_o year_n 76_o and_o 19064_o in_o the_o year_n 77_o and_o 20678_o in_o the_o year_n 78_o wherein_o the_o popish_a plot_n be_v discover_v and_o 21730_o in_o the_o year_n 79_o whence_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o one_o in_o 30_o yearly_o die_v and_o there_o have_v die_v gradualy_a above_o a_o 1000_o a_o year_n since_o the_o year_n 75_o to_o the_o year_n 80_o although_o all_o year_n of_o ordinary_a health_n so_o the_o remain_a part_n in_o london_n do_v thence_o appear_v gradual_o increase_v proportionable_o that_o be_v as_o a_o 1000_o die_v each_o year_n more_o than_o other_o so_o 29000_o live_v there_o each_o year_n more_o than_o in_o the_o other_o and_o that_o there_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 79_o in_o london_n 120000_o more_o than_o do_v in_o the_o year_n 75_o and_o that_o many_o of_o these_o people_n have_v break_v in_o the_o country_n through_o the_o poverty_n that_o the_o plot_n occasion_v come_v to_o london_n to_o hide_v themselves_o and_o their_o shame_n i_o say_v when_o i_o consider_v all_o these_o thing_n i_o may_v well_o conclude_v that_o all_o these_o indigent_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o hope_v for_o a_o golden_a age_n and_o call_v any_o thing_n a_o religion_n that_o will_v bring_v it_o they_o and_o by_o a_o new_a shuffle_n of_o religion_n will_v be_v indeed_o hope_v for_o better_a card_n in_o this_o world._n some_o of_o those_o who_o have_v be_v trumpeter_n to_o the_o puppet-shows_a of_o little_a enthusiastic_a religion_n and_o mover_n of_o the_o wire_n there_o will_v if_o ever_o the_o great_a one_o of_o popery_n shall_v come_v on_o the_o stage_n be_v glad_a to_o be_v sharer_n or_o quarter_n sharer_n in_o it_o and_o to_o be_v either_o actor_n or_o ministerial_a to_o they_o and_o especial_o to_o be_v applaud_v spectator_n
most_o vital_a part_n sincerity_n hereby_o in_o danger_n to_o be_v exterminate_v for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n well_o know_v to_o merchant_n and_o goldsmith_n and_o mint-master_n that_o if_o the_o par_fw-fr as_o they_o call_v it_o or_o exact_a proportion_n between_o gold_n and_o silver_n be_v not_o observe_v in_o any_o country_n either_o the_o gold_n will_v carry_v all_o the_o silver_n out_o of_o it_o or_o the_o silver_n all_o the_o gold_n so_o it_o may_v be_v affirm_v too_o that_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o par_n or_o proportion_n observe_v as_o to_o religion_n and_o profit_n or_o wealth_n either_o the_o religion_n of_o a_o country_n will_v carry_v out_o all_o the_o profit_n or_o proventus_fw-la of_o it_o or_o the_o profit_n will_v carry_v out_o or_o exterminate_v religion_n i_o will_v not_o therefore_o here_o prophecy_n that_o the_o world_n will_v never_o but_o say_v that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v fix_v in_o a_o quiet_a and_o orderly_a state_n and_o free_a from_o the_o importunity_n and_o sedition_n of_o hypocrite_n till_o its_o present_a state_n be_v such_o that_o man_n can_v neither_o get_v nor_o lose_v by_o religion_n and_o till_o the_o world_n recover_v this_o golden_a age_n namely_o that_o gold_n can_v carry_v out_o our_o religion_n and_o people_n we_o with_o hypocrite_n or_o our_o religion_n gold_n the_o world_n will_v be_v but_o a_o great_a disorderly_a house_n and_o scarce_o worth_a any_o man_n be_v monarch_n over_o it_o as_o the_o irish_a call_v their_o last_o rebellion_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o commotion_n so_o some_o have_v happen_v to_o call_v the_o present_a state_n of_o people_n mind_n in_o england_n which_o be_v so_o disorderly_a by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o fermentation_n and_o this_o fermentation_n can_v never_o be_v over_o in_o our_o english_a world_n till_o there_o shall_v here_o be_v neither_o profit_n or_o loss_n by_o religion_n and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v more_o or_o less_o rich_a by_o more_o or_o less_o combine_a with_o any_o party_n to_o cry_v up_o or_o decry_v any_o religionary_a tenet_n or_o proposition_n one_o will_v wonder_v that_o since_o religion_n and_o particular_o the_o christian_n with_o its_o credenda_fw-la do_v crown_v the_o reason_n of_o man_n and_o likewise_o annex_v by_o the_o exuberance_n of_o the_o divine_a benignity_n a_o crown_n of_o glory_n hereafter_o to_o the_o believer_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v for_o their_o belief_n of_o proposition_n not_o contrary_a to_o reason_n and_o wherein_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o propounder_n be_v support_v by_o miracle_n expect_v to_o be_v reward_v in_o this_o world_n a_o humour_n that_o have_v be_v regnant_a even_o among_o christian_n from_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v on_o earth_n to_o the_o present_a age_n and_o a_o humour_n that_o so_o poison_v the_o jew_n of_o old_a that_o they_o think_v it_o not_o tanti_n to_o have_v their_o mind_n free_v from_o the_o slavery_n to_o error_n unless_o the_o messiah_n will_v have_v deliver_v they_o from_o the_o servitude_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o because_o he_o do_v not_o and_o do_v decline_v the_o be_v make_v a_o earthly_a king_n when_o the_o jew_n with_o their_o hosanna_n be_v tempt_v he_o to_o it_o they_o accuse_v he_o capital_o for_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o king_n whenas_o it_o be_v not_o he_o but_o they_o that_o say_v it_o and_o they_o put_v he_o to_o death_n reverà_fw-la because_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n and_o a_o humour_n that_o will_v not_o quit_v the_o stage_n when_o the_o first_o christian_n do_v but_o bold_o still_o face_v the_o world_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o millennium_n have_v be_v so_o much_o applaud_v by_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o christian_n before_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n but_o methinks_v from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o old_a who_o do_v ambire_fw-la martyrium_fw-la to_o such_o a_o degree_n that_o st._n gregory_n say_v let_v god_n number_v our_o martyr_n for_o to_o we_o they_o be_v more_o in_o number_n then_o the_o sand_n as_o if_o the_o work_n have_v be_v too_o hard_o for_o another_o archimedes_n with_o his_o arenarius_n to_o calculate_v the_o number_n of_o the_o martyr_a christian_n and_o one_o author_n account_v that_o except_v on_o the_o first_o of_o january_n there_o be_v no_o day_n for_o which_o record_n do_v not_o allow_v 500_o martyr_n at_o least_o and_o that_o for_o most_o day_n they_o allow_v 900_o and_o who_o do_v ennoble_v the_o christian_a religion_n by_o show_v to_o the_o world_n a_o example_n of_o contempt_n of_o death_n and_o even_o of_o life_n beyond_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n i_o say_v from_o the_o example_n of_o those_o christian_n who_o do_v in_o shoal_n die_v daily_o for_o their_o religion_n we_o may_v if_o they_o please_v be_v teach_v the_o modesty_n not_o to_o expect_v daily_a livelihood_n from_o it_o and_o to_o account_v they_o have_v very_o fair_a play_n if_o they_o do_v not_o lose_v their_o livelihood_n by_o it_o it_o be_v moreover_o observable_a that_o under_o the_o jewish_a theocracy_n providence_n have_v then_o so_o order_v thing_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v get_v or_o lose_v by_o religion_n the_o tribe_n have_v then_o their_o share_n of_o the_o good_a land_n by_o lot_n and_o the_o levite_n only_o have_v that_o affluent_a proportion_n of_o the_o proventus_fw-la of_o the_o other_o tribe_n that_o i_o have_v before_o calculate_v and_o which_o will_v have_v tempt_v many_o of_o the_o other_o tribe_n to_o have_v march_v over_o to_o the_o officium_fw-la and_o beneficium_fw-la of_o the_o priesthood_n have_v not_o god_n their_o monarch_n provide_v against_o that_o by_o the_o confinement_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o priesthood_n to_o one_o tribe_n and_o its_o descendants_n by_o natural_a generation_n but_o as_o to_o the_o notion_n of_o get_v or_o lose_v by_o religion_n i_o shall_v recommend_v to_o your_o lordship_n read_v a_o small_a pamphlet_n print_v in_o two_o sheet_n of_o paper_n in_o folio_n and_o call_v the_o great_a question_n to_o be_v consider_v by_o the_o king_n and_o this_o parliament_n etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n how_o far_o religion_n be_v concern_v in_o policy_n or_o civil_a government_n and_o policy_n in_o religion_n etc._n etc._n on_o the_o disquisition_n of_o which_o a_o sufficient_a basis_n be_v propose_v for_o the_o firm_a settlement_n of_o these_o nation_n to_o the_o most_o probable_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o several_a party_n and_o interest_n therein_o and_o subscribe_v by_o the_o name_n of_o philo-britanicus_n who_o the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v i_o can_v learn_v but_o do_v easy_o find_v by_o the_o book_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a acumen_fw-la of_o thought_n and_o that_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o state_n especial_o relate_v to_o this_o kingdom_n have_v be_v very_o much_o think_v of_o by_o he_o and_o that_o the_o author_n be_v certain_o neither_o papist_n nor_o presbyterian_a and_o so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o favourer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o he_o do_v interminis_fw-la make_fw-mi the_o public_a maintenance_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o have_v be_v the_o bone_n of_o contention_n in_o these_o nation_n p._n 8._o and_o there_o say_v it_o will_v be_v find_v to_o stand_v on_o the_o same_o foot_n with_o abbey_n and_o nunnery_n and_o their_o land_n and_o there_o further_o as_o a_o propounder_n will_v give_v all_o the_o church-land_n to_o the_o crown_n and_o the_o tithe_n to_o the_o people_n and_o then_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n and_o animosity_n on_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n will_v be_v pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n that_o author_n in_o p._n the_o 5_o do_v very_o acute_o observe_v that_o popery_n have_v two_o part_n the_o one_o be_v that_o which_o be_v mere_o religious_a that_o be_v which_o relate_v proper_o to_o religion_n or_o conscience_n and_o which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o they_o such_o as_o the_o believe_v of_o transubstantiation_n purgatory_n adoration_n of_o saint_n and_o image_n yea_o and_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o other_o churchman_n all_o which_o and_o those_o of_o this_o kind_n may_v be_v believe_v and_o profess_v without_o prejudice_n to_o civil_a society_n and_o as_o be_v matter_n relate_v to_o conscience_n come_v not_o proper_o under_o the_o magistrate_n cognizance_n the_o other_o part_n be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n over_o prince_n and_o state_n his_o obsolve_v the_o people_n from_o their_o obedience_n his_o give_v they_o dispensation_n to_o kill_v prince_n and_o destroy_v they_o and_o allow_v they_o not_o to_o keep_v faith_n to_o heretic_n and_o such_o like_a which_o as_o they_o be_v destructive_a to_o government_n be_v true_o no_o part_n of_o religion_n but_o a_o politic_a contrivance_n long_o hatch_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o dependent_n
and_o five_o hundred_o of_o prebend_n after_o so_o many_o shall_v have_v draw_v blank_n in_o the_o lottery_n of_o preferment_n those_o few_o that_o shall_v draw_v those_o prize_n need_v not_o be_v envy_v for_o what_o they_o have_v acquire_v by_o the_o theological_a profession_n it_o be_v both_o with_o justice_n and_o prudence_n by_o our_o law_n caution_v that_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o clerical_a maintenance_n shall_v arise_v from_o tithe_n for_o by_o that_o mean_v our_o clergy_n be_v engage_v to_o make_v the_o interest_n of_o their_o country_n and_o its_o improvement_n their_o own_o and_o have_v they_o not_o have_v so_o much_o of_o their_o maintenance_n sound_v on_o tithe_n but_o on_o money_n out_o of_o the_o exchequer_n as_o they_o have_v before_o this_o time_n lose_v excessive_o by_o religion_n so_o religion_n will_v have_v lose_v their_o call_v for_o that_o the_o price_n of_o silver_n fall_v by_o the_o plenty_n of_o it_o and_o the_o plenty_n or_o increase_n of_o our_o people_n make_v all_o the_o product_n of_o our_o country_n dear_a it_o have_v be_v advantageous_a to_o our_o clergy_n to_o receive_v their_o tithe_n in_o kind_n as_o it_o have_v be_v to_o college_n to_o receive_v a_o quota_fw-la of_o their_o rent_n in_o corn._n but_o that_o still_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n be_v too_o mean_a will_v appear_v even_o by_o the_o late_a enemy_n of_o our_o hierarchy_n be_v judge_n for_o mr._n nye_n in_o that_o book_n of_o he_o call_v beam_n of_o former_a light_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o minister_n call_v be_v once_o a_o gainful_a one_o say_v p._n 123._o it_o be_v utter_o otherwise_o now_o not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o very_a liberal_a maintenance_n appertain_v to_o minister_n and_o great_a by_o the_o bounty_n of_o the_o honourable_a parliament_n than_o the_o preach_a ministry_n have_v former_o enjoy_v the_o gradual_a increase_n of_o our_o people_n and_o trade_n have_v proportionable_o increase_v the_o clerical_a revenue_n which_o on_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n be_v present_o sink_v so_o that_o latimer_n in_o his_o sermon_n before_o edward_n the_o 6_o the_o say_v we_o of_o the_o clergy_n have_v have_v too_o much_o but_o that_o be_v take_v away_o and_o now_o we_o have_v too_o little_a and_o what_o jewel_n in_o his_o sermon_n notify_v to_o queen_n elizabeth_n of_o that_o kind_n i_o have_v mention_v and_o so_o languid_a be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n in_o her_o time_n that_o she_o by_o one_o of_o her_o print_a ecclesiastical_a injunction_n anno_fw-la 1599_o do_v under_o great_a penalty_n forbid_v all_o priest_n and_o deacon_n to_o marry_v any_o woman_n without_o the_o advice_n and_o allowance_n first_o have_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n and_o two_o justice_n of_o peace_n which_o i_o suppose_v be_v caution_v by_o the_o queen_n that_o the_o many_o minister_n who_o have_v not_o competent_a live_n to_o maintain_v themselves_o may_v not_o marry_v wife_n without_o dowry_n by_o new_a birth_n increase_v the_o number_n of_o pauper_n in_o parish_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o in_o the_o late_a time_n the_o jesuit_n do_v publish_v many_o pamphlet_n in_o print_n against_o tithe_n and_o do_v animate_v the_o people_n to_o make_v tumultuary_a address_n to_o the_o usurper_n to_o abolish_v that_o maintenance_n of_o the_o minister_n wherein_o as_o their_o politic_n be_v so_o unjust_a to_o our_o monarch_n that_o have_v they_o succeed_v they_o will_v have_v barricade_v the_o way_n for_o his_o return_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o too_o many_o of_o the_o people_n for_o fear_v that_o the_o payment_n of_o tithe_n shall_v return_v too_o so_o likewise_o be_v they_o so_o ridiculous_a by_o cut_v off_o all_o hope_n of_o the_o return_n of_o popery_n here_o in_o any_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n that_o less_o than_o a_o army_n of_o bellarmine_n will_v never_o have_v persuade_v the_o common_a people_n to_o hear_v with_o patience_n any_o talk_n of_o holy_a church_n re-establishment_n here_o though_o as_o i_o have_v show_v that_o tithe_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o equality_n in_o the_o imposition_n of_o they_o and_o the_o diuturnity_n of_o time_n that_o have_v habituate_v people_n to_o the_o payment_n thereof_o be_v a_o gentle_a part_n of_o the_o yoke_n of_o our_o ecclesiastical_a government_n yet_o if_o the_o payment_n of_o they_o or_o any_o other_o tax_n whether_o of_o excise_n custom_n or_o chimny-money_n be_v for_o many_o year_n discontinue_v there_o will_v be_v no_o probability_n of_o bring_v either_o the_o old_a stager_n or_o new_a comer_n in_o the_o world_n to_o consent_v or_o hearken_v to_o their_o be_v reestablish_v the_o critical_a observer_n of_o the_o jewish_a state_n after_o ten_o tribe_n have_v make_v a_o schism_n from_o the_o other_o two_o judge_v that_o there_o be_v two_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n wherein_o their_o piece_n together_o be_v feasible_a and_o that_o the_o great_a true_a cause_n in_o nature_n that_o hinder_v the_o reunion_n of_o the_o tribe_n be_v the_o aversion_n in_o the_o ten_o tribe_n to_o make_v three_o chargeable_a journey_n yearly_a to_o jerusalem_n and_o to_o pay_v a_o double_a ten_o yearly_o out_o of_o their_o estate_n beside_o offering_n and_o other_o casualty_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n from_o which_o trouble_n and_o charge_n they_o have_v be_v relax_v by_o jeroboam_fw-la and_o by_o his_o model_n of_o idolatry_n and_o therefore_o the_o people_n have_v most_o inclination_n to_o that_o religion_n that_o be_v cheap_a and_o know_v that_o if_o they_o return_v to_o their_o old_a religion_n they_o must_v likewise_o return_v to_o their_o old_a payment_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n do_v venture_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o cheap_a golden_a calf_n and_o have_v the_o jesuit_n here_o effect_v from_o the_o usurp_v power_n the_o abolition_n of_o the_o clergy_n tithe_n which_o will_v have_v make_v the_o return_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n so_o difficult_a i_o may_v well_o argue_v that_o it_o will_v have_v make_v the_o return_n of_o the_o papal_a religion_n and_o its_o chargeable_a idolatry_n impossible_a who_o yoke_n of_o payment_n neither_o we_o nor_o our_o forefather_n be_v able_a to_o fear_v but_o when_o senseless_a fanatics_n come_v with_o those_o petition_n against_o tithe_n the_o more_o sagacious_a of_o the_o usurper_n know_v that_o the_o hand_n of_o joab_n be_v in_o they_o and_o they_o know_v that_o hardly_o any_o observation_n be_v more_o trite_a than_o that_o popery_n gain_v ground_n chief_o in_o the_o poor_a part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n where_o the_o despicable_a maintenance_n make_v the_o ministry_n so_o too_o and_o where_o too_o the_o pope_n will_v no_o more_o hunt_v for_o convert_v then_o among_o the_o poor_a norwegian_n but_o that_o it_o be_v of_o use_n to_o he_o to_o have_v the_o number_n of_o his_o subject_n increase_v in_o any_o poor_a place_n in_o a_o rich_a kingdom_n where_o he_o though_o a_o spiritual_a king_n may_v yet_o call_v his_o subject_n to_o fight_n sir_n benjamin_n rudyard_n take_v notice_n of_o popery_n be_v a_o intruder_n among_o the_o poor_a benefice_n of_o the_o north_n in_o the_o speech_n before_o cite_v and_o there_o say_v p._n 1._o that_o to_o plant_v good_a minister_n in_o good_a live_n be_v the_o strong_a and_o sure_a mean_n to_o establish_v true_a religion_n and_o will_v prevail_v more_o against_o papistry_n then_o the_o make_n of_o new_a law_n and_o execute_v the_o old_a and_o there_o p._n 3._o relate_v what_o king_n james_n have_v do_v for_o the_o support_v of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n in_o scotland_n where_o say_v he_o within_o the_o space_n of_o one_o year_n he_o cause_v to_o be_v plant_v church_n throughout_o that_o kingdom_n the_o highland_n and_o the_o border_n worth_a 30_o l._n a_o year_n a_o piece_n with_o a_o house_n and_o some_o glebeland_n belong_v to_o they_o which_o 30_o l._n a_o year_n consider_v the_o cheapness_n of_o that_o country_n be_v worth_a double_a as_o much_o as_o any_o where_o within_o a_o 100_o mile_n of_o london_n and_o p._n 7._o he_o mention_n some_o passage_n of_o bishop_n jewel_n sermon_n before_o queen_n elizabeth_n where_o the_o bishop_n have_v in_o general_n reflect_v on_o those_o that_o then_o cause_v the_o diminution_n of_o the_o maintenance_n of_o minister_n he_o further_o say_v howsoever_o they_o seem_v to_o rejoice_v at_o the_o prosperity_n of_o zion_n and_o to_o seek_v the_o safety_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o lord_n anoint_v yet_o needs_o must_v it_o be_v that_o by_o these_o mean_v foreign_a power_n of_o which_o this_o realm_n by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v happy_o deliver_v shall_v again_o be_v bring_v in_o upon_o we_o such_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v to_o we_o as_o we_o before_o suffer_v in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v there_o before_o mention_v how_o that_o man_n of_o god_n with_o
the_o world_n will_v never_o be_v quiet_a till_o its_o allay_n from_o the_o true_a silver_n be_v separate_v by_o melt_v it_o down_o and_o it_o take_v the_o name_n of_o religion_n only_o when_o it_o deserve_v it_o what_o be_v more_o ordinary_a then_o for_o clamour_n to_o raise_v this_o question_n will_v you_o punish_v any_o man_n for_o his_o religion_n and_o will_v you_o have_v any_o man_n lose_v by_o his_o religion_n and_o i_o see_v no_o end_n in_o the_o dispute_v of_o the_o question_n but_o by_o this_o answer_n and_o by_o this_o it_o must_v find_v a_o period_n viz._n i_o punish_v no_o man_n for_o his_o religion_n for_o that_o tenet_n that_o i_o quarrel_n with_o he_o about_o be_v not_o and_o indeed_o can_v be_v religion_n it_o be_v pure_a and_o rank_a sedition_n and_o rebellion_n and_o if_o any_o papist_n or_o presbyterian_a shall_v write_v or_o speak_v to_o make_v the_o king_n power_n a_o bubble_n blow_v up_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o people_n and_o so_o dissolvable_a i_o shall_v esteem_v he_o fit_a to_o be_v proceed_v against_o by_o the_o new_a statute_n of_o the_o 13_o the_o of_o this_o king_n reign_n against_o sedition_n and_o as_o a_o subverter_n of_o the_o fundamental_a law_n and_o do_v suppose_v it_o will_v be_v ridiculous_a for_o any_o one_o to_o plead_v his_o religion_n in_o bar_n of_o that_o indictment_n and_o he_o do_v moreover_o deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v as_o a_o cheater_n for_o abuse_v the_o world_n and_o himself_o and_o religion_n too_o by_o call_v such_o a_o particular_a tenet_n religion_n or_o a_o complication_n of_o many_o tenet_n by_o that_o name_n where_o the_o virtue_n of_o they_o all_o be_v not_o strong_a enough_o to_o correct_v the_o poison_n of_o one_o the_o scripture_n do_v punish_v those_o with_o a_o denunciation_n of_o a_o woe_n who_o call_v evil_a good_a and_o good_a evil_n that_o put_v darkness_n for_o light_n and_o light_n for_o darkness_n and_o in_o this_o particular_a point_n of_o the_o call_n any_o of_o the_o idolatry_n or_o imposture_n of_o the_o heathen_n or_o other_o by_o the_o name_n of_o religion_n i_o remember_v not_o any_o instance_n in_o holy_a writ_n though_o yet_o in_o other_o case_n it_o be_v not_o infrequent_a for_o the_o inspire_a pen_n man_n to_o speak_v cum_fw-la vulgo_fw-la i_o observe_v that_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o name_n of_o religion_n be_v several_a time_n apply_v to_o the_o jewish_a after_o the_o world_n be_v free_v from_o the_o obligation_n of_o it_o but_o one_o of_o the_o holy_a penman_n speak_v in_o one_o chapter_n of_o false_a apostle_n use_v the_o style_n of_o hate_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n and_o of_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n and_o of_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o balam_n and_o another_o of_o the_o amanuensis_n of_o the_o holy-ghost_n speak_v of_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v offer_v to_o my_o consideration_n a_o scheme_n of_o doctrine_n that_o relate_v to_o theology_n and_o i_o find_v it_o be_v too_o subtle_a for_o my_o understanding_n to_o penetrate_v i_o shall_v yet_o be_v so_o evil_a as_o to_o allow_v the_o propounder_n to_o call_v it_o a_o religion_n and_o thus_o if_o papist_n or_o protestant_n will_v agree_v to_o call_v dr._n gibbon_n scheme_n a_o religion_n or_o demonstration_n of_o it_o i_o will_v not_o oppose_v theit_n call_v it_o any_o such_o thing_n and_o the_o rather_o since_o it_o enjoin_v not_o to_o i_o any_o thing_n that_o will_v break_v my_o own_o or_o the_o world_n quiet_a but_o when_o popery_n do_v enjoin_v so_o many_o tenet_n to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v incredible_a to_o a_o rational_a man_n and_o some_o thing_n that_o be_v clear_o impossible_a to_o a_o moral_a man_n i_o will_v call_v popery_n in_o the_o gross_a any_o thing_n rather_o than_o religion_n just_a as_o tully_n say_v of_o those_o lawgiver_n who_o do_v perniciosa_fw-la &_o injusta_fw-la a_o populis_fw-la praescribere_fw-la that_o they_o do_v quidvis_fw-la potius_fw-la far_o quam_fw-la leges_fw-la i_o find_v not_o that_o since_o the_o year_n 1605._o popery_n have_v so_o discriminate_v itself_o by_o any_o alteration_n for_o the_o better_o as_o to_o overthrow_v the_o weight_n of_o king_n james_n say_n then_o to_o both_o his_o house_n of_o parliament_n viz._n that_o as_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a but_o many_o honest_a man_n seduce_v with_o some_o error_n in_o popery_n may_v yet_o remain_v good_a and_o faithful_a subject_n so_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n none_o that_o know_v and_o believe_v the_o ground_n and_o school_n conclusion_n of_o their_o doctrine_n can_v ever_o prove_v good_a christian_n or_o faithful_a subject_n there_o be_v one_o tenet_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n that_o your_o lordship_n show_v i_o once_o discuss_v in_o print_n by_o a_o canonist_n and_o by_o who_o i_o be_v direct_v to_o trace_v it_o both_o to_o the_o gloss_n and_o text_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n that_o i_o have_v discourse_v of_o to_o a_o pious_a and_o learned_a neighbour_n of_o i_o who_o be_v a_o roman_n catholic_n he_o oblige_v i_o to_o write_v to_o your_o lordship_n that_o you_o will_v please_v to_o let_v any_o of_o your_o amanuensis_n transcribe_v and_o to_o send_v hither_o to_o i_o the_o resolution_n of_o that_o lawyer_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o law_n about_o it_o and_o have_v declare_v to_o i_o that_o he_o will_v join_v issue_n with_o i_o in_o the_o plea_n about_o religion_n in_o that_o be_v a_o tenet_n or_o principle_n approve_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o your_o habitual_a inclination_n to_o afford_v any_o one_o though_o a_o stranger_n to_o you_o lumen_fw-la de_fw-la lumine_fw-la will_v i_o doubt_v not_o make_v it_o easy_a to_o you_o to_o gratify_v my_o request_n in_o his_o behalf_n he_o grant_v to_o i_o that_o if_o that_o tenet_n can_v be_v show_v to_o be_v one_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o believe_v there_o will_v be_v no_o occasion_n for_o disputant_n any_o more_o to_o attaque_fw-la the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n and_o that_o as_o a_o independent_a author_n in_o the_o late_a time_n write_v a_o pamphlet_n against_o presbytery_n have_v this_o title_n for_o it_o a_o end_n of_o one_o controversy_n it_o may_v be_v suppose_v that_o a_o sheet_n of_o paper_n that_o without_o strain_a inference_n can_v fasten_v that_o tenet_n on_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n will_v with_o better_a success_n make_v a_o end_n of_o that_o controversy_n my_o lord_n this_o point_n discuss_v in_o print_n that_o i_o refer_v to_o be_v as_o i_o find_v it_o in_o the_o note_v i_o take_v thereof_o in_o your_o lordship_n study_n in_o gundissalvus_n his_o tractatus_fw-la de_fw-la haereticis_fw-la question_n 24._o before_o which_o the_o summarium_fw-la be_v thus_o 1._o civitas_n in_o quâ_fw-la aliqui_fw-la insunt_fw-la haeretici_fw-la a_o tota_fw-la possit_fw-la igne_fw-la exuri_fw-la aut_fw-la alius_fw-la destrui_fw-la 2._o civitas_n quando_fw-la dicatur_fw-la haeresim_fw-la committere_fw-la ut_fw-la universa_fw-la destrui_fw-la possit_fw-la 3._o vniversitate_fw-la punitâ_fw-la de_fw-la haeresi_fw-la a_o singuli_fw-la qu●que_fw-la puniti_fw-la videantur_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la amplius_fw-la puniri_fw-la non_fw-la possint_fw-la the_o gentleman_n be_v of_o a_o nice_a tenderness_n of_o conscience_n and_o have_v a_o quick_a sense_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o look_v like_o gross_a impiety_n be_v at_o the_o very_a name_a of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o question_n surprise_v with_o a_o kind_n of_o tremble_a and_o be_v somewhat_o more_o discompose_v when_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o upon_o consideration_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n it_o appear_v even_o from_o the_o most_o moderate_a of_o the_o canonist_n that_o a_o whole_a city_n may_v lawful_o be_v destroy_v with_o fire_n if_o the_o majority_n of_o it_o be_v heretic_n and_o that_o there_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o case_n and_o like_o a_o man_n of_o a_o large_a and_o candid_a soul_n he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v sorry_a that_o humane_a nature_n can_v in_o any_o man_n so_o far_o degenerate_a as_o to_o deliberate_v about_o such_o their_o destroy_v a_o whole_a city_n by_o fire_n but_o will_v reserve_v his_o judgement_n on_o the_o point_n till_o he_o see_v it_o before_o he_o in_o the_o quotation_n out_o of_o the_o canon-law_n as_o well_o as_o canonist_n what_o the_o event_n of_o his_o judgement_n will_v be_v i_o know_v not_o and_o i_o confess_v i_o have_v be_v very_o spare_v of_o my_o time_n in_o discourse_v with_o roman_a catholic_n about_o any_o point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n since_o i_o read_v it_o in_o cardinal_n tolet_n inst._n sacerdotum_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 3._o and_o 7._o p._n 612._o and_o in_o our_o countryman_n holcot_n a_o famous_a schoolman_n in_o lib._n 1._o sententiarum_fw-la quest._n 1._o ad_fw-la sextum_fw-la principale_v in_fw-la replica_fw-la that_o if_o he_o hear_v his_o prelate_n preach_v
to_o be_v walk_v on_o in_o a_o frost_n after_o a_o thaw_v we_o be_v tell_v by_o the_o conformist_n in_o the_o friendly_a debate_n in_o p._n 112._o that_o he_o have_v hear_v some_o of_o the_o nonconformist_n divine_v acknowledge_v that_o they_o do_v not_o scruple_n what_o the_o conformist_n do_v but_o think_v it_o unhandsome_a for_o they_o to_o do_v it_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o meaning_n be_v in_o plain_a english_a that_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v their_o error_n but_o if_o some_o of_o those_o divine_n who_o low_a education_n conduct_v they_o perhaps_o from_o be_v servitor_n in_o the_o university_n to_o domineer_v in_o their_o cure_n and_o who_o through_o the_o track_n of_o their_o life_n may_v be_v trace_v by_o the_o slime_n of_o their_o pedantry_n and_o who_o trade_n be_v or_o shall_v have_v be_v the_o study_n of_o divinity_n the_o precept_n of_o which_o and_o their_o fragment_n collect_v out_o of_o augustinus_n and_o aquinas_n as_o well_o as_o the_o example_n of_o the_o former_a oblige_v they_o to_o retract_v those_o error_n public_o that_o they_o have_v so_o utter_v i_o say_v that_o if_o they_o be_v yet_o so_o picquez_n d'_fw-fr honneur_fw-fr that_o they_o will_v not_o let_v their_o fallibility_n appear_v in_o village_n and_o even_o the_o falsity_n of_o those_o principle_n of_o they_o by_o which_o as_o many_o hundred_o of_o thousand_o here_o be_v slay_v as_o be_v bare_a hundred_o murder_v in_o the_o inglorious_a reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n they_o have_v true_a cause_n to_o think_v it_o dishonourable_a for_o they_o to_o restrain_v their_o compassion_n from_o any_o high_a bear_a prince_n the_o brightness_n of_o who_o great_a martial_a achievement_n have_v dazzle_v the_o universe_n and_o will_v continue_v to_o do_v it_o when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o shade_n below_o and_o one_o who_o may_v say_v as_o the_o pope_n do_v to_o the_o jansenist_n that_o he_o have_v never_o study_v divinity_n and_o they_o be_v very_o unfit_a to_o cashier_v he_o from_o the_o church_n militant_a if_o he_o do_v not_o in_o the_o view_n of_o mankind_n appear_v to_o make_v a_o retreat_n at_o the_o call_v of_o their_o trumpet_n which_o have_v be_v know_v to_o give_v so_o uncertain_a a_o sound_n and_o such_o may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o despair_v of_o his_o find_v out_o any_o false_a notion_n he_o may_v have_v receive_v in_o religion_n and_o to_o conclude_v that_o he_o have_v not_o private_o discover_v they_o because_o he_o do_v not_o open_o recant_v they_o and_o to_o expect_v that_o after_o perhaps_o he_o have_v err_v in_o the_o tenet_n of_o confession_n he_o shall_v yet_o present_o make_v the_o world_n his_o confessor_n about_o it_o and_o grant_v he_o nothing_o of_o the_o guard_n of_o honour_n in_o the_o case_n but_o monopolise_v the_o temptation_n from_o honour_n to_o their_o sinful_a obscure_a self_n but_o as_o no_o man_n can_v take_v the_o measure_n of_o another_o sin_n without_o take_v those_o of_o his_o temptation_n so_o none_o but_o a_o prince_n can_v know_v the_o temptation_n of_o a_o prince_n dic_fw-la mihi_fw-la si_fw-la fueris_fw-la tu_fw-la leo_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o like_a pedantry_n therefore_o in_o the_o great_a st._n jerom_n be_v inexcusable_a as_o to_o that_o sharp_a say_n of_o he_o miror_fw-la si_fw-la aliquis_fw-la rex_fw-la salvabitur_fw-la and_o that_o satirical_a fancy_n of_o he_o have_v since_o meet_v with_o its_o match_n by_o some_o that_o have_v send_v st._n jerom_n to_o the_o devil_n as_o fantastical_o for_o so_o i_o find_v it_o say_v in_o dr._n donnes_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o so_o many_o age_n of_o a_o devout_a and_o religious_a celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o st._n jerom_n causaeus_n have_v speak_v so_o dangerous_o that_o ratio_fw-la 5._o campian_n say_v he_o pronounce_v he_o to_o be_v as_o deep_a in_o hell_n as_o the_o devil_n moreover_o i_o think_v it_o great_a injustice_n to_o any_o prince_n who_o have_v change_v his_o religion_n of_o protestancy_n for_o popery_n that_o protestant_n shall_v at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v jealous_a of_o his_o retain_v no_o tincture_n of_o his_o former_a principle_n that_o the_o bigoted_a and_o jesuit_v papist_n be_v jealous_a of_o his_o scarce_o retain_v a_o tincture_n of_o his_o new_a one_o and_o by_o jealousy_n too_o as_o cruel_a as_o the_o grave_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o fate_n of_o harry_n the_o 4_o the_o who_o because_o he_o do_v not_o and_o indeed_o can_v not_o divest_v himself_o of_o that_o humanity_n towards_o his_o protestant_a subject_n that_o be_v rivet_v in_o his_o nature_n after_o he_o be_v absolve_v by_o the_o chair_n of_o infallibility_n and_o reconcile_v to_o the_o very_a scorner_n chair_n of_o the_o jesuit_n yer_z mere_o because_o he_o have_v not_o a_o window_n to_o his_o breast_n through_o which_o every_o capricious_a priest_n may_v look_v in_o at_o and_o may_v thereby_o put_v in_o what_o principle_n he_o please_v they_o be_v resolve_v to_o cut_v one_o there_o and_o after_o john_n chastel_n have_v begin_v to_o practise_v his_o incision_n a_o execrable_a apology_n for_o it_o be_v publish_v in_o which_o apology_n print_v in_o latin_a at_o lion_n anno_fw-la 1611._o the_o assertion_n or_o head_n of_o chapter_n 3d_o part_v 2d_o be_v chastel_n have_v no_o purpose_n to_o kill_v a_o king_n and_o of_o chapter_n four_o there_o henry_n of_o bourbon_n can_v be_v call_v a_o king_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o pretend_a conversion_n and_o of_o chapter_n 8_o there_o neither_o can_v he_o be_v king_n tho_o absolve_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o chapter_n 9th_o neither_o can_v he_o be_v call_v a_o king_n by_o the_o right_n of_o succession_n and_o of_o chapter_n 11_o heretic_n and_o especial_o relapse_v one_o be_v ju●e_v divino_fw-la &_o humano_fw-la to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n and_o of_o chapter_n 12_o heretic_n and_o especial_o relapse_v one_o may_v be_v kill_v by_o private_a person_n if_o it_o can_v be_v do_v otherwise_o the_o assassination_n of_o harry_n the_o 3_o d_o of_o france_n bear_v with_o it_o a_o memento_n mori_fw-la to_o any_o roman_a catholic_n prince_n who_o will_v not_o be_v through_o pa●ed_n in_o obey_v the_o precept_n of_o bigoted_a priest_n against_o heretic_n and_o to_o this_o effect_n run_v the_o clamour_n of_o the_o action_n of_o such_o bigot_n either_o you_o must_v go_v our_o pace_n to_o heaven_n and_o travel_n by_o our_o map_n see_v with_o our_o eye_n and_o let_v we_o ride_v you_o when_o we_o will_v and_o make_v you_o ride_v over_o your_o heretical_a subject_n or_o we_o will_v precipitate_v you_o to_o the_o devil_n i_o mention_v it_o before_o out_o of_o de_fw-fr ossat_n that_o it_o be_v know_v at_o rome_n that_o queen_n anne_n the_o wife_n to_o king_n james_n have_v some_o inclination_n to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o she_o be_v pervert_v to_o it_o in_o some_o measure_n by_o some_o of_o the_o romish_a priest_n who_o be_v then_o as_o since_o insolent_o over_o officious_a to_o tempt_v prince_n to_o change_v their_o faith_n and_o though_o none_o of_o our_o history_n mention_n any_o thing_n of_o her_o be_v a_o papist_n or_o incline_v to_o be_v so_o yet_o de_fw-fr ossat_n as_o i_o say_v relate_v how_o villeroy_n suppose_v she_o to_o have_v turn_v papist_n but_o our_o historian_n unanimous_o mention_v one_o thing_n that_o she_o be_v design_v as_o well_o as_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o other_o to_o be_v blow_v up_o by_o the_o gun-powder-treason_n a_o thing_n that_o may_v give_v one_o who_o turn_v son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n cause_n to_o say_v mallem_fw-la esse_fw-la herodis_fw-la porcum_fw-la quam_fw-la filium_fw-la no_o doubt_n but_o the_o mind_n of_o any_o popish_a prince_n come_v out_o of_o the_o cool_a and_o sweet_a air_n of_o a_o benign_a and_o rational_a religion_n to_o that_o of_o such_o a_o torrid_a zone_n and_o shambles_n of_o man_n flesh_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n present_v will_v be_v often_o in_o his_o thought_n travel_v back_o to_o that_o religion_n than_o the_o pry_a world_n can_v know_v but_o the_o gentleman_n my_o friend_n be_v not_o any_o way_n tempt_v in_o point_n of_o honour_n to_o delay_v his_o return_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o he_o late_o mention_v to_o i_o his_o wish_n of_o the_o speedy_a arrival_n of_o your_o lordship_n paper_n tell_v i_o that_o possible_o he_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v both_o gainer_n thereby_o and_o that_o i_o shall_v gain_v the_o victory_n and_o he_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o he_o will_v never_o account_v those_o priest_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o missionary_n of_o christ_n who_o if_o their_o doctrine_n be_v refuse_v shall_v instead_o of_o shake_v off_o the_o dust_n of_o their_o foot_n in_o any_o house_n reduce_v it_o to_o ash_n and_o further_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v less_o absurd_a and_o extravagant_a to_o wish_v there_o be_v no_o religion_n
oxford_n antiquity_n say_v to_o be_v dr._n bate_v the_o late_a eminent_a physician_n in_o p._n 49_o estimate_n that_o the_o revenue_n of_o king_n queen_n bishop_n dean_n and_o chapter_n and_o delinquent_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o usurper_n be_v almost_o one_o moiety_n of_o the_o kingdom_n beside_o many_o rich_a office_n &c_n &c_n and_o as_o to_o the_o multiplicity_n of_o office_n then_o a_o very_a ingenious_a pamphlet_n write_v in_o those_o day_n call_v the_o city_n alarm_n with_o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o excise_n mention_n in_o p._n 33._o that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o more_o than_o 200,000_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la be_v then_o consume_v by_o superfluous_a officer_n which_o by_o the_o way_n sufficient_o show_v the_o ill_a managery_n of_o the_o public_a treasure_n in_o those_o day_n and_o though_o i_o have_v put_v the_o rate_n of_o the_o heir_n of_o such_o above_o that_o of_o common_a inexpert_n yet_o i_o be_o not_o without_o hope_n that_o possible_o some_o what_o like_o a_o sort_n of_o experience_n that_o many_o of_o those_o heir_n have_v from_o the_o late_a history_n and_o traditional_a account_n have_v of_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o people_n have_v blow_v away_o that_o mighty_a balance_n of_o land_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o unjust_a possessor_n and_o all_o their_o model_n of_o government_n build_v thereon_o and_o of_o many_o of_o their_o ancestor_n who_o have_v by_o their_o sword_n acquire_v ample_a share_n of_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o church_n and_o cavalier_n estate_n grow_v ashamed_a of_o their_o unjust_a victory_n and_o the_o yoke_n they_o have_v bring_v upon_o themselves_o and_o the_o kingdom_n and_o afraid_a of_o their_o estate_n and_o liberty_n not_o be_v ensureable_a under_o a_o fluctuate_a military_a oligarchy_n think_v it_o the_o best_a of_o their_o game_n to_o aspire_v with_o their_o all_o to_o the_o foot_n of_o their_o lawful_a sovereign_n and_o to_o be_v his_o restorer_n without_o capitulation_n may_v incline_v a_o considerable_a part_n of_o such_o and_o who_o be_v not_o desperate_a in_o their_o fortune_n and_o have_v perhaps_o inherit_v the_o blessi_n of_o their_o ancestor_n penitence_n by_o their_o peaceable_a moral_n to_o make_v such_o a_o exception_n in_o this_o case_n as_o may_v confirm_v the_o rule_n and_o make_v they_o according_a to_o the_o expression_n before_o use_v become_v sound_a part_n of_o the_o state._n another_o momentous_a thing_n can_v but_o be_v obvious_a to_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o considerate_a among_o they_o and_o all_o order_n or_o party_n of_o man_n here_o that_o if_o the_o divest_v the_o unjust_a proprietor_n of_o about_o half_a the_o land_n of_o england_n by_o the_o necessary_a course_n of_o the_o law_n at_o the_o king_n restoration_n do_v in_o make_v so_o many_o person_n and_o their_o dependent_n pauper_n and_o useless_a in_o the_o improvement_n of_o the_o land_n and_o many_o to_o be_v nuisance_n in_o it_o as_o troublesome_a solicitor_n and_o barrettor_n and_o many_o likewise_o to_o withdraw_v to_o our_o foreign_a plantation_n and_o to_o our_o insula_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la call_v ireland_n unavoidable_o make_v the_o price_n of_o our_o land_n sink_v to_o the_o proportion_n it_o have_v since_o do_v that_o if_o any_o son_n of_o belial_n and_o disloyal_a person_n shall_v be_v ever_o able_a by_o a_o new_a commotion_n to_o introduce_v the_o old_a confusion_n among_o we_o and_o dispossess_v the_o proprietor_n of_o about_o half_a our_o land_n as_o former_o that_o england_n itself_o will_v turn_v ireland_n and_o our_o land_n perhaps_o be_v valuable_a but_o at_o ten_o year_n purchase_n and_o though_o the_o experts_n now_o in_o be_v among_o we_o be_v comparative_o few_o yet_o be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o loyal_a part_n of_o they_o so_o easy_a to_o demonstrate_v to_o their_o vicinage_n every_o where_o the_o dreadful_a inconvenience_n of_o essay_v to_o mend_v the_o world_n by_o war_n that_o one_o harvy_n can_v not_o more_o easy_o among_o the_o judicious_a propagate_v a_o general_a notion_n of_o the_o circulation_n of_o the_o blood_n then_o may_v a_o thousand_o of_o these_o show_n to_o million_o of_o other_o the_o impious_a folly_n of_o blood_n guiltiness_n again_o encircle_v our_o land_n and_o especial_o when_o all_o our_o blood_n and_o our_o treasure_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v preserve_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o realm_n in_o a_o conjuncture_n that_o have_v put_v christendom_n in_o procinctu_fw-la and_o therefore_o it_o be_v but_o according_a to_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n that_o in_o such_o a_o season_n the_o generality_n of_o people_n mind_n here_o shall_v manifest_v such_o a_o abhorrence_n of_o both_o the_o irish_a and_o english_a in_o 41_o and_o that_o the_o religion-trade_n which_o have_v we_o at_o its_o foot_n be_v now_o at_o we_o if_o it_o shall_v again_o struggle_v to_o get_v uppermost_a as_o former_o be_v to_o expect_v from_o so_o many_o to_o find_v the_o salute_n of_o the_o rise_a blow_n and_o as_o i_o love_v to_o think_v of_o these_o thing_n without_o asperity_n or_o offer_v the_o least_o violence_n to_o the_o sacredness_n of_o the_o great_a establish_v amnesty_n so_o do_v i_o observe_v the_o same_o inclination_n to_o be_v very_o prevalent_a among_o the_o weighty_a person_n of_o the_o several_a party_n the_o smallness_n of_o the_o number_n of_o person_n now_o live_v that_o want_v that_o amnesty_n make_v man_n general_o concur_v in_o not_o esteem_v it_o ta●ti_fw-la to_o wish_v it_o break_v but_o though_o most_o of_o our_o former_a empirical_a state-physician_n be_v cover_v with_o earth_n their_o error_n be_v not_o and_o people_n seem_v general_o sensible_a that_o both_o the_o present_a and_o in_o likelihood_n the_o future_a state_n of_o england_n will_v not_o allow_v of_o political_a physician_n try_v more_o experiment_n on_o we_o and_o particular_o the_o former_a churlish_a one_o that_o succeed_v ill_o and_o especial_o in_o a_o conjuncture_n when_o nature_n be_v by_o necessity_n lead_v we_o to_o a_o convalescence_n as_o in_o boccalines_n politic_a touchstone_n where_o the_o monarchy_n of_o spain_n be_v represent_v throw_v her_o physician_n out_o of_o the_o window_n and_o apollo_n desire_v to_o know_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o she_o tell_v he_o how_o about_o 40_o year_n ago_o she_o ask_v counsel_n of_o her_o physician_n he_o prescribe_v she_o a_o tedious_a and_o chargeable_a purge_n of_o divers_a oil_n of_o holy_a league_n of_o insurrection_n of_o people_n of_o rebellion_n of_o cautery_n and_o other_o very_a painful_a medicine_n that_o have_v waste_v and_o weaken_v her_o spirit_n and_o that_o he_o prescribe_v just_o such_o another_o purge_v as_o before_o be_v therefore_o throw_v out_o at_o window_n so_o will_v such_o purge_n and_o such_o purger_n as_o we_o be_v trouble_v with_o forty_o year_n ago_o be_v here_o deserve_o deal_v with_o now_o how_o ridiculous_a will_v any_o demagogue_n now_o appear_v that_o shall_v in_o a_o english_a parliament_n harangue_n it_o against_o supply_v the_o king_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o sir_n john_n elliot_n and_o mr._n pym_n do_v 4_o to_o caroli_n who_o then_o as_o rushworth_n collection_n tell_v we_o move_v in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o not_o to_o yield_v the_o king_n tonnage_n and_o poundage_n till_o they_o have_v first_o settle_v religion_n touch_v the_o point_n of_o ariminianism_n they_o may_v as_o well_o have_v move_v that_o the_o king_n may_v have_v no_o money_n till_o they_o have_v find_v out_o the_o longitude_n and_o likewise_o discover_v the_o quadrature_n of_o the_o circle_n and_o they_o by_o that_o motion_n will_v have_v insure_v to_o he_o the_o name_n of_o pochi-dinari_a that_o my_o lord_n herbert_n in_o his_o harry_n the_o 8_o the_o say_v be_v give_v to_o maximilian_n the_o emperor_n for_o his_o fame_a want_n of_o money_n but_o that_o wantonness_n of_o popularity_n do_v show_v the_o worse_a in_o those_o two_o great_a demagogue_n of_o their_o age_n for_o the_o ingratitude_n it_o carry_v with_o it_o they_o move_v so_o in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o as_o they_o do_v so_o soon_o after_o the_o great_a royal_a concession_n as_o to_o the_o petition_n of_o right_n and_o may_v well_o excuse_v the_o great_a earl_n of_o strafford_n then_o quit_v their_o company_n but_o i_o shall_v here_o observe_v to_o your_o lordship_n that_o after_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n viz._n 3_o jacobi_fw-la the_o parliament_n give_v he_o three_o subsidy_n and_o six_o fifteenth_n and_o ten_o of_o the_o laity_n and_o four_o subsidy_n of_o the_o clergy_n all_o which_o by_o estimation_n amount_v to_o 453000_o l._n and_o it_o be_v but_o just_a in_o they_o then_o so_o to_o supply_v the_o crown_n after_o the_o detection_n of_o that_o conspiracy_n because_o it_o appear_v by_o several_a examination_n that_o if_o it_o have_v take_v effect_n a_o association_n of_o foreign_a roman_a catholic_n prince_n by_o a_o solemn_a oath_n
papal_a world_n must_v be_v surfeit_v with_o it_o at_o last_o and_o indeed_o the_o experience_n popish_a politician_n have_v have_v of_o their_o success_n by_o divide_v we_o former_o as_o be_v say_v will_v tempt_v they_o to_o omit_v other_o course_n and_o to_o persist_v still_o in_o that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o now_o general_o see_v through_o it_o be_v in_o viridi_fw-la observantiâ_fw-la how_o our_o famous_a great_a usurper_n cromwell_n who_o found_v his_o dominion_n in_o pretend_a grace_n or_o religion_n and_o be_v afraid_a of_o thunder_n from_o every_o cloud_n of_o enthusiasm_n he_o see_v over_o his_o head_n and_o be_v awe_v likewise_o by_o the_o serene_a and_o rational_a religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v no_o other_o game_n to_o play_v in_o order_n to_o the_o divide_v the_o several_a religionary_a party_n but_o by_o in_o some_o manner_n tolerate_v all_o according_a to_o the_o mode_n of_o julian's_n politics_n the_o papist_n be_v the_o first_o who_o miscall_v any_o of_o our_o english_a prince_n by_o the_o name_n of_o julian_n and_o that_o they_o do_v in_o the_o case_n of_o king_n james_n as_o appear_v in_o his_o learned_a apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n print_v anno_fw-la 1609._o where_o be_v much_o concern_v for_o his_o be_v so_o term_v and_o that_o too_o by_o no_o mean_a a_o man_n then_o bellarmine_n he_o do_v with_o great_a strength_n there_o large_o prove_v that_o that_o name_n be_v congruous_a as_o his_o word_n be_v in_o no_o point_n save_o one_o that_o be_v that_o julian_n be_v a_o emperor_n and_o i_o a_o king_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o very_a impotent_a humour_n of_o calumny_n in_o any_o protestant_n to_o call_v any_o one_o a_o apostate_n or_o especial_o the_o apostate_n mere_o for_o the_o alteration_n of_o his_o judgement_n in_o some_o controvertible_a point_n of_o faith_n between_o papist_n and_o protestant_n and_o which_o be_v denominable_a by_o the_o name_n of_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v a_o great_a folly_n to_o cherish_v immoderate_a fear_n that_o any_o english_a prince_n who_o possible_o may_v happen_v in_o such_o controvertible_a point_n to_o change_v his_o persuasion_n in_o religion_n will_v if_o a_o papist_n attempt_v á_o la_fw-fr julian_n to_o plant_v division_n among_o his_o subject_n by_o the_o instrument_n of_o religion_n for_o that_o their_o be_v keep_v undivided_a and_o all_o of_o a_o piece_n will_v be_v essential_a to_o the_o life_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o the_o state_n of_o christendom_n be_v likely_a to_o continue_v nor_o be_v it_o probable_a that_o any_o such_o prince_n can_v ever_o think_v in_o the_o single_a course_n of_o his_o life_n to_o make_v this_o nation_n all_o of_o a_o piece_n or_o unite_v under_o the_o persuasion_n of_o popery_n for_o if_o any_o one_o will_v suppose_v it_o possible_a that_o in_o the_o reign_v of_o three_o or_o four_o successive_a prince_n of_o that_o persuasion_n the_o nature_n of_o thing_n may_v be_v so_o far_o force_v as_o that_o million_o of_o man_n may_v by_o artifice_n be_v make_v to_o abandon_v a_o rational_a religion_n and_o one_o that_o be_v frame_v to_o support_v the_o government_n for_o one_o that_o be_v not_o so_o such_o one_o prince_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v acquire_v the_o gift_n of_o long_a life_n that_o ante-diluvian_a patriarch_n have_v and_o to_o extend_v the_o span_n of_o his_o life_n to_o that_o of_o three_o or_o four_o prince_n it_o be_v a_o know_a rule_n relate_v to_o mathematics_n that_o there_o be_v no_o reconcile_a time_n and_o force_n and_o he_o who_o will_v have_v one_o man_n do_v as_o much_o as_o four_o must_v allow_v he_o to_o be_v as_o long_o a_o do_v it_o as_o four_o one_o after_o another_o but_o the_o survive_a experts_n have_v see_v too_o much_o of_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o shake_n all_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a polity_n by_o a_o protestant_a usurper_n ever_o to_o wish_v for_o another_o in_o any_o case_n and_o to_o have_v the_o balance_n of_o christendom_n again_o break_v and_o the_o kingdom_n be_v again_o divide_v to_o preserve_v his_o family_n interest_n and_o to_o keep_v that_o entire_a which_o be_v notorious_a to_o have_v happen_v under_o the_o aforesaid_a usurper_n both_o of_o religion_n and_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o name_n of_o julian_n be_v most_o proper_o applicable_a to_o he_o or_o any_o protestant_a usurper_n and_o who_o will_v be_v necessitate_v to_o follow_v he_o in_o his_o track_n of_o politic_n and_o the_o notion_n of_o which_o ammianus_n marcellinus_n lib._n 22._o set_v we_o right_o in_o where_o he_o show_v that_o julian_n that_o he_o may_v weaken_v the_o power_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o he_o fear_v know_v no_o way_n so_o easy_a as_o to_o endeavour_v to_o do_v it_o by_o itself_o and_o therefore_o recall_v the_o bishop_n banish_v by_o constantius_n and_o give_v they_o and_o the_o people_n leave_v to_o be_v christian_n though_o himself_o be_v a_o heathen_a nullas_fw-la infestas_fw-la hominibus_fw-la bestias_fw-la ut_fw-la sunt_fw-la sibi_fw-la ferales_fw-la plerique_fw-la christianorum_fw-la expertus_fw-la i._n e._n because_o he_o have_v never_o find_v beast_n so_o cruel_a to_o one_o another_o as_o he_o have_v most_o christian_n and_o therefore_o as_o he_o travel_v through_o palestine_n cry_v out_o o_o marcomanni_n o_o quadi_n o_o sarmatae_n tandem_fw-la alios_fw-la vobis_fw-la inquietiores_fw-la inveni_fw-la thus_o do_v the_o usurper_n promote_v the_o animosity_n among_o religionary_a party_n and_o be_v enforce_v thereby_o to_o weaken_v the_o kingdom_n to_o strengthen_v himself_o some_o indulgence_n he_o show_v to_o congregation_n where_o divine_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n worship_n god_n in_o the_o way_n of_o its_o church_n yet_o permit_v none_o to_o have_v benefice_n but_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o presbyterian_a persuasion_n general_o and_o among_o such_o and_o the_o independent_n he_o distribute_v his_o donative_n of_o preferment_n in_o the_o university_n and_o he_o take_v care_n that_o no_o form_n of_o church_n discipline_n or_o particular_a church_n may_v preponderate_v by_o his_o be_v a_o member_n therein_o he_o make_v some_o layman_n and_o some_o divine_n differ_v in_o judgement_n about_o presbytery_n and_o independency_n to_o be_v tryer_n of_o minister_n fitness_n for_o live_n and_o commissioned_n many_o ignorant_a layman_n in_o the_o several_a county_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o minister_n for_o their_o continue_v in_o live_n the_o press_n be_v open_a to_o all_o unlearned_a wrangler_n about_o religion_n many_o of_o his_o military_a preferment_n he_o place_v on_o anabaptist_n and_o do_v suffer_v many_o of_o the_o fifth-monarthy_a religionary_n to_o disturb_v the_o apocolypse_n and_o the_o world_n thereby_o give_v freedom_n to_o muggleton_n the_o impostor_n to_o set_v up_o for_o a_o prophet_n and_o one_o of_o the_o two_o witness_n and_o be_v a_o particular_a patron_n to_o manass_v be_v israel_n and_o in_o treaty_n with_o he_o here_o to_o introduce_v the_o jew_n and_o tolerate_v biddel_n congregat_v church_n of_o socinian_o further_a likewise_o so_o far_o give_v a_o occasion_n to_o mr._n marvel_n write_v a_o book_n then_o of_o the_o growth_n of_o popery_n that_o mr._n pryn_n in_o his_o book_n call_v a_o true_a and_o perfect_a narrative_n of_o what_o be_v do_v etc._n etc._n print_a in_o the_o year_n 1659._o say_v in_o p._n 57th_o that_o sir_n kenelm_n digby_n be_v his_o particular_a favourite_n and_o lodge_v by_o he_o at_o whitehall_n that_o maurice_n conry_n provincial_a of_o the_o franciscan_n in_o england_n and_o other_o priest_n have_v his_o protection_n under_o hand_n and_o seal_n and_o that_o he_o suspend_v penal_a law_n and_o execution_n against_o popish_a priest_n and_o jesuit_n though_o sometime_o take_v in_o their_o pontificalibus_fw-la at_o mass_n and_o be_v soon_o after_o release_v and_o that_o he_o endeavour_v to_o stop_v the_o bill_n against_o papist_n the_o very_a morning_n he_o be_v to_o pass_v it_o by_o his_o whitehall_n instrument_n who_o move_v its_o suspension_n for_o a_o time_n as_o not_o suit_v with_o the_o then_o present_a foreign_a correspondency_n against_o who_o it_o be_v carry_v by_o 88_o vote_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v send_v up_o with_o the_o rest_n then_o pass_v and_o that_o he_o write_v to_o mazarine_a to_o excuse_v his_o pass_v that_o bill_n as_o be_v carry_v on_o by_o a_o violent_a presbyterian_a party_n much_o against_o his_o will_n and_o that_o yet_o it_o shall_v not_o hurt_v they_o tho_o pass_v etc._n etc._n and_o i_o suppose_v a_o author_n more_o profound_a in_o his_o observation_n than_o mr._n pryn_n do_v in_o a_o loyal_a pamphlet_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1656._o call_v a_o letter_n from_o a_o true_a and_o lawful_a member_n of_o parliament_n &c_n &c_n and_o general_o conceive_v to_o be_v write_v by_o the_o late_a lord_n hollis_n there_o in_o p._n 58._o and_o the_o follow_v one_o charge_n cromwell_n home_o for_o the_o
the_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n and_o thereby_o the_o lay_n on_o the_o taker_n a_o obligation_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n that_o be_v to_o outlast_v the_o life_n of_o the_o king_n and_o without_o any_o distinction_n of_o the_o religion_n true_a or_o pretend_a of_o such_o heir_n and_o successor_n of_o the_o obligation_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n arise_v from_o those_o oath_n mr._n pryn_n in_o his_o concordia_fw-la discors_fw-la print_v in_o the_o year_n 1659._o have_v write_v useful_o but_o because_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o late_a fermentation_n many_o pamphlet_n have_v be_v write_v pro_fw-la and_o c●n_n of_o the_o political_a part_n of_o the_o question_n relate_v to_o a_o popish_a successor_n and_o none_o that_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o have_v profess_o write_v of_o the_o casuistical_a part_n thereof_o and_o particular_o with_o relation_n to_o those_o oath_n and_o because_o i_o have_v hear_v that_o in_o some_o discourse_n about_o the_o same_o in_o some_o good_a company_n where_o the_o obligation_n by_o those_o oath_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n in_o point_n of_o conscience_n have_v be_v assert_v some_o good_a man_n have_v be_v blunder_v but_o of_o their_o apprehend_v the_o same_o by_o mistake_v the_o say_n in_o the_o civil-law_n that_o nemo_fw-la est_fw-la haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la and_o likewise_o some_o thing_n obvious_a in_o the_o common-law_n and_o i_o do_v fear_v that_o it_o may_v thence_o grow_v a_o common_a and_o vulgar_a error_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o obligation_n result_v from_o those_o oath_n and_o that_o as_o a_o supine_n neglect_v of_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n to_o find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o same_o will_v be_v very_o culpable_a so_o that_o a_o serious_a and_o dispassionate_a represent_v the_o same_o will_v to_o all_o man_n that_o regard_v the_o weight_n of_o a_o oath_n be_v very_o acceptable_a i_o have_v with_o as_o much_o recollection_n of_o th●ught_n as_o i_o can_v fai●ly_o and_o impartial_o write_v my_o opinion_n thereof_o casuistical_o and_o shall_v very_o short_o send_v it_o your_o lordship_n for_o your_o perusal_n and_o indeed_o as_o i_o shall_v not_o think_v i_o deal_v candid_o with_o any_o person_n of_o the_o popish_a persuasion_n if_o i_o shall_v be_v severe_a to_o he_o before_o i_o have_v a_o moral_a certainty_n of_o his_o have_v imbibe_v any_o of_o the_o principle_n imputable_a to_o popery_n that_o may_v be_v call_v unmoral_a or_o inhuman_a so_o it_o will_v especial_o seem_v to_o i_o somewhat_o like_o the_o draw_n on_o a_o naked_a man_n for_o a_o protestant_n at_o this_o time_n to_o write_v for_o the_o divest_v any_o popish_a prince_n of_o his_o legal_a property_n when_o few_o or_o no_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n either_o do_v or_o dare_v for_o fear_v of_o offend_v the_o pope_n draw_v their_o pen_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o such_o his_o property_n without_o respect_n to_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n he_o may_v hold_v what_o the_o pope_n do_v to_o obstruct_v king_n james_n succession_n i_o have_v mention_v and_o what_o favour_n any_o protestant_a prince_n can_v hope_v for_o from_o the_o holy_a see_v may_v appear_v out_o of_o de_fw-fr ossat_n letter_n to_o villeroy_n in_o the_o year_n 1598._o book_n four_o where_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o artifices_fw-la use_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o make_v he_o believe_v that_o if_o harry_n the_o four_o recover_v the_o marquisate_n of_o salusium_n it_o will_v be_v command_v by_o hugonot_n he_o thereupon_o advise_v the_o king_n to_o declare_v the_o contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o add_v i_o will_v not_o interpose_v to_o write_v this_o to_o you_o if_o i_o do_v not_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o this_o court_n hold_v that_o to_o maintain_v the_o catholic_a religion_n in_o a_o country_n and_o to_o preserve_v it_o from_o heresy_n his_o holiness_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o deprive_v the_o true_a lord_n and_o possessor_n of_o it_o and_o give_v it_o away_o to_o any_o other_o who_o have_v no_o property_n therein_o and_o who_o shall_v be_v more_o able_a and_o willing_a there_o to_o preserve_v the_o catholic_a faith._n i_o meet_v with_o some_o passage_n late_o in_o a_o pamphlet_n that_o concern_v the_o succession_n where_o the_o author_n have_v liberal_o descant_v on_o the_o word_n heir_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n say_v as_o i_o will_v not_o take_v up_o arm_n without_o the_o king_n commission_n nor_o enter_v into_o any_o association_n to_o commence_v in_o his_o life_n time_n against_o his_o consent_n etc._n etc._n so_o any_o one_o by_o who_o or_o for_o who_o any_o resignation_n of_o his_o majesty_n power_n shall_v be_v extort_a shall_v not_o reign_v over_o i_o and_o there_o be_v another_o very_a course_n expression_n there_o apply_v to_o a_o very_a fine_a person_n and_o one_o so_o every_o way_n true_o great_a that_o every_o age_n do_v not_o produce_v viz._n that_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o con_v little_a thanks_o to_o george_n earl_n of_o hallifax_n etc._n etc._n but_o according_a to_o the_o licence_n of_o speech_n use_v by_o that_o author_n i_o shall_v venture_v to_o declare_v that_o where_o ever_o i_o have_v a_o suffrage_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o a_o parliament-man_n if_o any_o candidate_n shall_v tell_v i_o that_o he_o serve_v in_o the_o place_n before_o and_o be_v for_o a_o exclusion_n bill_n rather_o than_o the_o king_n offer_v and_o without_o advise_v with_o his_o country_n will_v have_v any_o one_o of_o the_o royal_a line_n seclude_v from_o his_o title_n to_o the_o throne_n on_o the_o account_n of_o any_o religionary_a tenet_n for_o our_o english_a antiquity_n afford_v footstep_n of_o parliament-man_n on_o some_o weighty_a matter_n consult_v their_o town_n or_o county_n that_o choose_v they_o such_o a_o one_o if_o i_o can_v help_v it_o shall_v never_o represent_v i_o and_o moreover_o he_o who_o do_v not_o with_o acknowledgement_n of_o honour_n and_o gratitude_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o hallifax_n mention_v that_o bill_n that_o he_o bring_v into_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n in_o order_n to_o the_o extermination_n of_o popery_n that_o i_o speak_v of_o before_o and_o with_o it_o lodge_v in_o our_o statute_n book_n that_o man_n if_o i_o can_v help_v it_o shall_v never_o represent_v i_o i_o be_o not_o so_o rash_a in_o my_o effort_n against_o future_a time_n as_o perhaps_o that_o author_n be_v and_o can_v cite_v a_o great_a name_n for_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o representative_n advise_v with_o those_o they_o represent_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n to_o the_o state_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o lord_n viscount_n fal●land_n secretary_n of_o state_n in_o a_o print_a draught_n of_o a_o speech_n concern_v episcopacy_n etc._n etc._n say_v p._n 4._o mr._n speaker_n though_o we_o be_v trust_v by_o those_o that_o send_v we_o in_o case_n wherein_o their_o opinion_n be_v unknown_a yet_o true_o if_o i_o know_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o my_o town_n i_o doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o those_o that_o trust_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v follow_v my_o own_o opinion_n against_o they_o and_o thereupon_o his_o lordship_n advise_v the_o house_n of_o commons_o not_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o episcopacy_n and_o at_o least_o to_o stay_v till_o the_o next_o session_n and_o consult_v more_o particular_o with_o their_o elector_n about_o it_o and_o if_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o that_o great_a man_n any_o of_o our_o contender_n against_o popery_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o consult_v with_o those_o they_o represent_v about_o the_o meeting_n those_o royal_a and_o frank_n offer_v with_o hearty_a embrace_n they_o will_v perhaps_o have_v find_v the_o generality_n of_o those_o they_o represent_v zealous_a for_o their_o so_o do_v and_o if_o they_o that_o perhaps_o with_o a_o well_o intend_a gallantry_n of_o courage_n and_o scorn_n of_o popery_n throw_v out_o the_o bill_n that_o come_v from_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o year_n 1677_o shall_v ask_v those_o they_o represent_v if_o they_o do_v not_o now_o wish_v those_o bill_n have_v then_o pass_v into_o law_n i_o believe_v they_o will_v say_v they_o do_v and_o if_o they_o be_v ask_v whether_o that_o bill_n i_o mention_v before_o that_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o earl_n of_o hallifax_n have_v not_o likewise_o pass_v into_o a_o law_n i_o believe_v they_o will_v wish_v it_o have_v i_o presume_v not_o to_o inveigh_v against_o any_o of_o our_o late_a loyal_a parliament_n whatever_o slip_v in_o politics_n be_v by_o any_o there_o make_v or_o arbitrary_a vote_n there_o pass_v against_o particular_a person_n and_o be_o as_o impatient_v when_o i_o hear_v any_o inveigh_v against_o our_o representative_n who_o in_o the_o contention_n of_o popery_n exert_v all_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o faculty_n of_o their_o mind_n what_o
water_n and_o the_o sea_n and_o like_o that_o they_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v eat_v towards_o the_o root_n of_o the_o power_n of_o sovereign_n but_o while_o the_o mountain_n of_o their_o power_n be_v bottom_v on_o natural_a justice_n all_o the_o prey_v of_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o people_n there_o make_v but_o the_o promontory_n more_o sure_o guard_v and_o appear_v more_o majestic_a as_o well_o as_o be_v more_o inaccessible_a and_o of_o this_o sea_n of_o the_o people_n as_o i_o will_v wish_v every_o prince_n in_o the_o just_a observance_n of_o the_o municipal_a law_n of_o his_o country_n to_o espouse_v the_o interest_n as_o much_o as_o the_o duke_n of_o venice_n do_v his_o adriatic_n yet_o shall_v i_o see_v one_o for_o fear_n of_o popular_a envy_n or_o obloquy_n forbear_v to_o administer_v justice_n and_o to_o follow_v the_o real_a last_o dictate_v of_o his_o practical_a understanding_n right_o inform_v and_o servy_o give_v up_o himself_o to_o obey_v any_o man_n pretend_a one_o i_o shall_v think_v it_o to_o be_v as_o extravagant_a a_o madness_n as_o hydrophoby_n or_o fear_v of_o water_n on_o the_o bite_n of_o a_o mad_a dog_n and_o while_o a_o sovereign_n observe_v the_o immutable_a principle_n of_o justice_n he_o may_v acquiesce_v in_o the_o result_v of_o providence_n and_o expect_v that_o the_o trouble_v of_o the_o water_n may_v be_v like_o that_o of_o the_o angel_n before_o the_o time_n of_o heal_a or_o a_o conjuncture_n of_o the_o people_n be_v possess_v of_o heal_a principle_n and_o in_o fine_a a_o king_n when_o he_o find_v the_o water_n of_o popular_a discontent_n more_o tumultuous_a by_o religionary_a party_n as_o two_o sea_n meet_v as_o for_o example_n papist_n and_o presbyterian_o he_o may_v depend_v on_o his_o be_v near_o land_n that_o be_v always_o near_o where_o two_o sea_n meet_v and_o let_v every_o prince_n be_v assure_v that_o it_o be_v not_o only_a popery_n but_o atheism_n in_o masquerade_n to_o do_v a_o unjust_a act_n to_o support_v religion_n i_o know_v that_o it_o have_v be_v incident_a to_o some_o good_a man_n to_o strain_v pretence_n beyond_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n for_o justice_n cause_n of_o war_n abroad_o in_o the_o world_n to_o advance_v the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o thus_o in_o the_o last_o age_n the_o crown_n and_o populace_n of_o england_n being_n cluttered_a with_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o palatinate_n the_o prince_n palatine_n have_v here_o many_o wellwisher_n to_o his_o title_n for_o the_o bohemian_a crown_n and_o rushworth_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o one_a vol._n ann._n 1619._o that_o he_o be_v elect_v king_n of_o bohemia_n crave_v advice_n of_o his_o father_n in_o law_n the_o king_n of_o great_a britain_n touch_v the_o acceptation_n of_o that_o royal_a dignity_n and_o that_o when_o this_o affair_n be_v debate_v in_o the_o king_n council_n archbishop_n abbot_n who_o infirmity_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o consultation_n write_v his_o mind_n to_o sir_n r._n nauton_n the_o king_n secretary_n viz._n that_o god_n have_v set_v up_o this_o prince_n his_o majesty_n son_n in_o law_n as_o a_o mark_n of_o honour_n throughout_o all_o christendom_n to_o propagate_v the_o gospel_n and_o protect_v the_o oppress_v that_o for_o his_o own_o part_n he_o dare_v not_o but_o give_v advice_n to_o follow_v where_o god_n lead_v apprehend_v the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o this_o and_o that_o of_o hungary_n that_o by_o the_o p●ece_n and_o piece_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o give_v their_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n shall_v leave_v the_o whore_n and_o make_v her_o desolate_a that_o he_o be_v satisfy_v in_o conscience_n that_o the_o bohemian_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o reject_v that_o proud_a and_o bloody_a man_n who_o have_v take_v a_o course_n to_o make_v that_o kingdom_n not_o elective_a in_o take_v it_o by_o donation_n of_o another_o etc._n etc._n and_o conclude_v let_v all_o our_o spirit_n be_v gather_v up_o to_o animate_v this_o business_n that_o the_o world_n may_v take_v notice_n that_o we_o be_v awake_v when_o god_n call_v rushworth_n say_v that_o king_n james_n disavow_v the_o act_n of_o his_o accept_n that_o crown_n and_o will_v never_o grace_v his_o son_n in_o law_n with_o the_o style_n of_o his_o new_a dignity_n and_o in_o king_n charles_n the_o first_o time_n in_o the_o common-prayer_n relate_v to_o the_o royal_a family_n the_o prayer_n run_v for_o frederick_n prince_n palatine_n of_o the_o rhine_n and_o the_o lady_n elizabeth_n his_o wife_n yet_o in_o the_o assembly_n directory_n afterward_o as_o to_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o royal_a family_n that_o lady_n elizabeth_n be_v style_v queen_n of_o bohemia_n but_o our_o prince_n not_o be_v satisfy_v it_o seem_v that_o the_o palatine_a of_o the_o rhine_n have_v a_o just_a title_n to_o the_o bohemian_a crown_n think_v it_o not_o just_a for_o they_o to_o assert_v it_o however_o that_o archbishop_n abbot_n the_o achilles_z of_o the_o protestant_n here_o in_o his_o generation_n think_v that_o the_o english_a crown_n ought_v to_o descend_v in_o its_o true_a line_n of_o succession_n whatever_o profession_n of_o religion_n any_o member_n thereof_o shall_v own_v appear_v out_o of_o mr._n pryn_n introduction_n to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o canterbury_n trial_n where_o have_v in_o p._n 3._o mention_v the_o article_n send_v by_o king_n james_n to_o his_o ambassador_n in_o spain_n in_o order_n to_o the_o match_n with_o the_o infanta_n and_o that_o one_o be_v that_o the_o child_n of_o this_o marriage_n shall_v no_o way_n be_v compel_v or_o constrain_v in_o point_n of_o conscience_n of_o religion_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n that_o their_o title_n shall_v be_v prejudice_v in_o case_n it_o shall_v please_v god_n that_o they_o shall_v prove_v catholic_n and_o in_o p._n 6._o cite_v the_o same_o in_o latin_a out_o of_o the_o french_a mercury_n tom._n 9_o as_o offer_a from_o england_n quod_fw-la liberi_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la matrimonio_fw-la oriundi_fw-la non_fw-la cogentur_fw-la neque_fw-la compellentur_fw-la in_o causâ_fw-la religionis_fw-la vel_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la neque_fw-la leges_fw-la contra_fw-la catholicos_fw-la attingent_a illos_fw-la &_o in_o casu_fw-la siquis_fw-la eorum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la catholicus_n non_fw-la ob_fw-la hoc_fw-la perdet_fw-la jus_o successionis_fw-la in_o regna_fw-la &_o dominia_fw-la magnae_fw-la britanniae_fw-la and_o afterward_o in_o p._n 7._o mention_v it_o as_o a_o additional_a article_n offer_v from_o england_n that_o the_o king_n of_o great_a britain_n and_o prince_n of_o wales_n shall_v bind_v themselves_o by_o oath_n for_o the_o observance_n of_o the_o article_n and_o that_o the_o privy_a council_n shall_v sign_n the_o same_o under_o their_o hand_n etc._n etc._n he_o in_o p._n 43._o mention_n archbishop_n abbot_n among_o other_o privy-counseller_n according_o sign_v those_o article_n and_o further_o in_o p._n 46._o mention_n the_o oath_n of_o the_o privy-council_n for_o the_o observance_n of_o those_o article_n as_o far_o as_o lay_v in_o they_o and_o have_v before_o give_v a_o account_n not_o only_o of_o archbishop_n abbot_n but_o of_o other_o magna_fw-la nomina_fw-la of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n in_o the_o council_n that_o sign_v the_o same_o and_o particular_o of_o john_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n keeper_n of_o the_o great_a seal_n lionel_n earl_n of_o middlesex_n lord_n high_a treasurer_n of_o england_n henry_n viscount_n mandevile_n lord_n precedent_n of_o the_o council_n edward_z earl_n of_o worcester_z lord_n privy-seal_n lewis_n duke_n of_o richmond_n and_o lennox_n lord_n high_a steward_n of_o the_o household_n james_n marquis_n of_o hamilton_n james_n earl_n of_o carlisle_n lancelot_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n oliver_z viscount_n grandison_n arthur_n baron_fw-fr chichester_n of_o belfast_n lord_n treasurer_n of_o ireland_n sir_n thomas_n edmond_n kt._n treasurer_n of_o the_o household_n sir_n john_n suckling_n comptroller_n of_o the_o household_n sir_n george_n calvert_n and_o sir_n edward_n conway_n principal_a secretary_n of_o state_n sir_n richard_n weston_n chancellor_n of_o the_o exchequer_n sir_n julius_n caesar_n master_n of_o the_o roll_n who_o have_v do_v the_o same_o mr._n pryn_n afterward_o in_o p._n 69._o have_v mention_v the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o spanish_a match_n give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o bring_n on_o the_o marriage_n with_o france_n and_o say_v it_o be_v conclude_v in_o the_o life_n of_o king_n james_n the_o article_n concern_v religion_n be_v the_o same_o almost_o verbatim_o with_o those_o former_o agree_v on_o in_o the_o spanish_a treaty_n and_o so_o easy_o condescend_v to_o without_o much_o debate_n and_o refer_v there_o to_o the_o rot._n tractationis_fw-la &_o ratificationis_fw-la matrimonii_fw-la inter_fw-la dom._n carolum_fw-la regem_fw-la &_o dom._n henrettam_n mariam_n sororem_fw-la regis_fw-la franc._n 1_o car._n in_o the_o roll_n the_o demagogue_n of_o the_o old_a long_a parliament_n who_o make_v such_o loud_a outcry_n of_o the_o danger_n of_o popery_n
hold_v that_o he_o still_o retain_v and_o aught_o to_o retain_v entire_o and_o solid_o all_o that_o aforesaid_a supreme_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o church_n of_o this_o dominion_n in_o as_o ample_a a_o manner_n as_o if_o he_o be_v the_o most_o christian_n prince_n in_o the_o world._n if_o therefore_o any_o shall_v think_v it_o reasonable_a to_o pronounce_v that_o the_o substantial_a interest_n of_o protestancy_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v stare_v moribus_fw-la antiquis_fw-la virisque_fw-la i_o have_v point_v they_o to_o archbishop_n abbot_n to_o bishop_n andrews_n the_o antagonist_n to_o bellarmine_n under_o the_o weight_n of_o who_o argument_n bellarmine_n fall_v in_o the_o certamen_fw-la and_o to_o other_o of_o our_o old_a counsellor_n of_o state_n and_o particular_o arthur_n baron_n chichester_n of_o belfast_n lord_n treasurer_n of_o ireland_n your_o lordship_n noble_a godfather_n in_o comparison_n of_o many_o of_o who_o when_o we_o look_v on_o some_o of_o our_o great_a politic_a and_o protestant-would-be's_a of_o this_o age_n and_o who_o will_v let_v none_o be_v protestant_n but_o themselves_o we_o may_v well_o cry_v out_o in_o qualem_fw-la paulatim_fw-la fluximus_fw-la urbem_fw-la and_o have_v show_v how_o those_o great_a confessor_n by_o their_o overt_a act_n provide_v against_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n without_o the_o bar_v any_o of_o the_o royal_a line_n from_o the_o inherit_v the_o crown_n and_o when_o i_o see_v some_o of_o our_o till_o of_o late_a unheard_a of_o statist_n so_o eager_a to_o dispossess_v the_o land_n of_o the_o evil_a spirit_n of_o popery_n by_o illegal_a mean_n and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o great_a name_n of_o protestancy_n as_o a_o spell_n i_o fancy_n to_o myself_o that_o they_o may_v be_v call_v on_o by_o it_o as_o the_o jewish_a exorcit_n be_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o take_v on_o they_o to_o call_v over_o they_o which_o have_v evil_a spirit_n the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v we_o adjure_v you_o by_o jesus_n who_o paul_n preach_v the_o evil_a spirit_n answer_v and_o say_v jesus_n i_o know_v and_o paul_n i_o know_v but_o who_o be_v you_o thus_o to_o any_o who_o shall_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n possible_a to_o secure_v english_a man_n continue_v protestant_n but_o by_o break_v in_o on_o the_o succession_n in_o the_o right_a line_n may_v it_o be_v return_v by_o popery_n the_o old_a protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o know_v and_o the_o old_a nonconformist_a protestant_n and_o the_o old_a covenant_a presbyterian_a protestant_n i_o know_v who_o know_v otherwise_o to_o secure_a protestancy_n and_o likewise_o the_o french_a protestant_n i_o know_v who_o never_o practise_v any_o outrage_n against_o the_o great_a harry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n government_n after_o he_o have_v leave_v protestancy_n but_o who_o be_v you_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o protestant_n in_o france_n so_o vast_o numerous_a in_o his_o time_n which_o any_o one_o may_v imagine_v who_o consider_v that_o the_o most_o careful_a think_v man_n in_o that_o realm_n make_v they_o now_o to_o be_v two_o million_o and_o that_o a_o judicious_a french_a author_n have_v write_v that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v late_o compute_v they_o to_o be_v above_o a_o million_o and_o a_o half_a have_v show_v the_o world_n a_o great_a example_n of_o their_o protestant_a loyalty_n in_o that_o they_o be_v ready_a as_o cheerful_o to_o obey_v their_o prince_n when_o he_o be_v a_o papist_n as_o when_o they_o serve_v he_o in_o set_a battle_n against_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a league_n and_o the_o majority_n of_o his_o noble_n and_o of_o his_o metropolis_n and_o of_o the_o chief_a citadel_n in_o his_o realm_n after_o they_o see_v he_o go_v to_o mass_n they_o never_o call_v he_o julian_n or_o lampoon_v he_o in_o hymn_n or_o demur_v to_o his_o beard_n or_o have_v any_o fear_n or_o jealousy_n of_o his_o touch_v a_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n nor_o threaten_v he_o that_o the_o galilean_a will_v foil_v he_o and_o no_o language_n can_v have_v more_o true_o express_v their_o sentiment_n then_o that_o of_o the_o famous_a pierre_n du_fw-fr moulin_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n nous_fw-fr sommes_fw-fr prest_n d'_fw-fr exposer_n nos_fw-la vie_v pour_fw-fr la_fw-fr defence_n de_fw-fr nos_fw-la rois_fw-fr contre_fw-fr qui_fw-fr que_fw-fr ce_fw-fr soit_fw-fr fust-il_a de_fw-fr nostre_fw-fr religion_n quiconque_fw-la feroit_fw-fr autrement_fw-fr ne_fw-fr defendroit_fw-fr point_fw-fr la_fw-fr religion_n mais_fw-fr serviroit_fw-fr son_fw-fr ambition_n &_o attireroit_fw-fr un_fw-fr grand_fw-fr blame_n sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr verity_n de_fw-fr l'_fw-fr evangile_a i_o e._n we_o be_v ready_a to_o expose_v our_o life_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o king_n against_o whosoever_o it_o be_v although_o of_o our_o own_o religion_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v do_v otherwise_o shall_v not_o defend_v religion_n but_o serve_v his_o own_o ambition_n and_o will_v draw_v a_o great_a reproach_n on_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n consider_v the_o indelible_a character_n of_o harry_n the_o 4_o this_o protestant_n good_a nature_n his_o subject_n of_o that_o religion_n do_v prepare_v their_o thought_n to_o be_v lachrymist_n for_o he_o rather_o than_o themselves_o and_o know_v that_o by_o his_o coversion_n to_o popery_n if_o in_o this_o life_n only_o he_o have_v hope_n he_o be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a and_o that_o his_o absolution_n leave_v he_o only_o in_o the_o state_n of_o a_o crown_v victim_n i_o have_v before_o mention_v the_o apology_n for_o that_o scholar_n of_o the_o jesuit_n john_n chastel_n which_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o harry_n the_o 4_o the_o be_v by_o that_o assassin_n not_o only_o wound_v very_o fair_o according_a to_o the_o language_n of_o the_o brother_n of_o the_o blade_n but_o in_o the_o style_n of_o their_o honour_n according_a to_o the_o jesuit_n moral_n very_o heroical_o and_o as_o the_o content_n of_o cap._n 1._o part._n 3_o d_o of_o the_o apology_n express_v it_o actus_fw-la castelli_n heroicus_fw-la est_fw-la in_o substantiâ_fw-la suâ_fw-la he_o moreover_o tell_v we_o in_o plain_a term_n part._n 2._o cap._n 7._o that_o excommunicatio_fw-la quae_fw-la ●b_fw-la haeresim_fw-la irrogatur_fw-la remedium_fw-la potius_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quam_fw-la excommunicato_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o that_o excommunication_n for_o heresy_n do_v quite_o take_v away_o any_o regal_a right_n and_o in_o cap._n 8._o before_o mention_v viz._n neque_fw-la etiam_fw-la à_fw-la papa_n absolutus_fw-la rex_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la he_o ask_v quod_fw-la si_fw-la quaeratur_fw-la quid_fw-la ergo_fw-la absolutio_fw-la praestet_fw-la si_fw-la jus_o amissum_fw-la non_fw-la redeat_fw-la and_o it_o follow_v quòd_fw-la si_fw-la absolutus_fw-la impaeniten_n existat_fw-la effectus_fw-la alius_fw-la non_fw-la foret_fw-la quam_fw-la be_v de_fw-la quo_fw-la supra_fw-la ita_fw-la si_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la velit_fw-la paenitentia_fw-la foret_fw-la vera_fw-la certe_fw-la effectus_fw-la propterea_fw-la non_fw-la exig●us_fw-la esset_fw-la futurus_fw-la utpote_fw-la in_o spiritualibus_fw-la remittendo_fw-la illum_fw-la in_o ecclesiae_fw-la gremium_fw-la &_o regni_fw-la caelorum_fw-la capacem_fw-la reddendo_fw-la temporalium_fw-la vero_fw-la respectu_fw-la quicquid_fw-la illa_fw-la operari_fw-la posset_n foret_fw-la ad_fw-la reddendum_fw-la eum_fw-la compotem_fw-la novi_fw-la juris_fw-la &_o per_fw-la electionem_fw-la auferendo_fw-la impedimentum_fw-la in_o foro_fw-la fori_fw-la quo_fw-la durante_fw-la be_v ille_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n and_o then_o he_o say_v the_o pope_n can_v confer_v such_o new_a right_n to_o the_o same_o kingdom_n on_o he_o for_o that_o it_o depend_v not_o simple_o on_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n so_o to_o do_v and_o in_o fine_a make_v the_o right_a to_o the_o crown_n irrevocable_o devolve_v on_o the_o next_o person_n capable_a who_o have_v a_o right_a to_o it_o quum_fw-la say_v he_o ratum_fw-la sit_fw-la inter_fw-la jurisconsultos_fw-la incapacem_fw-la haberi_fw-la ut_fw-la mortuum_fw-la &_o non_fw-la impedire_fw-la sequentes_fw-la in_o the_o 3d_o chapter_n of_o the_o 2d_o part_v namely_o that_o henry_n of_o bourbon_n can_v be_v call_v king_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o pretend_a conversion_n the_o vile_a apologist_n deride_v the_o conversion_n of_o this_o great_a king_n and_o labour_n to_o prove_v by_o fifteen_o instance_n that_o after_o his_o conversion_n he_o do_v favour_v the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n more_o than_o ever_o and_o particular_o by_o his_o observance_n of_o his_o league_n and_o agreement_n with_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n and_o other_o heretic_n ut_fw-la experientia_fw-la say_v he_o per_fw-la novas_fw-la ejus_fw-la actiones_fw-la locupletissime_fw-la testatur_fw-la etenim_fw-la primò_fw-la faederum_fw-la pacta_fw-la cum_fw-la haereticis_fw-la sarta_fw-la tectaque_fw-la seruat_fw-la quibus_fw-la ut_fw-la hactenus_fw-la nondum_fw-la renunciavit_fw-la ita_fw-la neque_fw-la dum_fw-la renunciare_fw-la cogitat_fw-la secundò_fw-la ipsi_fw-la haeritici_fw-la in_o germaniâ_fw-la genevae_n &_o alibi_fw-la ejus_fw-la actiones_fw-la comprobant_fw-la tertio_fw-la contemnit_fw-la catholicos_fw-la &_o promovet_fw-la haereticos_fw-la illos_fw-la repudiat_fw-la atque_fw-la rejicit_fw-la hos_fw
crescent_n there_o shall_v so_o powerful_o d●ive_v away_o the_o cross._n and_o thus_o too_o when_o italy_n be_v overrun_v with_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n partly_o of_o the_o pagan_a and_o part_o of_o the_o arrian_n belief_n paganism_n and_o arrianism_n be_v then_o dotard_n tree_n in_o the_o world_n the_o seed_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n fall_v on_o they_o from_o the_o pious_a and_o learned_a hand_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a do_v easy_o work_v through_o they_o and_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o they_o and_o likewise_o of_o our_o english_a nation_n about_o the_o year_n 600_o from_o heathenish_a idolatry_n the_o great_a celebration_n be_v due_a to_o he_o and_o no_o wonder_n if_o the_o papacy_n then_o yield_v so_o good_a fruit_n do_v then_o cast_v so_o venerable_a a_o shade_n in_o the_o world._n but_o that_o tree_n afterward_o be_v observe_v to_o degenerate_a and_o decay_v within_o six_o year_n as_o the_o general_a observation_n of_o our_o apocalyptick_a man_n be_v valeat_fw-la quantum_fw-la valere_fw-la possit_fw-la and_o who_o thus_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o aetates_fw-la antichristi_fw-la viz._n nascentis_fw-la in_o bonifacio_n circa_fw-la ann._n 606_o juveniliter_fw-la exultantis_fw-la in_o 2._o consilio_fw-la nicaeno_n anno._n 787._o regnantis_fw-la in_o hildebrando_n &_o successoribus_fw-la post_fw-la an._n 1075._o triumphantis_fw-la in_o leone_n decimo_fw-la ann._n 1517._o vltima_fw-la senescentis_fw-la est_fw-la and_o say_v that_o short_o after_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v consumptive_a and_o the_o decay_n of_o it_o be_v obvious_a to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o gaze_a world_n and_o the_o branch_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinistick_n tenet_n appear_v through_o its_o side_n the_o quiet_a and_o gentle_a order_n of_o capuchin_n be_v invent_v for_o the_o pray_n for_o its_o growth_n and_o flourish_a in_o the_o year_n 1530._o and_o ten_o year_n afterward_o the_o active_a fiery_a order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n be_v invent_v to_o extirpate_v the_o man_n that_o wish_v ill_o to_o its_o growth_n and_o after_o that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o oratory_n be_v set_v up_o to_o extol_v and_o preach_v up_o the_o tree_n but_o nature_n will_v not_o be_v extirpate_v the_o potent_a seminal_a virtue_n of_o the_o rational_a religion_n drop_v on_o the_o tree_n of_o the_o other_o have_v pass_v its_o root_n through_o and_o through_o and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v transubstantiate_v itself_o through_o they_o and_o root_v itself_o deep_a both_o into_o the_o intellectual_a world_n and_o into_o state_n and_o kingdom_n and_o their_o law_n and_o will_v in_o time_n probable_o leave_v not_o one_o fiber_n or_o capillamentum_fw-la of_o the_o root_n of_o the_o irreligionary_a part_n of_o the_o tenet_n of_o popery_n remain_v in_o nature_n and_o show_v the_o world_n that_o the_o schisma_fw-la anglicanum_n that_o sander_n and_o other_o papist_n cry_v out_o of_o as_o so_o unnatural_a be_v a_o mere_a natural_a scissure_n or_o rupture_n of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o decay_a tree_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o come_v to_o pass_v from_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v cast_v thereon_o and_o such_o a_o natural_a scissure_n have_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v through_o the_o side_n and_o root_n of_o protestant_a recusancy_n and_o the_o seed_n that_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o nonconformist_n probable_o guide_v by_o jesuit_n have_v be_v lay_v on_o the_o royal-oak_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o they_o vain_o think_v decay_v be_v in_o effect_n throw_v away_o and_o as_o the_o old_a prophetic_a fiction_n represent_v it_o that_o every_o great_a tree_n include_v a_o certain_a tutelar_a genius_n and_o still_o live_v with_o it_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o nature_n itself_o be_v the_o tutelar_a genius_n of_o that_o plant_n of_o renown_n that_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n expression_n we_o may_v call_v the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o will_v ever_o live_v with_o it_o the_o number_n of_o our_o nonconformist_n be_v daily_o decay_v and_o the_o name_n of_o their_o tenet_n will_v probable_o be_v in_o a_o short_a time_n forget_v we_o be_v tell_v in_o townsend_n collection_n that_o sir_n walter_n raleigh_n mention_v it_o in_o one_o of_o the_o parliament_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n viz._n in_o anno_fw-la 1593._o that_o there_o be_v then_o near_o 20000_o brownist_n in_o england_n a_o number_n somewhat_o near_o as_o great_a as_o that_o of_o the_o papist_n to_o be_v estimate_v from_o the_o bishop_n survey_n the_o name_n of_o those_o schismatic_n be_v evaporate_v and_o their_o tenet_n be_v not_o more_o know_v or_o inquire_v into_o by_o the_o populace_n then_o be_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o bardesanistae_fw-la the_o aquei_n the_o abelonitae_n the_o messaliani_n and_o some_o other_o as_o be_v remark_v concern_v the_o late_a nonconforming_a divine_n not_o have_v breed_v up_o their_o son_n to_o nonconformity_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v much_o observable_a among_o the_o lay-dissenters_a and_o that_o their_o child_n do_v not_o general_o imbibe_n their_o parent_n principle_n of_o dissentership_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_n the_o gross_a of_o their_o number_n always_o consist_v chief_o of_o artisan_n and_o retail-trader_n in_o corporation_n where_o before_o the_o king_n restoration_n they_o be_v numerous_a and_o natural_o hate_v popery_n and_o its_o parade_n of_o ceremony_n can_v but_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o sharp_a hatred_n against_o the_o same_o in_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o by_o law_n establish_v and_o how_o vast_o such_o professor_n do_v every_o where_o over-shoot_a the_o dissenter_n in_o number_n and_o how_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v as_o natural_o and_o with_o as_o much_o ease_n pierce_v through_o the_o body_n of_o they_o and_o dissolve_v its_o root_n as_o do_v the_o seed_n of_o a_o oak_n often_o grow_v in_o the_o body_n of_o a_o decay_a willow_n the_o time_n be_v know_v in_o the_o reign_v of_o queen_n elizabeth_n king_n james_n and_o king_n charles_n the_o first_o and_o likewise_o since_o till_o within_o these_o late_a year_n that_o some_o statesman_n when_o their_o court-interest_n be_v decay_v and_o in_o danger_n of_o extirpation_n can_v by_o wheadle_a dissenter_n into_o a_o belief_n that_o they_o will_v plant_v their_o persuasion_n in_o the_o church_n plant_v themselves_o the_o better_a in_o the_o state_n but_o human_o speak_v such_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n will_v come_v here_o no_o more_o and_o the_o seem_a eradication_n of_o such_o a_o religion-trade_n in_o church_n and_o state_n be_v a_o strong_a indication_n that_o our_o heavenly_a father_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o god_n of_o nature_n never_o plant_v it_o but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o law_n in_o be_v to_o extirpate_v any_o dissenter_n schism_n or_o separation_n from_o our_o church_n or_o to_o mulct_n or_o excommunicate_v the_o obstinate_a separater_n or_o if_o any_o of_o those_o law_n be_v never_o execute_v as_o through_o the_o vigilance_n of_o our_o magistrate_n they_o have_v be_v yet_o be_v there_o one_o apparent_a way_n whereby_o the_o conformist_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v now_o as_o easy_o lessen_v their_o number_n and_o consequent_o extirpate_v their_o potency_n every_o where_o as_o they_o can_v frame_v a_o thought_n or_o resolution_n to_o do_v it_o and_o by_o no_o other_o engine_n than_o that_o with_o which_o our_o university_n of_o oxford_n and_o cambridge_n batter_v the_o contumacy_n of_o particular_a townsman_n namely_o not_o by_o excommunicate_v but_o by_o discommune_v they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o forbid_v the_o scholar_n to_o trade_n with_o they_o their_o own_o forbearance_n of_o buy_v from_o conformist_n the_o ware_n that_o those_o of_o their_o own_o sect_n do_v sell_v may_v reasonable_o invite_v such_o a_o retaliation_n while_o heretofore_o they_o be_v so_o numerous_a in_o england_n their_o congregat_v church_n help_v many_o of_o the_o mean_a artist_n and_o poor_a trader_n thereof_o with_o the_o pretence_n of_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n to_o force_v a_o trade_n by_o combination_n among_o themselves_o and_o their_o do_v it_o then_o turn_v to_o some_o account_n but_o will_v now_o be_v altogether_o insignificant_a in_o this_o wane_n of_o their_o number_n and_o thus_o without_o sweat_n or_o blood_n or_o one_o information_n bring_v on_o penal_a statute_n or_o the_o least_o occasion_n or_o colour_n for_o their_o outcry_n of_o persecution_n may_v the_o many_o million_o of_o conformist_n here_o humble_a the_o comparative_a handful_n of_o popish_a and_o protestant_n recusant_n both_o in_o corporation_n and_o out_o of_o they_o too_o when_o they_o please_v and_o in_o effect_n reduce_v they_o to_o the_o condition_n the_o many_o empiric_n in_o our_o land_n will_v be_v in_o if_o they_o only_o sell_v physic_n to_o one_o another_o i_o affect_v not_o to_o be_v a_o propounder_n of_o any_o new_a law_n or_o of_o the_o execution_n of_o any_o old_a that_o
his_o oration_n that_o est_fw-la aliquid_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la oporteat_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la licet_fw-la and_o when_o he_o in_o his_o office_n render_v it_o to_o be_v inhonestum_fw-la injuriam_fw-la alteri_fw-la non_fw-la propulsare_fw-la and_o when_o the_o rule_n of_o law_n can_v tell_v we_o that_o non_fw-la omne_fw-la quod_fw-la licet_fw-la honestum_fw-la est_fw-la and_o when_o seneca_n can_v contemn_v the_o innocence_n as_o poor_a that_o be_v not_o more_o than_o the_o law_n require_v and_o thereupon_o say_v qua●to_fw-la latiùs_fw-la officiorum_fw-la patet_fw-la quam_fw-la juris_fw-la regula_n multa_fw-la pietas_fw-la humanitas_fw-la liberalitas_fw-la justitia_fw-la fides_n exigunt_fw-la quae_fw-la omne_fw-la extra_fw-la publicas_fw-la tabulas_fw-la sunt_fw-la and_o when_o that_o st._n paul_n have_v ennoble_v the_o moral_a office_n of_o christian_n by_o enjoin_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n the_o practice_n of_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v true_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v honest_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v just_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v pure_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v lovely_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v of_o good_a report_n etc._n etc._n it_o may_v well_o be_v expect_v that_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o a_o christian_a shall_v prevail_v on_o christian_n not_o to_o attempt_v the_o compass_v of_o any_o thing_n by_o a_o new_a law_n contrary_a to_o what_o they_o have_v by_o their_o oath_n promise_v to_o defend_v and_o contrary_a to_o the_o old_a fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o have_v thus_o far_o proceed_v my_o 8_o conclusion_n shall_v be_v that_o our_o obligation_n thus_o relate_v both_o to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n do_v clear_o arise_v from_o those_o oath_n without_o any_o condition_n on_o he_o or_o their_o part_n to_o be_v perform_v and_o particular_o without_o any_o respect_n have_v to_o what_o religion_n they_o shall_v profess_v we_o know_v that_o juramentum_fw-la limitatè_fw-la praestitum_fw-la limitatum_fw-la producit_fw-la consensum_fw-la &_o effectum_fw-la but_o it_o be_v likewise_o as_o notorious_a that_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o limitation_n no_o if_n or_o and_o be_v in_o these_o oath_n and_o therefore_o that_o know_a rule_n of_o non_fw-la est_fw-la distinguendum_fw-la ubi_fw-la lex_fw-la non_fw-la distinguit_fw-la must_v here_o take_v place_n in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n sanderson_n in_o his_o four_o lecture_n say_v if_o two_o oblige_v themselves_o mutual_o in_o promise_n of_o different_a kind_n or_o not_o at_o the_o same_o time_n or_o otherwise_o without_o mutual_a respect_n faith_n violate_v by_o the_o one_o absolve_v not_o the_o other_o obligation_n but_o each_o be_v bind_v to_o stand_v to_o his_o oath_n though_o the_o other_o have_v not_o perform_v his_o part_n for_o example_n a_o king_n simple_o and_o without_o respect_n to_o the_o allegiance_n of_o his_o subject_n swear_v to_o administer_v his_o government_n righteous_o and_o according_a to_o law._n the_o subject_n at_o another_o time_n simple_o and_o without_o respect_n to_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o prince_n swear_v allegiance_n and_o due_a obedience_n to_o he_o they_o be_v both_o bind_v faithful_o to_o perform_v their_o several_a duty_n nor_o will_v the_o king_n be_v absolve_v from_o his_o oath_n if_o subject_n shall_v not_o perform_v their_o due_a obedience_n nor_o subject_n from_o they_o though_o the_o king_n shall_v turn_v from_o the_o path_n of_o justice._n mr._n nigh_o do_v therefore_o in_o a_o print_a treatise_n of_o his_o very_a well_o for_o this_o purpose_n cite_v bishop_n bilson_n and_o say_v that_o bishop_n bilson_n a_o great_a searcher_n into_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o king_n give_v this_o as_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o oath_n viz._n the_o oath_n as_o say_v the_o bishop_n express_v not_o king_n duty_n to_o god_n but_o we_o to_o they_o as_o they_o must_v be_v obey_v when_o they_o join_v with_o truth_n so_o must_v they_o be_v endure_v when_o they_o fall_v into_o error_n which_o side_n soever_o they_o take_v either_o obedience_n to_o their_o will_n or_o submission_n to_o their_o sword_n be_v their_o due_n by_o god_n law._n and_o though_o some_o ill_a anti-papists_a have_v ridicule_v passive_a obedience_n after_o they_o have_v give_v the_o cautio_fw-la juratoria_fw-la against_o their_o own_v the_o doctrine_n of_o resistance_n mr._n nigh_o do_v very_o particular_o in_o p._n 138_o of_o that_o book_n inveigh_v against_o that_o doctrine_n and_o say_v nor_o if_o they_o be_v able_a i._n e._n to_o resist_v be_v it_o lawful_a for_o a_o church_n to_o compel_v by_o the_o sword_n more_o than_o the_o magistrate_n may_v by_o the_o key_n or_o what_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o sacred_a function_n uzza_fw-mi err_v in_o the_o latter_a and_o peter_n in_o the_o former_a the_o primitive_a rule_n and_o practice_n be_v this_o be_v persecute_v in_o one_o city_n to_o fly_v into_o another_o and_o pray_v that_o their_o flight_n may_v not_o be_v in_o the_o winter_n i_o have_v read_v a_o manuscript_n book_n of_o mr._n nigh_o call_v a_o discourse_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o supremacy_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n in_o dispense_n with_o the_o penalty_n thereof_o where_o he_o assert_n throughout_o the_o legality_n of_o his_o majesty_n be_v declaration_n of_o indulgence_n and_o the_o book_n be_v write_v profess_o for_o that_o purpose_n and_o he_o there_o do_v very_o rational_o inculcate_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o exclusion_n as_o in_o his_o other_o book_n he_o do_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o resistance_n and_o say_v that_o civil_a right_n and_o claim_n and_o temporal_a thing_n be_v the_o immediate_a and_o intrinsic_n concern_v and_o interest_n of_o all_o state_n dominium_fw-la non_fw-la fundatur_fw-la in_o gratiâ_fw-la the_o just_a claim_n of_o a_o prince_n may_v not_o be_v interrupt_v upon_o account_n he_o be_v of_o this_o or_o that_o religion_n or_o persuasion_n nor_o may_v a_o subject_n be_v just_o banish_v imprison_a confiscate_v or_o ruin_v on_o the_o mere_a account_n of_o religion_n or_o because_o his_o conscience_n be_v not_o cast_v into_o the_o same_o mould_n with_o the_o prince_n or_o present_a establishment_n it_o be_v popery_n to_o deny_v allegiance_n to_o a_o prince_n or_o protection_n to_o a_o subject_a upon_o the_o account_n of_o any_o such_o difference_n it_o be_v therefore_o no_o wonder_n that_o our_o ancestor_n frame_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n will_v have_v no_o principle_n of_o popery_n therein_o favour_v by_o a_o side_n wind_n which_o according_a to_o mr._n ny_n sense_n must_v have_v happen_v have_v there_o be_v any_o distinguish_n reserve_v or_o limitation_n or_o restriction_n in_o the_o oath_n respect_v the_o religion_n of_o our_o prince_n and_o because_o many_o man_n have_v be_v in_o this_o conjuncture_n of_o time_n tempt_v to_o strain_v their_o oath_n and_o their_o conscience_n by_o excessive_a fear_n and_o jealousy_n relate_v to_o religion_n and_o as_o if_o god_n can_v not_o govern_v the_o world_n but_o by_o prince_n and_o their_o subject_n be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o because_o mr._n ny_n judgement_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n among_o many_o of_o our_o religionary_a dissenter_n i_o shall_v here_o insert_v somewhat_o more_o out_o of_o that_o manuscript_n of_o he_o that_o fall_v under_o this_o consideration_n and_o which_o be_v indeed_o write_v with_o great_a weight_n and_o authority_n of_o reason_n and_o worthy_a the_o writer_n great_a ability_n he_o have_v there_o put_v a_o question_n relate_v to_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v the_o great_a concern_v of_o a_o nation_n and_o to_o the_o trust_n of_o dispense_n with_o the_o penalty_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n say_v in_o answer_n to_o it_o i_o endeavour_v to_o unfold_v 1._o in_o what_o sense_n religion_n be_v the_o concern_v of_o the_o state._n 2._o the_o nature_n of_o this_o trust_n and_o as_o to_o the_o first_o he_o say_v the_o moment_n and_o weight_n of_o a_o matter_n in_o our_o deliberation_n have_v its_o proportion_n as_o either_o under_o a_o absolute_a or_o respective_a consideration_n wisdom_n be_v better_a than_o riches_n in_o itself_o absolute_o but_o not_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o support_n of_o this_o present_a life_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o divine_a thing_n be_v better_a than_o to_o know_v the_o virtue_n of_o drug_n and_o plant_n but_o not_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o study_n of_o physic_n so_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o better_a part_n in_o itself_o consider_v but_o in_o its_o respective_a consideration_n as_o to_o the_o family_n of_o a_o particular_a person_n or_o community_n of_o man_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o civil_a affair_n there_o be_v other_z qualification_n and_o inducement_n of_o great_a consequence_n and_o more_o direct_o and_o immediate_o tend_v to_o the_o be_v or_o well-being_n thereof_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mistake_n in_o this_o great_a concernment_n i_o further_o distinguish_v there_o come_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o religion_n the_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n that_o be_v
quemjure_v naturali_fw-la dominiove_n rerum_fw-la aut_fw-la provinciarum_fw-la and_o as_o i_o have_v already_o refer_v to_o the_o instance_n of_o abraham_n in_o oblige_v himself_o at_o once_o to_o abimelech_n and_o his_o son_n and_o his_o son_n son_n i_o shall_v here_o cast_v my_o eye_n on_o abimelech_n as_o a_o idolater_n and_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o aforesaid_a father_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o by_o who_o bosom_n heaven_n be_v represent_v and_o who_o have_v the_o honour_n do_v he_o by_o holy_a writ_n to_o be_v call_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o chronological_a writer_n of_o memorable_a thing_n to_o be_v call_v inventor_n foederum_fw-la and_o most_o worthy_a of_o he_o as_o be_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n it_o be_v to_o be_v the_o inventor_n of_o alliance_n and_o federal_a friendship_n with_o man_n do_v make_v that_o first_o alliance_n with_o a_o idolatrous_a prince_n and_o with_o his_o whole_a race_n of_o idolater_n in_o prospect_n if_o then_o it_o be_v a_o allow_v judge_v point_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o party_n that_o religion_n be_v out_o of_o the_o case_n when_o one_o prince_n do_v free_o protect_v another_o and_o his_o subject_n of_o different_a religion_n it_o may_v be_v thence_o very_a well_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a and_o just_a and_o ought_v not_o to_o any_o to_o seem_v strange_a that_o subject_n who_o owe_v a_o natural_a allegiance_n to_o their_o prince_n be_v indispensable_o bind_v to_o pay_v the_o same_o to_o they_o and_o to_o defend_v all_o their_o regal_a right_n without_o any_o regard_n to_o the_o religion_n their_o prince_n may_v profess_v and_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n that_o prince_n may_v oft_o protect_v their_o subject_n who_o differ_v in_o religion_n from_o they_o in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o their_o right_n i_o grant_v that_o some_o popish_a prince_n abroad_o have_v rivet_v the_o inquisition_n into_o their_o politic_n and_o be_v perhaps_o of_o harsh_a or_o bigoted_a disposition_n have_v out_o of_o a_o regret_n against_o heretic_n expel_v infidel_n from_o their_o territory_n and_o by_o which_o expulsion_n such_o prince_n have_v be_v sufficient_a loser_n in_o this_o world_n and_o a_o case_n of_o which_o nature_n be_v particular_o refer_v to_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rhodes_n in_o his_o history_n of_o harry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n who_o account_v the_o moor_n in_o spain_n to_o be_v about_o a_o million_o mention_n the_o hard_a usage_n they_o there_o find_v and_o that_o before_o they_o be_v thence_o expulse_v they_o apply_v to_o harry_v the_o four_o for_o protection_n once_o when_o but_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o afterward_o when_o king_n of_o france_n and_o a_o roman_n catholic_n and_o who_o then_o do_v no_o more_o doubt_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o protect_v they_o than_o while_o he_o be_v a_o protestant_n however_o he_o forbear_v on_o political_a ground_n only_o to_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o nor_o when_o he_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v any_o of_o his_o heretical_a subject_n use_v by_o he_o with_o any_o hardship_n on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o hard_a word_n of_o heresy_n and_o i_o believe_v his_o notion_n of_o the_o practicableness_n of_o a_o orderly_a political_a government_n without_o reference_n to_o religionary_a difference_n be_v the_o same_o with_o his_o great_a minister_n villeroy_n i_o have_v mention_v how_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr ossat_n tell_v the_o pope_n that_o if_o his_o holiness_n be_v king_n of_o france_n at_o that_o time_n that_o harry_n the_o four_o be_v he_o will_v show_v the_o huguenot_n the_o same_o favour_n that_o harry_n the_o four_o do_v and_o shall_v observe_v it_o that_o in_o the_o famous_a print_a oration_n of_o cardinal_n perron_n make_v to_o the_o 3d_o estate_n or_o commonalty_n of_o france_n though_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o lateran_n council_n and_o own_v and_o assert_v it_o to_o be_v a_o general_a one_o as_o strenuous_o as_o the_o learned_a bishop_n of_o lincoln_n have_v since_o do_v and_o faith_n when_o that_o council_n intend_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o extirpation_n and_o root_n out_o of_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o albigenses_n it_o ordain_v that_o the_o prince_n who_o shall_v become_v contemner_n of_o the_o council_n that_o condemn_v the_o albigenses_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o obligation_n of_o their_o subject_n fidelity_n to_o they_o yet_o he_o than_o add_v and_o this_o i_o remember_v not_o for_o a_o example_n to_o disturb_v or_o trouble_v the_o public_a peace_n or_o tranquillity_n see_v the_o heretic_n be_v here_o in_o so_o great_a a_o number_n as_o that_o they_o make_v a_o notable_a part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o estate_n etc._n etc._n here_o than_o i_o have_v name_v two_o cardinal_n of_o as_o great_a real_a eminence_n as_o any_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v ever_o show_v who_o hold_v it_o lawful_a for_o a_o catholic_n prince_n to_o protect_v his_o protestant_a subject_n notwithstanding_o the_o lateran_n council_n but_o what_o tacitus_n speak_v of_o the_o duty_n of_o common_a man_n namely_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o penetrate_v abditos_fw-la principis_fw-la sensus_fw-la nay_o be_v particular_o apply_v to_o their_o religion_n and_o the_o apostle_n caution_n of_o who_o be_v thou_o that_o judge_v another_o man_n servant_n may_v here_o be_v improve_v by_o say_v who_o be_v thou_o that_o judge_v thy_o natural_a liege_n lord_n and_o particular_o as_o to_o matter_n of_o religion_n wherein_o the_o most_o antimonarchical_a writer_n will_v allow_v they_o accountable_a only_o to_o god._n and_o to_o any_o protestant_n who_o have_v follow_v his_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n have_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o another_o church_n and_o yet_o shall_v censure_v his_o prince_n for_o so_o do_v those_o other_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v just_o applicable_a therefore_o thou_o be_v inexcusable_a o_o man_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o judge_v for_o wherein_o thou_o judge_v another_o thou_o condemne_v thyself_o for_o thou_o that_o judge_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n the_o christian_a religion_n that_o have_v enjoin_v we_o not_o only_o to_o defraud_v and_o injure_v and_o offend_v none_o and_o to_o love_v our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o and_o extend_v that_o neighbourhood_n to_o all_o humane_a kind_n have_v likewise_o command_v we_o to_o honour_n all_o man_n and_o especial_o to_o render_v honour_n to_o who_o honour_n be_v particular_o due_a and_o not_o rash_o to_o judge_v another_o and_o if_o man_n will_v imprint_v on_o their_o mind_n a_o serious_a sense_n of_o the_o moral_a office_n to_o which_o they_o be_v oblige_v by_o virtue_n of_o those_o expression_n they_o will_v soon_o be_v better_o guide_v in_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o obligation_n relate_v to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n without_o be_v tempt_v as_o former_o to_o exclude_v any_o of_o they_o from_o their_o civil_a right_n on_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n aim_n in_o his_o case_n of_o conscience_n do_v well_o descant_v on_o those_o moral_a office_n and_o in_o his_o chapter_n of_o charity_n to_o our_o neighbour_n he_o assign_v some_o particular_a case_n in_o which_o as_o to_o the_o actual_a exercise_n and_o effect_n of_o charity_n one_o be_v to_o love_n his_o neighbour_n more_o than_o himself_o and_o instance_v in_o our_o be_v in_o temporal_a matter_n oblige_v to_o prefer_v public_a person_n to_o ourselves_o and_o say_v that_o all_o be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o public_a person_n concern_v who_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v useful_a to_o the_o realm_n and_o in_o the_o case_n of_o who_o he_o determine_v it_o that_o on_o their_o occasional_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o their_o life_n we_o be_v to_o venture_v we_o be_v we_o not_o then_o when_o we_o may_v without_o the_o peril_n of_o our_o life_n defend_v the_o civil_a right_n of_o a_o heir_n of_o the_o crown_n who_o by_o the_o venture_v his_o life_n have_v support_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o realm_n oblige_v to_o forbear_v exclude_v he_o from_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o birthright_n the_o privilege_n of_o his_o own_v the_o belief_n of_o religionary_a proposition_n though_o differ_v from_o any_o other_o man_n be_v purchase_v for_o he_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o use_v it_o he_o do_v but_o use_v his_o own_o right_n and_o consequent_o injure_v no_o man_n and_o if_o we_o slight_v the_o offer_v his_o own_o blood_n to_o we_o shall_v we_o too_o vilify_v or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v endeavour_v to_o nullify_v in_o his_o case_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o saviour_n aim_n in_o his_o chapter_n de_fw-fr honore_fw-la proximi_fw-la tell_v we_o that_o honour_n according_a to_o the_o common_a notion_n of_o it_o do_v denote_v the_o testification_n of_o the_o excellence_n and_o worth_n of_o any_o one_o and_o that_o such_o testification_n thereof_o can_v appear_v before_o man_n but_o by_o word_n and_o action_n and_o
word_n in_o the_o oath_n although_o it_o be_v a_o common_a sure_a rule_n that_o verba_fw-la ubi_fw-la sunt_fw-la expressa_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la supervacanea_fw-la est_fw-la quaestio_fw-la yet_o i_o shall_v ex_fw-la superabundanti_fw-la choose_v to_o corroborate_v such_o my_o assertion_n by_o lay_v down_o this_o as_o my_o 9th_o and_o last_o conclusion_n that_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v the_o lawgiver_n intention_n to_o bind_v the_o taker_n of_o these_o oath_n not_o only_o to_o bear_v true_a faith_n and_o allegiance_n to_o his_o majesty_n but_o to_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o due_a and_o legal_a course_n of_o descent_n as_o i_o have_v before_o express_v it_o need_v not_o be_v much_o dilate_v on_o that_o relation_n be_v minimae_fw-la entitatis_fw-la but_o maximae_fw-la efficaciae_fw-la and_o that_o liberi_fw-la sunt_fw-la quasi_fw-la part_n &_o appendix_n parentum_fw-la not_o only_a fictione_n juris_fw-la but_o naturâ_fw-la &_o ●ei_fw-la veritate_fw-la and_o that_o in_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o the_o design_v the_o obligation_n to_o arise_v thence_o the_o king_n have_v a_o necessary_a regard_n to_o natural_a affection_n and_o to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n in_o the_o line_n of_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n and_o suitable_o to_o what_o be_v express_v in_o the_o preamble_n of_o the_o statute_n of_o 25_o h._n 8._o c._n 22._o viz._n that_o since_o it_o be_v the_o natural_a inclination_n of_o every_o man_n glad_o and_o willing_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o surety_n of_o both_o his_o title_n and_o succession_n although_o it_o touch_v his_o only_a private_a cause_n we_o therefore_o reckon_v ourselves_o much_o more_o bind_v to_o beseech_v and_o instant_n your_o highness_n to_o foresee_v and_o provide_v for_o the_o present_a surety_n of_o both_o you_o and_o of_o your_o most_o lawful_a succession_n and_o heir_n nor_o need_v it_o be_v much_o insist_v on_o that_o it_o be_v natural_a for_o every_o government_n to_o defend_v and_o preserve_v itself_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o author_n of_o the_o exercitation_n cite_v alsted_n a_o lutheran_n divine_a and_o likewise_o grotius_n and_o dudley_n fenner_n for_o maintain_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o what_o the_o old_a athenian_a famous_a oath_n enjoin_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o its_o polity_n namely_o of_o any_o private_a person_n kill_v any_o usurper_n or_o one_o who_o without_o a_o lawful_a title_n forcible_o invade_v the_o government_n the_o athenian_n have_v several_a oath_n of_o a_o high_a nature_n by_o the_o religion_n of_o which_o they_o tie_v themselves_o to_o defend_v their_o government_n and_o one_o be_v the_o jusjurandum_fw-la epheborum_fw-la which_o they_o take_v when_o 20_o year_n old_a and_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o petitus_fw-la his_o noble_a commentary_n on_o the_o athenian_a law_n and_o part_n of_o which_o as_o render_v by_o he_o into_o latin_a be_v patriam_fw-la liberis_fw-la non_fw-la relinquam_fw-la in_o deteriore_fw-la sed_fw-la potius_fw-la in_o meliore_fw-la statu_fw-la navigabo_fw-la ad_fw-la terram_fw-la eamque_fw-la colam_fw-la quantulacunque_fw-la illa_fw-la sit_fw-la quae_fw-la habenda_fw-la mihi_fw-la tradetur_fw-la parebo_fw-la legibus_fw-la quae_fw-la obtinent_fw-la etc._n etc._n quod_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la leges_fw-la abrogare_fw-la velit_fw-la populo_fw-la non_fw-la sciscente_fw-la minime_fw-la feram_fw-la vindicabo_fw-la autem_fw-la sive_fw-la solus_fw-la sive_fw-la cum_fw-la aliis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la patria_fw-la sacra_fw-la colam_fw-la etc._n etc._n ad_fw-la mortem_fw-la usque_fw-la pro_fw-la nutriciâ_fw-la terrâ_fw-la dimicabo_fw-la but_o this_o oath_n though_o famous_a enough_o be_v not_o the_o famous_a one_o i_o refer_v to_o but_o it_o be_v the_o other_o of_o which_o the_o formula_fw-la be_v set_v down_o in_o petitus_fw-la there_o p._n 232_o 233._o and_o which_o begin_v with_o occidam_fw-la meâ_fw-la ipsius_fw-la manu_fw-la si_fw-la possim_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la everterit_fw-la rempublicam_fw-la atheniensium_fw-la aut_fw-la e●_n eversâ_fw-la magistratum_fw-la gesserit_fw-la in_o posterum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o oath_n of_o so_o high_a and_o strange_a a_o nature_n be_v make_v short_o after_o the_o drive_v out_o the_o thirty_o tyrant_n and_o the_o law_n make_v that_o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la atheniensium_fw-la rempublicam_fw-la evertat_fw-la aut_fw-la eâ_fw-la eversê_fw-la magistratum_fw-la gerat_fw-la atheniensium_fw-la hostess_fw-la esto_fw-la impunèque_fw-la occiditor_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o secure_v their_o government_n forever_o from_o future_a usurpation_n be_v the_o intent_n of_o that_o terrible_a oath_n and_o to_o secure_v the_o government_n of_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n here_o be_v the_o intent_n of_o our_o gentle_a one_o and_o sufficient_o favour_v of_o the_o mansuetudo_fw-la evangelii_n and_o which_o oath_n however_o bind_v the_o loyal_a to_o defend_v the_o government_n with_o their_o life_n do_v yet_o strict_o bind_v to_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o crown_n one_o of_o which_o be_v both_o by_o the_o 13_o of_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o lex_fw-la terrae_fw-la to_o be_v a_o terror_n to_o the_o evil_a and_o to_o bear_v the_o sword._n but_o sir_n e._n coke_n have_v tell_v we_o in_o his_o commentary_n that_o the_o true_a scope_n and_o design_n of_o our_o statute_n law_n be_v oftentimes_o not_o to_o be_v understand_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o age_n when_o the_o particular_a statute_n be_v make_v i_o shall_v look_v back_o on_o the_o conjuncture_n when_o the_o act_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v make_v take_v notice_n that_o by_o many_o particular_a matter_n then_o obvious_a to_o all_o man_n thought_n it_o appear_v worthy_a of_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o government_n then_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o security_n both_o of_o his_o majesty_n and_o of_o the_o succession_n any_o who_o shall_v read_v de_fw-fr ossat_n letter_n will_v find_v the_o various_a deep_a design_n there_o open_v that_o relate_v to_o several_a foreign_a prince_n and_o potentate_n jealousy_n of_o the_o power_n that_o england_n will_v have_v in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o unite_n of_o the_o strength_n of_o scotland_n to_o it_o upon_o the_o rightful_a succession_n of_o king_n james_n to_o the_o monarchy_n and_o perhaps_o rather_o out_o of_o a_o design_n to_o amuse_v they_o than_o out_o of_o a_o humour_n to_o put_v by_o the_o thought_n of_o mortality_n queen_n elizabeth_n do_v show_v so_o much_o unwillingness_n sometime_o to_o hear_v and_o speak_v of_o her_o successor_n and_o during_o the_o constrain_a altum_fw-la silentium_fw-la of_o the_o succession_n then_o here_o a_o book_n of_o the_o succession_n be_v write_v by_o father_n parson_n and_o which_o make_v noise_n enough_o in_o the_o world_n as_o those_o letter_n mention_v and_o by_o which_o book_n the_o author_n intend_v that_o our_o hereditary_a monarchy_n shall_v be_v thunder_n strike_v especial_o with_o the_o help_n of_o the_o papal_a breves_fw-la that_o come_v here_o to_o obstruct_v the_o succession_n king_n james_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a monarch_n print_v a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o lie_v of_o tortus_fw-la i._n e._n bellarmin_n with_o a_o brief_a confutation_n of_o they_o refer_v to_o one_o lie_v of_o tortus_fw-la p._n 47_o viz._n in_o which_o word_n of_o the_o breves_fw-la of_o clement_n the_o 8_o not_o only_a king_n james_n of_o scotland_n be_v not_o exclude_v but_o include_v rather_o and_o the_o confutation_n be_v thus_o viz._n if_o the_o breves_fw-la of_o clement_n do_v not_o exclude_v i_o from_o the_o kingdom_n but_o rather_o do_v include_v i_o why_o do_v garnet_n burn_v they_o why_o will_v he_o not_o reserve_v they_o that_o i_o may_v have_v see_v they_o that_o so_o he_o may_v have_v obtain_v more_o favour_n at_o my_o hand_n for_o he_o and_o his_o catholic_n and_o that_o king_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n p._n 29._o refer_v to_o the_o two_o breves_fw-la which_o clemens_n octavus_n send_v to_o england_n immediate_o before_o queen_n elizabeth_n death_n debar_v he_o from_o the_o crown_n or_o any_o other_o that_o either_o will_v profess_v or_o any_o way_n tolerate_v the_o professor_n of_o his_o religion_n contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n manifold_a vow_n and_o protestation_n simul_n &_o eodem_fw-la tempore_fw-la and_o as_o it_o be_v deliver_v uno_fw-la &_o eodem_fw-la spiritu_fw-la to_o divers_a of_o his_o majesty_n minister_n abroad_o profess_v such_o kindness_n and_o show_v such_o forwardness_n to_o advance_v his_o majesty_n to_o the_o english_a crown_n any_o one_o who_o read_v in_o de_fw-fr ossat_n the_o inclination_n of_o that_o pope_n to_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o this_o kind_n will_v not_o wonder_v at_o his_o majesty_n be_v thus_o expose_v his_o vn-holyness_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o breves_fw-la be_v sufficient_o there_o explain_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v according_a to_o his_o majesty_n measure_n publish_v of_o they_o that_o great_a king_n be_v sufficient_o acquaint_v with_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o papacy_n that_o have_v be_v so_o injurious_a to_o
41_o i_o shall_v answer_v he_o that_o its_o weight_n have_v in_o this_o present_a conjuncture_n of_o 81_o afford_v loyalty_n so_o great_a a_o compensation_n by_o that_o late_a act_n of_o parliament_n there_o acknowledge_v and_o assert_v the_o right_n of_o the_o succession_n etc._n etc._n and_o which_o begin_v thus_o viz._n the_o estate_n of_o parliament_n consider_v that_o the_o king_n of_o this_o realm_n derive_v their_o royal_a power_n from_o god_n almighty_a alone_a do_v succeed_v lineal_o thereunto_o according_a to_o the_o know_a degree_n of_o proximity_n in_o blood_n etc._n etc._n that_o as_o historian_n tell_v we_o how_o in_o the_o dark_a barbarous_a time_n many_o hundred_o of_o year_n since_o man_n repair_v from_o all_o country_n to_o ireland_n to_o learn_v the_o liberal_a art_n and_o science_n i_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o may_v now_o profitable_o go_v to_o scotland_n to_o learn_v loyalty_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o kingdom_n which_o be_v so_o notorious_a for_o its_o mortal_a or_o immortal_a hatred_n of_o popery_n call_v it_o which_o you_o will_v and_o even_o of_o that_o very_a part_n of_o it_o which_o i_o call_v the_o religionary_a one_o of_o it_o have_v thus_o by_o the_o exterminium_fw-la of_o that_o irreligionary_a part_n of_o it_o viz._n that_o dominion_n be_v found_v in_o grace_n teach_v we_o loyalty_n in_o the_o establish_n the_o hereditary_a lineal_a succession_n may_v be_v as_o instrumental_a in_o give_v loyalty_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n here_o its_o temperamentum_fw-la ad_fw-la pondus_fw-la as_o it_o be_v former_o in_o oppress_v we_o with_o its_o weight_n as_o a_o gravamen_fw-la and_o be_v a_o occasion_n of_o blessing_n our_o land_n with_o such_o a_o joyful_a conjuncture_n of_o time_n as_o ensue_v after_o king_n james_n succession_n as_o i_o have_v before_o mention_v and_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v return_v england_n that_o have_v former_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o succession_n be_v like_o the_o erratica_fw-la delos_n a_o float_a island_n and_o that_o too_o in_o sea_n of_o blood_n and_o do_v then_o appear_v like_o it_o afterward_o fix_v and_o bless_v with_o a_o pacifick_n and_o oracular_a king_n and_o as_o strong_a a_o foundation_n for_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n as_o can_v be_v wish_v be_v short_o after_o in_o danger_n of_o be_v again_o unfixed_a by_o the_o outrage_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n and_o the_o principle_n that_o legitimate_a that_o practice_n be_v real_o believe_v and_o practise_v and_o a_o account_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o which_o treason_n we_o have_v in_o the_o statute_n of_o 3_o o_fw-la jacobi_fw-la c._n 2._o as_o likewise_o of_o the_o fiery_a principle_n that_o animate_v the_o actor_n to_o it_o in_o thuanus_n and_o in_o king_n james_n his_o premonition_n to_o all_o christian_a monarch_n p._n 10._o a_o general_a reference_n be_v make_v to_o the_o violent_a bloody_a maxim_n that_o the_o powder-traytor_n maintain_v and_o by_o occasion_n whereof_o after_o the_o design_a outrage_n against_o the_o lineal_a succession_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n be_v in_o danger_n while_o such_o bloody_a principle_n and_o maxim_n be_v not_o exterminate_v it_o be_v in_o ordinary_a prudence_n requisite_a to_o apply_v the_o extraordinary_a remedy_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o rivet_v that_o fundamental_a maxim_n of_o the_o crown_n the_o strong_a in_o nature_n viz._n that_o the_o king_n never_o die_v and_o the_o addition_n of_o those_o word_n in_o the_o promissory_a clause_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n viz._n his_o or_o their_o person_n their_o crown_n and_o dignity_n and_o which_o word_n be_v not_o in_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n be_v a_o plain_a indication_n of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o lawgiver_n to_o tie_v man_n soul_n to_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n in_o the_o due_a and_o legal_a course_n of_o descent_n and_o moreover_o with_o a_o prospect_n to_o man_n have_v a_o conscientious_a regard_n to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n the_o father_n of_o our_o church_n then_o probable_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o collect_v in_o the_o common-prayer_n for_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o king_n child_n as_o overjoy_v with_o the_o sight_n of_o king_n james_n be_v be_v enrich_v with_o a_o most_o royal_a progeny_n as_o the_o word_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o recognition_n be_v do_v cause_v these_o word_n to_o be_v insert_v who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o thy_o elect_n and_o of_o their_o seed_n the_o preface_n to_o the_o act_n require_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n have_v in_o it_o the_o expression_n of_o loyalty_n and_o allegiance_n unto_o the_o king_n majesty_n and_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o mention_n the_o design_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n as_o tend_v to_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o whole_a state_n and_o therefore_o if_o in_o the_o ancient_a time_n of_o popery_n and_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v general_o revere_v here_o as_o a_o 13_o apostle_n upon_o any_o emergent_a papal_a usurpation_n which_o give_v just_a cause_n of_o apprehend_v future_a one_o intend_v and_o particular_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o pope_n mandate_n or_o bull_n which_o be_v call_v gratiae_n expectativae_fw-la or_o provisiones_fw-la and_o pretend_o issue_v out_o of_o the_o pope_n pious_a care_n to_o see_v a_o church_n provide_v of_o a_o successor_n before_o it_o need_v our_o king_n do_v think_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o provide_v statute_n against_o provisor_n whereby_o the_o ius_n patronatus_fw-la be_v secure_v to_o they_o and_o their_o subject_n and_o by_o statute_n of_o praemunire_n do_v as_o it_o be_v build_v fort_n before_o the_o enemy_n come_v the_o premuniment_n of_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n by_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v most_o necessary_a to_o prevent_v any_o papal_a gratiae_n expectativae_fw-la of_o the_o crown_n and_o the_o pope_n impious_a care_n to_o provide_v a_o successor_n to_o its_o hereditary_a right_n the_o premuniment_n of_o some_o law_n by_o other_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n nor_o yet_o a_o new_a word_n however_o some_o idle_a critic_n have_v account_v the_o word_n praemunire_n in_o our_o statute_n to_o be_v barbarous_a for_o grotius_n in_o his_o de_fw-fr jure_fw-la belli_fw-la etc._n etc._n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o 5._o 14._o speak_v of_o some_o law_n of_o the_o jew_n say_v in_o quarum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o ut_fw-la hebraei_n loq●untur_fw-la praemunimentum_fw-la additae_fw-la sunt_fw-la leges_fw-la caeterae_fw-la and_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o some_o take_a praemunire_n for_o praemonere_fw-la the_o constant_a premonition_n of_o heaven_n great_a monitor_n call_v conscience_n and_o which_o be_v the_o pulse_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o like_o the_o pulse_n be_v fidelis_n nuncius_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la aut_fw-la mortis_fw-la to_o warn_v man_n by_o this_o oath_n to_o defend_v the_o lineal_a succession_n of_o the_o crown_n be_v no_o less_o necessary_a and_o king_n james_n settle_v the_o premonition_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o his_o own_o subject_n be_v but_o natural_o previous_a to_o his_o premonition_n send_v abroad_o to_o foreign_a prince_n and_o state_n and_o how_o far_o harry_n the_o 7th_n statute_n by_o which_o no_o person_n who_o shall_v serve_v the_o king_n for_o the_o time_n be_v etc._n etc._n shall_v therefore_o be_v attaint_v or_o impeach_v may_v induce_v the_o government_n to_o secure_v the_o undoubted_a right_n of_o succession_n by_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v frame_v as_o it_o be_v and_o root_a our_o loyalty_n thereby_o the_o deep_a into_o our_o conscience_n and_o by_o the_o fear_n of_o our_o be_v just_o impeach_v in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n in_o omnem_fw-la eventum_fw-la if_o we_o defend_v not_o those_o right_n of_o succession_n be_v obvious_a to_o consideration_n as_o i_o have_v thus_o in_o this_o conclusion_n show_v that_o it_o be_v the_o lawgiver_n intention_n particular_o in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o oblige_v we_o to_o pay_v our_o allegiance_n not_o only_o to_o the_o king_n but_o to_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o legal_a course_n of_o descent_n so_o i_o may_v here_o further_o exit_fw-la superabundanti_fw-la dilate_v on_o such_o intention_n be_v to_o secure_v the_o same_o without_o any_o respect_n to_o the_o religion_n of_o such_o heir_n and_o successor_n a_o prince_n of_o such_o profound_a learning_n and_o observation_n as_o king_n james_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o have_v be_v since_o by_o the_o loyal_a writer_n of_o the_o succession_n so_o clear_o and_o strong_o assert_v viz._n that_o the_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n be_v inseparable_o annex_v to_o the_o proximity_n of_o blood_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o that_o statute-law_n contrariant_n to_o those_o be_v null_n and_o void_a and_o that_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n be_v indisputable_o found_v on_o inherent_a birthright_n according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o the_o act_n of_o recognition_n
to_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o their_o own_o school_n doctor_n be_v at_o irreconcilable_a odds_o and_o jar_n about_o they_o he_o have_v then_o his_o eye_n on_o the_o lateran_n council_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o other_o word_n there_o in_o the_o margin_n viz._n touch_v the_o pretend_a council_n of_o lateran_n see_v plat._n in_o vitâ_fw-la innocen_n 3._o and_o by_o which_o council_n the_o king_n know_v that_o all_o except_o two_o or_o three_o of_o those_o conclusion_n be_v conclude_v and_o define_v if_o therefore_o many_o of_o the_o poor_a petty_a school-doctor_n be_v so_o searless_a of_o the_o papal_a thunder_n as_o in_o case_n when_o they_o be_v perhaps_o unconcerned_a to_o impeach_v the_o papal_a usurpation_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o apprehension_n in_o that_o our_o wise_a monarch_n that_o any_o of_o his_o high-born_a heir_n and_o successor_n will_v ever_o favour_v the_o usurpation_n of_o that_o authority_n when_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v so_o firm_o satisfy_v concern_v the_o loyalty_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n lord_n temporal_a and_o of_o their_o great_a quota_fw-la in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n secure_v their_o abhorrence_n of_o all_o papal_a usurpation_n as_o not_o to_o impose_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n on_o they_o though_o yet_o she_o take_v care_n to_o have_v it_o impose_v on_o the_o popish_a bishop_n can_v we_o imagine_v that_o the_o great_a interest_n of_o a_o heir_n of_o the_o crown_n in_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n do_v not_o give_v a_o plerophory_n of_o satisfaction_n to_o that_o great_a monarch_n that_o such_o a_o heir_n will_v never_o permit_v any_o usurpation_n to_o prejudice_v his_o crown_n imperial_a moreover_o if_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o device_n of_o a_o inheritance_n by_o will_n on_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o legatee_n not_o hold_v this_o or_o that_o philosophical_a or_o religionary_a tenet_n the_o absurdity_n of_o such_o condition_n will_v not_o frustrate_v the_o device_n but_o will_v be_v take_v as_o pro_fw-la non_fw-la adjectâ_fw-la and_o that_o thus_o in_o that_o know_a case_n in_o the_o digest_v viz._n of_o a_o heir_n make_v on_o a_o absurd_a condition_n namely_o on_o condition_n he_o shall_v throw_v the_o testator_n ash_n into_o the_o sea_n the_o heir_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v commend_v than_o any_o way_n question_v who_o forbear_v to_o do_v so_o how_o can_v we_o think_v in_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o crown_n which_o be_v from_o god_n and_o by_o inherent_a birthright_n any_o such_o suppose_a absurd_a condition_n of_o a_o prince_n not_o believe_v this_o or_o that_o speculative_a religionary_a tenet_n and_o for_o his_o profess_v of_o which_o he_o have_v a_o dear_a buy_v liberty_n by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v intend_v to_o operate_v to_o his_o prejudice_n but_o that_o i_o may_v in_o a_o word_n perimere_fw-la litem_fw-la about_o that_o king_n never_o intend_v the_o least_o prejudice_n to_o the_o succession_n by_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n be_v roman_n catholic_n i_o shall_v observe_v that_o that_o k●ng_n who_o be_v so_o great_a and_o skilful_a a_o agonist_n for_o the_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v yet_o in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o propose_a match_n with_o spain_n and_o afterward_o with_o that_o of_o france_n agree_v that_o the_o child_n of_o such_o marriage_n shall_v no_o way_n be_v compel_v or_o constrain_v in_o point_n of_o conscience_n or_o religion_n and_o that_o their_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n shall_v not_o be_v prejudice_v in_o case_n it_o shall_v please_v god_n they_o shall_v prove_v roman_a catholic_n and_o that_o the_o law_n against_o catholic_n shall_v not_o in_o the_o least_o touch_v they_o and_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o government_n then_o be_v likewise_o to_o that_o effect_n avowed_o declare_v be_v manifest_a from_o the_o passage_n of_o those_o time_n and_o the_o needless_a quarrel_n therefore_o that_o our_o late_a excluder_n will_v have_v expose_v we_o to_o with_o france_n be_v a_o thing_n worthy_a their_o consider_v but_o enough_o of_o this_o conclusion_n if_o not_o too_o much_o for_o where_o the_o tide_n of_o the_o word_n of_o any_o oath_n run_v strong_a and_o clear_a we_o need_v not_o to_o regard_v the_o wind_n of_o any_o lawgiver_n intention_n however_o yet_o i_o have_v make_v it_o appear_v for_o the_o redundant_fw-la satisfaction_n of_o the_o scrupulous_a that_o while_o they_o have_v embark_v their_o conscience_n in_o th●se_a oath_n they_o have_v have_v such_o wind_n and_o tide_n both_o together_o on_o their_o side_n and_o that_o therefore_o any_o storm_n which_o the_o taker_n of_o these_o oath_n relate_v to_o the_o lineal_a succession_n of_o the_o crown_n may_v have_v raise_v either_o in_o their_o conscience_n or_o the_o state_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v very_o unnatural_a have_v thus_o in_o the_o forego_n conclusion_n assert_v and_o prove_v the_o obligation_n relate_v to_o the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n as_o result_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o supremacy_n i_o shall_v brief_o answer_v such_o objection_n thereunto_o or_o rather_o scruple_n for_o they_o deserve_v not_o the_o name_n of_o objection_n as_o some_o noisy_a nominal_a protestant_n have_v trouble_v themselves_o and_o other_o with_o and_o so_o end_v this_o casuistical_a discussion_n the_o first_o objection_n or_o scruple_n than_o i_o shall_v take_v notice_n of_o that_o some_o have_v raise_v against_o the_o obligation_n of_o these_o oath_n as_o above_o assert_v be_v that_o they_o be_v make_v in_o relation_n to_o papist_n only_o and_o be_v enjoin_v to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o discovery_n of_o those_o that_o be_v suspect_v to_o be_v so_o as_o to_o which_o it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v most_o plain_a that_o all_o person_n who_o have_v take_v these_o or_o any_o other_o lawful_a oath_n be_v bind_v by_o deed_n to_o fullfil_v what_o they_o have_v swear_v in_o word_n and_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o doubt_v whether_o the_o law_n intend_v that_o those_o person_n shall_v observe_v the_o oath_n who_o it_o have_v enjoin_v to_o take_v they_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n we_o be_v well_o teach_v by_o bishop_n sanderson_n in_o his_o 6_o lecture_n of_o oath_n that_o though_o papal_a usurpation_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n the_o arrogate_a to_o himself_o the_o exercise_n of_o supreme_a jurisdiction_n in_o spiritualibus_fw-la throughout_o this_o kingdom_n yet_o the_o oath_n be_v obligatory_a according_a to_o the_o express_a word_n in_o the_o utmost_a latitude_n the_o reàson_n be_v that_o the_o intention_n of_o a_o law_n be_v general_a to_o provide_v against_o all_o future_a inconvenience_n of_o the_o like_a kind_n or_o nature_n etc._n etc._n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o he_o there_o at_o large_a by_o the_o measure_n of_o that_o bishop_n as_o to_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n we_o likewise_o may_v direct_v ourselves_o in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v obligatory_a according_a to_o the_o express_a word_n in_o the_o utmost_a latitude_n though_o that_o oath_n be_v make_v by_o occasion_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n and_o as_o to_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n king_n james_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n p._n 108._o that_o it_o be_v to_o prop_v up_o the_o power_n of_o christian_a king_n as_o custodes_fw-la utr●usque_fw-la tab●ae_fw-la by_o command_a obedience_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o reform_v religion_n according_a to_o his_o prescribe_a will_n by_o assist_v the_o spiritual_a power_n with_o the_o temporal_a sword_n etc._n etc._n by_o procure_v due_a obedience_n to_o the_o church_n by_o judge_v and_o cut_v off_o all_o frivolous_a question_n and_o schism_n as_o constantine_n do_v and_o final_o by_o make_v decorum_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o every_o thing_n and_o establish_v order_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o indifferent_a thing_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o his_o majesty_n do_v clear_o denote_v the_o intention_n of_o that_o oath_n to_o have_v be_v to_o extend_v against_o any_o nonconformist_n continue_v their_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n and_o as_o to_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v intend_v against_o protestant_n as_o well_v as_o papist_n make_v a_o faction_n in_o the_o state_n the_o book_n call_v god_n and_o the_o king_n compile_v and_o print_v by_o king_n james_n authority_n sufficient_o show_v throughout_o by_o the_o notification_n of_o the_o particular_a moral_a office_n require_v by_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o likewise_o by_o his_o subject_n natural_a allegiance_n and_o which_o moral_a office_n be_v there_o strengthen_v with_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o absolute_a loyalty_n be_v there_o well_o establish_v and_o likewise_o the_o doctrine_n of_o resistance_n
he_o our_o sou●reign_a lord_n the_o king_n be_v lawful_a and_o rightful_a king_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o the_o word_n be_v must_v necessary_o hinder_v any_o heir_n or_o successor_n forestalling_a the_o market_n if_o they_o shall_v presume_v before_o their_o time_n to_o come_v for_o our_o actual_a allegiance_n however_o swear_v to_o they_o to_o be_v pay_v in_o future_a time_n our_o law-book_n of_o oath_n mention_n a_o long_a promissory_a oath_n make_v voluntary_o to_o harry_v the_o 6_o by_o 2_o arch-bishop_n 16_o bishop_n 3_o dukes_z 5_o earls_z 2_o viscount_n 14_o abbot_n 2_o prior_n and_o 7_o baron_n and_o but_o part_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v here_o set_v down_o viz._n i_o a._n b._n knowledge_n you_o most_o high_a and_o mighty_a and_o most_o christian_a prince_n king_n henry_n 6._o to_o be_v my_o most_o redoubt_a and_o rightwise_o by_o succession_n bear_v to_o reign_v upon_o i_o and_o all_o your_o liege_n people_n whereupon_o i_o voluntary_o without_o coercion_n promise_n and_o oblige_v i_o by_o the_o faith_n and_o truth_n that_o i_o owe_v to_o god_n and_o by_o the_o faith_n truth_n and_o ligeance_n that_o i_o owe_v to_o you_o my_o most_o redoubt_a sovereign_a lord_n that_o i_o shall_v be_v without_o any_o variance_n true_a faithful_a humble_a and_o obeisant_a subject_n and_o liege_n man_n to_o you_o my_o most_o redoubt_a sovereign_a lord_n etc._n etc._n and_o swear_v to_o endeavour_v to_o do_v all_o that_o may_v be_v to_o the_o weal_n and_o surety_n of_o your_o most_o royal_a person_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o weal_n surety_n and_o preserve_v of_o the_o person_n and_o benign_a princess_n margaret_z queen_n my_o sovereign_a lady_n and_o of_o she_o high_o most_o noble_a estate_n she_o be_v your_o wife_n and_o also_o the_o weal_n surety_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o right_n high_a and_o mighty_a prince_n edward_n my_o right_a redoubt_a lord_n the_o prince_n your_o first_o beget_v son_n and_o of_o the_o right_n high_a and_o noble_a estate_n and_o faithful_o true_o and_o obeysant_o etc._n etc._n first_o my_o allegiance_n to_o you_o my_o most_o redoubt_a sovereign_a lord_n during_o your_o life_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a power_n take_v you_o from_o this_o transitory_a life_n i_o bear_a life_n in_o this_o world_n that_o i_o shall_v then_o take_v and_o accept_v my_o say_a redoubt_a lord_n the_o prince_n edward_n your_o say_a first_o bear_v son_n for_o my_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o bear_v my_o true_a faith_n and_o ligeance_n to_o he_o as_o by_o nature_n bear_v for_o my_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o after_o he_o to_o his_o succession_n of_o his_o body_n lawful_o beget_v etc._n etc._n and_o in_o default_n of_o his_o succession_n etc._n etc._n unto_o any_o other_o succession_n of_o your_o body_n lawful_o come_v but_o the_o wisdom_n of_o any_o nation_n make_v law_n and_o especial_o about_o oath_n as_o short_a as_o may_v be_v i_o account_v that_o those_o of_o supremacy_n and_o allegiance_n have_v much_o better_a that_o multiloquious_a one_o as_o i_o may_v call_v it_o provide_v for_o the_o security_n of_o our_o allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n regnant_n and_o afterward_o to_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n by_o plain_a and_o liquid_a word_n as_o far_o as_o humane_a prudence_n can_v provide_v for_o the_o same_o and_o because_o what_o be_v make_v by_o humane_a art_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o be_v by_o humane_a art_n elude_v and_o for_o that_o we_o see_v that_o nature_n itself_o have_v be_v make_v a_o term_n of_o art_n a_o word_n that_o st._n paul_n think_v plain_a enough_o when_o he_o say_v do_v not_o nature_n teach_v we_o that_o etc._n etc._n yet_o of_o which_o word_n a_o late_a lawyer_n and_o kinsman_n of_o the_o great_a grotius_n have_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr principiis_fw-la juris_fw-la naturalis_fw-la tell_v we_o of_o seven_o signification_n and_o for_o that_o it_o be_v as_o easy_a for_o a_o captious_a versatil_a wit_n to_o turn_v the_o word_n heir_n or_o most_o word_n into_o as_o many_o or_o more_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v further_a with_o deep_a precaution_n make_v to_o exterminate_v all_o cavil_v sense_n and_o calumnious_a interpretation_n and_o such_o as_o that_o of_o the_o haeres_fw-la viventis_fw-la by_o that_o final_a clause_n which_o crown_v that_o oath_n and_o that_o which_o alone_o as_o i_o partly_o hint_v before_o amount_n to_o a_o oath_n viz._n and_o i_o do_v make_v this_o recognition_n and_o acknowledgement_n hearty_o willing_o and_o true_o upon_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o after_o which_o it_o follow_v so_o help_v i_o god._n that_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o christian_n alone_o amount_v to_o a_o oath_n i_o shall_v cite_v the_o opinion_n of_o tuldenus_fw-la the_o regius_n professor_n of_o law_n at_o louvain_n when_o writing_n de_fw-fr interpretatione_n juramenti_fw-la he_o say_v affirmatio_fw-la perfidem_fw-la tunc_fw-la demum_fw-la jusjurandum_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la additum_fw-la fuit_fw-la christianam_fw-la alciat_fw-la in_o l._n 41._o c._n de_fw-fr transact_v i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o what_o christian_a soever_o have_v take_v this_o oath_n have_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o christian_a oblige_v himself_o thereby_o as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o great_a privilege_n of_o birthright_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n heir_n a_o privilege_n so_o great_a that_o the_o despise_n of_o it_o as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o esau_n be_v apply_v in_o scripture_n to_o man_n profaneness_n in_o despise_v their_o inheritance_n of_o bliss_n by_o christianity_n i_o do_v as_o sincere_o promise_v to_o defend_v according_a to_o my_o oath_n and_o without_o any_o fraud_n or_o mental_a reservation_n or_o the_o least_o cavil_v capricious_a or_o calumnious_a interpretation_n as_o i_o value_v the_o great_a privilege_n that_o christianity_n have_v ennoble_v humane_a nature_n with_o in_o be_v heir_n of_o god_n and_o joint_a heir_n with_o christ_n as_o st._n paul_n word_n be_v and_o of_o be_v heir_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n and_o may_v all_o the_o divine_a promise_n be_v so_o yea_o and_o amen_o to_o i_o and_o interpret_v with_o not_o only_o a_o plain_a but_o a_o full_a and_o fair_a interpretation_n and_o so_o likewise_o the_o very_a oath_n of_o god_n mention_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n as_o i_o do_v plain_o and_o full_o and_o fair_o and_o with_o the_o exuberant_a honesty_n and_o simplicity_n enjoin_v by_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o so_o much_o transcend_v the_o bona_fw-la fides_fw-la of_o the_o heathen_a morality_n perform_v my_o promissory_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n i_o shall_v in_o the_o last_o place_n take_v notice_n of_o what_o i_o have_v not_o without_o horror_n observe_v namely_o that_o some_o disloyal_a author_n have_v presume_v in_o print_n to_o pretend_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o exclusion_n of_o heir_n and_o successor_n on_o the_o account_n of_o their_o religion_n by_o colour_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o idolater_n according_a to_o the_o judicial_a law_n and_o as_o to_o which_o it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a here_o to_o say_v that_o that_o law_n be_v give_v only_o to_o the_o jewish_a nation_n and_o that_o it_o do_v never_o bind_v any_o else_o or_o do_v and_o that_o the_o divine_a law_n natural_a and_o positive_a bind_v we_o to_o the_o observation_n of_o our_o oath_n and_o that_o christianity_n do_v not_o find_v dominion_n in_o grace_n and_o that_o the_o patriarch_n and_o joshua_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n make_v league_n with_o idolater_n and_o on_o both_o side_n there_o be_v mutual_a faith_n confirm_v with_o solemn_a oath_n and_o that_o a_o oath_n promissory_a to_o pay_v allegiance_n to_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o crown_n at_o the_o time_n of_o its_o descent_n be_v much_o more_o lawful_a and_o i_o may_v urge_v that_o the_o jewish_a king_n though_o often_o idolatrous_a yet_o as_o the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v have_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la &_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la obedience_n pay_v they_o without_o respect_n to_o their_o religion_n or_o irreligion_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o moral_a office_n of_o honour_v all_o man_n and_o of_o the_o internal_a communion_n due_a from_o all_o christian_n to_o all_o christian_n i_o shall_v without_o offend_v the_o church_n i_o hold_v external_n communion_n with_o venture_v to_o go_v as_o far_o in_o my_o measure_n of_o charity_n as_o some_o of_o its_o great_a ornament_n dr._n hammond_n and_o bishop_n taylor_n and_o likewise_o bishop_n gunning_n have_v do_v in_o free_v many_o roman_a catholic_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o formal_a idolatry_n innumerable_a act_n of_o idolatry_n may_v be_v charge_v on_o many_o person_n of_o that_o communion_n and_o particular_o on_o all_o such_o as_o do_v worship_n the_o cross_n or_o saint_n and_o angel_n cul●●_n latriae_fw-la and_o on_o such_o as_o in_o the_o eucharist_n determine_v the_o
a_o few_o or_o many_o indigent_a or_o dissolute_a person_n ought_v to_o be_v turn_v on_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o papist_n or_o especial_o on_o their_o religion_n itself_o and_o their_o religionary_a tenet_n but_o many_o of_o the_o nonconformist_n then_o be_v abandon_v to_o shame_n the_o very_a church_n of_o england_n and_o its_o discipline_n with_o idolatry_n and_o with_o a_o participate_v in_o the_o plot_n to_o bring_v in_o popery_n according_a to_o what_o archbishop_n land_n star-chamber_n speech_n mention_n as_o the_o style_n of_o the_o libel_n in_o those_o day_n that_o there_o be_v then_o great_a plot_n in_o hand_n and_o dangerous_a plot_n to_o change_v the_o religion_n establish_v and_o to_o bring_v in_o romish_a superstition_n the_o sagacious_a loyal_n begin_v to_o see_v that_o they_o make_v but_o a_o stalking-horse_n of_o the_o plot_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o shoot_v at_o the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n and_o by_o outcry_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o bring_v in_o a_o roman_a republic_n and_o to_o make_v themselves_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o people_n in_o a_o popular_a state_n while_o they_o complain_v of_o the_o idolatry_n of_o church_n but_o there_o remain_v somewhat_o else_o to_o be_v say_v as_o to_o this_o point_n of_o call_v or_o think_v every_o particular_a papist_n and_o idolater_n and_o that_o be_v what_o i_o shall_v further_o urge_v out_o of_o the_o great_a speech_n aforesaid_a of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o bourge_n who_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o papist_n have_v in_o their_o write_n frequent_o call_v heretic_n idolater_n and_o as_o according_o the_o author_n of_o a_o popish_a pamphlet_n print_v in_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1663._o entitle_v miracle_n not_o cease_v have_v do_v and_o where_o his_o word_n be_v the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v a_o cheat_n and_o heathenism_n the_o protestant_a bishop_n be_v cheater_n and_o priest_n of_o baal_n the_o protestant_a religion_n be_v ridiculous_a and_o idolatrous_a yet_o this_o archbishop_n in_o that_o speech_n have_v as_o i_o say_v clear_v his_o prince_n though_o a_o protestant_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o heresy_n and_o pertinacy_n do_v likewise_o there_o particular_o say_v he_o be_v no_o idolater_n and_o where_o he_o likewise_o have_v with_o great_a judgement_n and_o loyalty_n teach_v we_o that_o as_o to_o those_o constitution_n in_o the_o civil_a law_n whereby_o manichee_n and_o arrian_n be_v exclude_v from_o magistracy_n and_o public_a office_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v only_o in_o the_o case_n of_o inferior_a magistrate_n and_o not_o of_o sovereign_a prince_n who_o can_v be_v disinherit_v of_o their_o right_n without_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o whole_a government_n and_o people_n and_o to_o decree_v any_o thing_n of_o who_o do_v only_o belong_v to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o god_n almighty_n there_o be_v another_o thing_n that_o incline_v i_o to_o think_v myself_o moral_o bind_v not_o to_o call_v all_o papist_n idolater_n and_o to_o wipe_v off_o the_o stain_n of_o idolatry_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o much_o as_o any_o of_o the_o father_n of_o our_o church_n have_v do_v and_o that_o be_v the_o conversion_n of_o england_n from_o heathenish_a idolatry_n that_o gregory_n the_o great_a be_v god_n great_a instrument_n in_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n ago_o have_v thus_o finish_v my_o casuistical_a discussion_n i_o shall_v be_v glad_a if_o the_o result_n thereof_o may_v by_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n who_o both_o the_o deceive_v and_o the_o deceiver_n be_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o job_n 12._o 16._o be_v in_o all_o such_o protestant_n who_o have_v be_v deceive_v into_o a_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o irreligionary_a tenet_n of_o popery_n viz._n of_o dominion_n be_v found_v in_o grace_n a_o more_o exuberant_a compassion_n to_o all_o loyal_a papist_n who_o have_v not_o believe_v and_o practise_v that_o tenet_n and_o may_v have_v err_v in_o popish_a tenet_n religionary_a it_o be_v both_o visible_a and_o palpable_a that_o such_o excluder_n and_o nominal_a protestant_n while_o they_o accuse_v papist_n of_o be_v delude_v into_o a_o plot_n to_o destroy_v the_o king_n be_v themselves_o delude_v into_o a_o practice_n that_o will_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la have_v destroy_v the_o hereditary_a monarchy_n it_o be_v most_o plain_a that_o by_o be_v so_o deceive_v they_o have_v give_v occasion_n to_o papist_n to_o reproach_n protestant_n by_o say_v to_o this_o effect_n you_o see_v how_o vain_a your_o attempt_n be_v to_o leave_v popery_n and_o its_o tenet_n and_o as_o he_o who_o will_v by_o run_v or_o ride_v or_o sail_v to_o any_o remote_a place_n imagine_v to_o be_v able_a to_o get_v from_o be_v under_o the_o cover_v of_o the_o heaven_n will_v give_v any_o one_o occasion_n to_o upbraid_v his_o vanity_n by_o tell_v he_o he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o for_o that_o the_o further_o he_o go_v from_o be_v under_o one_o part_n of_o the_o heaven_n he_o will_v but_o compass_n the_o be_v near_o to_o another_o part_n thereof_o so_o while_o you_o will_v get_v from_o be_v under_o the_o predominance_n of_o one_o part_n of_o popery_n you_o obtain_v but_o to_o be_v the_o near_a to_o another_o part_n of_o it_o you_o have_v run_v from_o the_o belief_n of_o purgatory_n to_o the_o tenet_n of_o sound_v dominion_n in_o grace_n and_o there_o be_v no_o steady_a hand_n among_o you_o to_o hold_v the_o balance_n that_o tenet_n practise_v by_o you_o will_v instead_o of_o a_o purgatory_n hereafter_o make_v a_o present_a hell_n upon_o earth_n you_o be_v get_v from_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o yet_o the_o odiosa_fw-la materia_fw-la in_o the_o very_a council_n of_o lateran_n which_o you_o charge_v upon_o we_o as_o a_o general_a one_o be_v approve_v believe_v and_o practise_v by_o you_o and_o you_o will_v exterminate_v the_o king_n heir_n and_o successor_n as_o heterodox_n in_o religion_n and_o have_v in_o effect_n obsolve_v yourselves_o from_o your_o oath_n promissory_a in_o their_o behalf_n thus_o therefore_o do●h_v the_o universality_n of_o our_o catholic_n and_o heavenly_a religion_n seem_v to_o be_v natural_o make_v like_o that_o of_o the_o heaven_n from_o which_o there_o be_v no_o escape_v thou_o who_o abhor_v idol_n do_v thou_o commit_v sacrilege_n and_o abhor_v the_o sacredness_n of_o the_o regal_a power_n and_o of_o thy_o own_o oath_n and_o thou_o who_o abhor_v superstition_n in_o thing_n will_v thou_o idolize_v word_n and_o imagine_v there_o can_v be_v sacredness_n in_o letter_n do_v not_o every_o one_o know_v that_o even_o literae_fw-la significantes_fw-la sacras_fw-la sententias_fw-la non_fw-la significant_a eas_fw-la in_o quantum_fw-la sacrae_fw-la sunt_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o quantum_fw-la sunt_fw-la res_fw-la ergò_fw-la literae_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la sacrae_fw-la do_v not_o the_o very_a word_n sacred_a likewise_o signify_v accurse_v can_v therefore_o the_o name_n of_o true_a protestant_a legitimate_a a_o calumnious_a interpretation_n of_o oath_n more_o than_o the_o name_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n legitimate_a the_o doctrine_n of_o calumny_n or_o more_o than_o the_o world_n catholic_n monopolise_v former_o by_o the_o donatist_n and_o arrian_n can_v justify_v or_o sanctify_v their_o tenet_n will_v your_o name_n of_o reformation_n weigh_v any_o thing_n if_o while_o you_o be_v come_v out_o from_o among_o the_o religionary_a tenet_n of_o our_o church_n you_o remain_v in_o the_o babel_n of_o the_o irreligionary_a one_o approu●d_v by_o some_o of_o our_o pope_n and_o doctor_n and_o schoolman_n and_o which_o we_o grant_v that_o if_o believe_v and_o practise_v will_v bring_v every_o kingdom_n to_o confusion_n and_o not_o only_o into_o a_o diversity_n of_o language_n but_o into_o a_o alteration_n of_o the_o hereditary_a government_n and_o transubstantiate_v even_o that_o if_o you_o be_v angry_a with_o we_o for_o mistake_v saint_n peter_n peter_n s_z successor_n as_o you_o think_v will_v you_o not_o be_v angry_a with_o yourselves_o for_o mistake_v the_o successor_n of_o your_o king_n so_o easy_o to_o be_v know_v since_o you_o may_v think_v he_o a_o wise_a child_n who_o know_v his_o true_a spiritual_a father_n as_o well_o as_o his_o true_a natural_a one_o will_v you_o reproach_v our_o understanding_n for_o not_o know_v that_o true_a spiritual_a one_o and_o what_o be_v the_o true_a church_n when_o you_o seem_v thus_o not_o to_o know_v your_o true_a political_a father_n or_o who_o be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o course_n of_o the_o descent_n the_o true_a king_n will_v not_o you_o pity_v we_o for_o our_o implicit_a faith_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o thing_n wherein_o we_o can_v hurt_v you_o when_o yourselves_o do_v by_o implicit_a faith_n follow_v the_o demagogue_n in_o the_o state_n in_o matter_n that_o will_v destroy_v we_o all_o when_o brutus_n after_o he_o have_v give_v the_o blow_n to_o caesar_n find_v cause_n to_o exclaim_v of_o virtue_n be_v a_o empty_a name_n will_v
former_o ib._n the_o author_n show_v that_o none_o need_v be_v afraid_a of_o any_o roman_a catholic_n prince_n who_o be_v former_o a_o protestant_n from_o p._n 174_o to_o 177._o nonconformist_a divine_n not_o scruple_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o what_o the_o conformist_n do_v but_o be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v their_o error_n p._n 175._o it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o such_o divine_n to_o censure_v the_o belief_n of_o religionary_a notion_n in_o a_o high_a bear_v prince_n p._n 176._o by_o the_o falsity_n of_o such_o divine_n principle_n as_o many_o hundred_o of_o thousand_o be_v here_o stain_v as_o be_v bare_a hundred_o put_v to_o death_n in_o the_o inglorious_a reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n ib._n a_o confutation_n of_o one_o argument_n bring_v for_o london_n being_n designed_o fire_v by_o many_o popish_a person_n p._n 181._o the_o author_n judgement_n that_o the_o fermentation_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n will_v not_o prove_v destructive_a but_o perfective_a to_o it_o p._n 183._o the_o author_n judgement_n that_o all_o policy_n civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a will_v be_v account_v but_o pedantry_n that_o postpone_n the_o consideration_n of_o the_o build_n capital_a ship_n and_o their_o maintenance_n and_o equipage_n p._n 184._o that_o religion-trader_n be_v real_o of_o the_o trade_n of_o beggar_n p._n 184._o more_o concern_v the_o break_n of_o the_o trade_n of_o beggar_n and_o of_o court-beggar_n ib._n the_o reason_n why_o our_o english_a miinister_n of_o state_n have_v not_o write_v their_o memoires_n as_o those_o of_o france_n have_v do_v p._n 185._o the_o author_n of_o the_o present_a state_n of_o england_n observe_v to_o say_v in_o part_n 2d_o that_o the_o yearly_a charge_n of_o his_o majesty_n navy_n in_o time_n of_o peace_n be_v so_o well_o regulate_v that_o it_o scarce_o amount_v to_o 70,000_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la p._n 185._o what_o the_o lord_n keeper_n bridgman_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n in_o the_o year_n 1670_o say_v that_o from_o the_o year_n 1660_o to_o the_o late_a dutch_a war_n the_o ordinary_a charge_n of_o the_o fleet_n communibus_fw-la annis_fw-la come_v to_o 500,000_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v support_v with_o less_o ib._n the_o author_n believe_v that_o the_o ordinary_a naval_a charge_n have_v in_o no_o year_n since_o amount_v to_o less_o than_o 200,000_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la beside_o the_o vast_a charge_n in_o build_v new_a ship_n and_o rebuilding_n old_a and_o the_o charge_n of_o summer_n and_o winter_n guard_n and_o of_o convoy_n and_o ship_n against_o argier_n p._n 186._o since_o the_o year_n 1669_o the_o king_n have_v enrich_v the_o kingdom_n with_o a_o more_o valuable_a fleet_n than_o it_o have_v before_o ib._n the_o manifold_a payment_n to_o the_o usurper_n amount_v to_o one_o entire_a subsidy_n in_o each_o week_n of_o the_o year_n and_o what_o the_o kingdom_n pay_v before_o exceed_v not_o usual_o one_o subsidy_n or_o 15_o the_o in_o two_o or_o three_o year_n space_n ib._n the_o nature_n of_o our_o old_a gentle_a way_n of_o assessment_n call_v subsidy_n ib._n instead_o of_o the_o demand_v of_o 5_o member_n from_o the_o parliament_n above_o 400_o be_v forcible_o seclude_v from_o it_o ib._n tax_n afterward_o levy_v in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o house_n of_o commons_o when_o there_o be_v no_o knight_n of_o the_o shire_n for_o 26_o english_a and_o 11_o welsh_a county_n and_o but_o one_o knight_n of_o the_o shire_n in_o other_o 9_o county_n and_o only_o the_o full_a number_n of_o knight_n of_o the_o shire_n for_o 4_o county_n and_o when_o york_n westminister_n bristol_n canterbury_n chester_n exeter_n oxford_n lincoln_n worcester_z chichester_n carlisle_n rochester_n wells_n coventry_n have_v no_o citizen_n and_o london_z 1_o instead_o of_o 4_o and_o gloucester_n and_o salisbury_n alone_o have_v there_o full_a number_n and_o when_o by_o a_o parcel_n of_o about_o 89_o permit_v to_o fit_a the_o whole_a clergy_n as_o well_o as_o laity_n of_o england_n be_v tax_v ib._n and_o p._n 187._o the_o usurper_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n only_o lay_v a_o tax_n of_o 600,000_o l._n per_fw-la month_n on_o the_o nation_n p._n 187._o he_o afterward_o have_v a_o give_a parliament_n that_o calculate_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o nation_n find_v 400,000_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la necessary_a for_o the_o navy_n and_o port_n and_o settle_v on_o he_o in_o all_o 1,300,000_o l._n per_fw-la annum_fw-la ib._n their_o help_v he_o into_o the_o power_n to_o break_v the_o balance_n of_o christendom_n as_o he_o do_v have_v entail_v on_o the_o nation_n for_o ever_o a_o necessity_n of_o labour_v hard_o to_o support_v the_o public_a government_n ib._n a_o descant_n on_o the_o say_n of_o dulce_fw-la bellum_fw-la inexpertis_fw-la from_o p._n 187_o to_o p._n 189._o a_o calculation_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n now_o live_v who_o be_v inexpert_n i_o e._n who_o be_v now_o alive_a that_o be_v bear_v since_o the_o year_n in_o which_o our_o war_n end_v or_o be_v then_o child_n viz._n of_o such_o year_n as_o not_o to_o have_v experience_v or_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o misery_n and_o inconvenience_n of_o the_o war_n and_o a_o calculation_n of_o what_o number_n of_o those_o who_o live_v in_o 1641_o be_v now_o dead_a and_o what_o proportion_n of_o those_o now_o live_v who_o live_v in_o that_o time_n of_o the_o war_n do_v gain_v by_o the_o war_n and_o of_o the_o number_n of_o such_o inexpert_n in_o ireland_n and_o scotland_n p._n 188_o 189_o 190._o the_o usurper_n seize_v into_o their_o hand_n about_o a_o moiety_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o kingdom_n p._n 190._o it_o be_v observe_v that_o present_o after_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n the_o parliament_n give_v king_n james_n 3_o subsidy_n 7_o fifthteenth_n and_o 10_o this_o of_o the_o laity_n and_o 4_o subsidy_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o what_o they_o amount_v to_o the_o author_n show_v how_o just_a and_o natural_a it_o be_v for_o the_o parliament_n believe_v that_o plot_n so_o to_o do_v p._n 191_o 194._o a_o intimation_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o so_o much_o hatred_n in_o france_n against_o the_o earl_n of_o danby_n p._n 192._o the_o author_n belief_n that_o the_o future_a warlike_a state_n of_o christendom_n will_v necessary_o prompt_v all_o patriot_n instead_o of_o study_v to_o make_v man_n unwilling_a to_o promote_v public_a supply_n to_o bend_v their_o brain_n in_o the_o way_n of_o calculation_n to_o show_v what_o the_o kingdom_n be_v able_a to_o contribute_v to_o its_o defence_n and_o how_o to_o do_v it_o with_o equality_n ib._n the_o judgement_n of_o sir_n w._n p._n that_o if_o a_o million_o be_v to_o be_v raise_v in_o england_n what_o quota_fw-la of_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v raise_v on_o land_n cattle_n personal_a estate_n house_n ib._n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o same_o author_n cite_v for_o the_o second_o conclusion_n in_o his_o political_n arithmetic_n viz._n that_o some_o kind_n of_o tax_n and_o public_a levy_n may_v rather_o increase_v than_o diminish_v the_o commonwealth_n p._n 193._o a_o account_n of_o the_o exact_a roman_a prudence_n in_o the_o equality_n of_o tax_n under_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o censor_n appear_v from_o the_o civil_a law_n ib._n the_o great_a care_n and_o exactness_n of_o the_o lead_a man_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n parliament_n to_o calculate_v the_o levy_n and_o to_o render_v the_o same_o equal_a ib._n the_o disproportionate_a tax_n lay_v by_o the_o usurper_n on_o the_o associate_v county_n and_o other_o have_v cause_v the_o weight_n thereby_o to_o aggrieve_v many_o of_o those_o place_n ever_o since_o ib._n lily_n the_o astrologer_n complain_v that_o whereas_o he_o be_v tax_v to_o pay_v about_o 20_o s._n to_o the_o ship_n money_n he_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1651_o rate_v to_o pay_v about_o 20_o l._n annual_o to_o the_o soldiery_n ib._n the_o author_n belief_n and_o reason_n about_o republican_n model_n necessary_o grow_v more_o and_o more_o out_o of_o fashion_n p._n 194_o 195._o observation_n on_o the_o great_a clause_n of_o proponentibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n p._n 195._o the_o preserve_n of_o orderly_a proportion_n in_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o with_o respect_n to_o number_v weight_n and_o measure_n under_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n agree_v on_o by_o divine_n to_o be_v refer_v to_o by_o ezekiel_n in_o vision_n from_o the_o 40th_o chapter_n to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o prophecy_n p._n 196._o how_o augustus_n his_o great_a tax_n or_o pole_n help_v to_o confirm_v the_o christian_a religion_n p._n 197._o the_o author_n opinion_n that_o future_a legal_a and_o equal_a tax_n will_v have_v the_o effect_n of_o strengthen_v the_o protestant_a religion_n ib._n observe_v that_o the_o parliament_n may_v be_v just_o say_v to_o be_v indebt_v to_o the_o crown_n for_o that_o great_a